<?xml version="1.0"?>
<!DOCTYPE gutbook SYSTEM "gutbook1.dtd">
<?xml-stylesheet type="text/css" href="darwin.css"?>
<gutbook>
  <gutblurb>
    <para>The Project Gutenberg Etext of A Tale of Two Cities, by
    Dickens</para>

    <para>Please take a look at the important information in this
    header. We encourage you to keep this file on your own disk,
    keeping an electronic path open for the next readers. Do not
    remove this.</para>

    <para>**Welcome To The World of Free Plain Vanilla Electronic
    Texts**</para>

    <para>**Etexts Readable By Both Humans and By Computers, Since
    1971**</para>

    <para>*These Etexts Prepared By Hundreds of Volunteers and
    Donations*</para>

    <para>Information on contacting Project Gutenberg to get
    Etexts, and further information is included below. We need your
    donations.</para>

    <para>A Tale of Two Cities, by Charles Dickens [A story of the
    French Revolution]</para>

    <para>January, 1994 [Etext #98]</para>

    <para>The Project Gutenberg Etext of A Tale of Two Cities, by
    Dickens *****This file should be named 2city11.txt or
    2city11.zip******</para>

    <para>Corrected EDITIONS of our etexts get a new NUMBER,
    2city12.txt. VERSIONS based on separate sources get new LETTER,
    2city10a.txt.</para>

    <para>This etext was created by Judith Boss, Omaha, Nebraska.
    The equipment: an IBM-compatible 486/50, a Hewlett-Packard
    ScanJet IIc flatbed scanner, and a copy of Calera Recognition
    Systems' M/600 Series Professional OCR software and RISC
    accelerator board donated by Calera.</para>

    <para>For more information about this, ask about:</para>

    <para>M/Series Profesional Software M/Series Accelerator Card
    Calera Recognition Systems 475 Potrero Sunnyvale, CA 94086
    1-408-720-8300</para>

    <para>mikel@calera.com Mike Lynch</para>

    <para>The official release date of all Project Gutenberg Etexts
    is at Midnight, Central Time, of the last day of the stated
    month. A preliminary version may often be posted for
    suggestion, comment and editing by those who wish to do so. To
    be sure you have an up to date first edition [xxxxx10x.xxx]
    please check file sizes in the first week of the next month.
    Since our ftp program has a bug in it that scrambles the date
    [tried to fix and failed] a look at the file size will have to
    do, but we will try to see a new copy has at least one byte
    more or less.</para>

    <para>Information about Project Gutenberg (one page)</para>

    <para>We produce about two million dollars for each hour we
    work. The fifty hours is one conservative estimate for how long
    it we take to get any etext selected, entered, proofread,
    edited, copyright searched and analyzed, the copyright letters
    written, etc. This projected audience is one hundred million
    readers. If our value per text is nominally estimated at one
    dollar, then we produce 2 million dollars per hour this year
    we, will have to do four text files per month: thus upping our
    productivity from one million. The Goal of Project Gutenberg is
    to Give Away One Trillion Etext Files by the December 31, 2001.
    [10,000 x 100,000,000=Trillion] This is ten thousand titles
    each to one hundred million readers, which is 10% of the
    expected number of computer users by the end of the year
    2001.</para>

    <para>We need your donations more than ever!</para>

    <para>All donations should be made to "Project Gutenberg/IBC",
    and are tax deductible to the extent allowable by law ("IBC" is
    Illinois Benedictine College). (Subscriptions to our paper
    newsletter go to IBC, too)</para>

    <para>For these and other matters, please mail to:</para>

    <para>Project Gutenberg P. O. Box 2782 Champaign, IL
    61825</para>

    <para>When all other email fails try our Michael S. Hart,
    Executive Director: hart@vmd.cso.uiuc.edu (internet)
    hart@uiucvmd (bitnet)</para>

    <para>We would prefer to send you this information by email
    (Internet, Bitnet, Compuserve, ATTMAIL or MCImail).</para>

    <para>****** If you have an FTP program (or emulator), please
    FTP directly to the Project Gutenberg archives: [Mac users, do
    NOT point and click. . .type]</para>

    <para>ftp mrcnext.cso.uiuc.edu login: anonymous password:
    your@login cd etext/etext91 or cd etext92 or cd etext93 [for
    new books] [now also in cd etext/etext93] or cd etext/articles
    [get suggest gut for more information] dir [to see files] get
    or mget [to get files. . .set bin for zip files] GET 0INDEX.GUT
    for a list of books and GET NEW GUT for general information and
    MGET GUT* for newsletters.</para>

    <para>**Information prepared by the Project Gutenberg legal
    advisor** (Three Pages)</para>

    <para>***START**THE SMALL PRINT!**FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN
    ETEXTS**START*** Why is this "Small Print!" statement here? You
    know: lawyers. They tell us you might sue us if there is
    something wrong with your copy of this etext, even if you got
    it for free from someone other than us, and even if what's
    wrong is not our fault. So, among other things, this "Small
    Print!" statement disclaims most of our liability to you. It
    also tells you how you can distribute copies of this etext if
    you want to.</para>

    <para>*BEFORE!* YOU USE OR READ THIS ETEXT By using or reading
    any part of this PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext, you indicate that
    you understand, agree to and accept this "Small Print!"
    statement. If you do not, you can receive a refund of the money
    (if any) you paid for this etext by sending a request within 30
    days of receiving it to the person you got it from. If you
    received this etext on a physical medium (such as a disk), you
    must return it with your request.</para>

    <para>ABOUT PROJECT GUTENBERG-TM ETEXTS This PROJECT
    GUTENBERG-tm etext, like most PROJECT GUTENBERG- tm etexts, is
    a "public domain" work distributed by Professor Michael S. Hart
    through the Project Gutenberg Association at Illinois
    Benedictine College (the "Project"). Among other things, this
    means that no one owns a United States copyright on or for this
    work, so the Project (and you!) can copy and distribute it in
    the United States without permission and without paying
    copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth below, apply if
    you wish to copy and distribute this etext under the Project's
    "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark.</para>

    <para>To create these etexts, the Project expends considerable
    efforts to identify, transcribe and proofread public domain
    works. Despite these efforts, the Project's etexts and any
    medium they may be on may contain "Defects". Among other
    things, Defects may take the form of incomplete, inaccurate or
    corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
    intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk
    or other etext medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that
    damage or cannot be read by your equipment.</para>

    <para>LIMITED WARRANTY; DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES But for the
    "Right of Replacement or Refund" described below, [1] the
    Project (and any other party you may receive this etext from as
    a PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext) disclaims all liability to you
    for damages, costs and expenses, including legal fees, and [2]
    YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE OR UNDER STRICT LIABILITY,
    OR FOR BREACH OF WARRANTY OR CONTRACT, INCLUDING BUT NOT
    LIMITED TO INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR INCIDENTAL
    DAMAGES, EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
    DAMAGES.</para>

    <para>If you discover a Defect in this etext within 90 days of
    receiving it, you can receive a refund of the money (if any)
    you paid for it by sending an explanatory note within that time
    to the person you received it from. If you received it on a
    physical medium, you must return it with your note, and such
    person may choose to alternatively give you a replacement copy.
    If you received it electronically, such person may choose to
    alternatively give you a second opportunity to receive it
    electronically.</para>

    <para>THIS ETEXT IS OTHERWISE PROVIDED TO YOU "AS-IS". NO OTHER
    WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, ARE MADE TO YOU AS
    TO THE ETEXT OR ANY MEDIUM IT MAY BE ON, INCLUDING BUT NOT
    LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR A
    PARTICULAR PURPOSE.</para>

    <para>Some states do not allow disclaimers of implied
    warranties or the exclusion or limitation of consequential
    damages, so the above disclaimers and exclusions may not apply
    to you, and you may have other legal rights.</para>

    <para>INDEMNITY You will indemnify and hold the Project, its
    directors, officers, members and agents harmless from all
    liability, cost and expense, including legal fees, that arise
    directly or indirectly from any of the following that you do or
    cause: [1] distribution of this etext, [2] alteration,
    modification, or addition to the etext, or [3] any
    Defect.</para>

    <para>DISTRIBUTION UNDER "PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm" You may
    distribute copies of this etext electronically, or by disk,
    book or any other medium if you either delete this "Small
    Print!" and all other references to Project Gutenberg,
    or:</para>

    <para>[1] Only give exact copies of it. Among other things,
    this requires that you do not remove, alter or modify the etext
    or this "small print!" statement. You may however, if you wish,
    distribute this etext in machine readable binary, compressed,
    mark-up, or proprietary form, including any form resulting from
    conversion by word pro- cessing or hypertext software, but only
    so long as *EITHER*:</para>

    <para>[*] The etext, when displayed, is clearly readable, and
    does *not* contain characters other than those intended by the
    author of the work, although tilde (~), asterisk (*) and
    underline (_) characters may be used to convey punctuation
    intended by the author, and additional characters may be used
    to indicate hypertext links; OR</para>

    <para>[*] The etext may be readily converted by the reader at
    no expense into plain ASCII, EBCDIC or equivalent form by the
    program that displays the etext (as is the case, for instance,
    with most word processors); OR</para>

    <para>[*] You provide, or agree to also provide on request at
    no additional cost, fee or expense, a copy of the etext in its
    original plain ASCII form (or in EBCDIC or other equivalent
    proprietary form).</para>

    <para>[2] Honor the etext refund and replacement provisions of
    this "Small Print!" statement.</para>

    <para>[3] Pay a trademark license fee to the Project of 20% of
    the net profits you derive calculated using the method you
    already use to calculate your applicable taxes. If you don't
    derive profits, no royalty is due. Royalties are payable to
    "Project Gutenberg Association / Illinois Benedictine College"
    within the 60 days following each date you prepare (or were
    legally required to prepare) your annual (or equivalent
    periodic) tax return.</para>

    <para>WHAT IF YOU *WANT* TO SEND MONEY EVEN IF YOU DON'T HAVE
    TO? The Project gratefully accepts contributions in money,
    time, scanning machines, OCR software, public domain etexts,
    royalty free copyright licenses, and every other sort of
    contribution you can think of. Money should be paid to "Project
    Gutenberg Association / Illinois Benedictine College".</para>

    <para>This "Small Print!" by Charles B. Kramer, Attorney
    Internet (72600.2026@compuserve.com); TEL: (212-254-5093)
    *END*THE SMALL PRINT! FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN
    ETEXTS*Ver.04.29.93*END*</para>
  </gutblurb>

  <markupblurb>
    <para>Original markup by Davey Leslie. 2/4/2000 Changes</para>

    <para>Changes to the original E-text: "&amp;how how" to "show
    how"; "THE Substance" to "The Substance"</para>
  </markupblurb>

  <book>
    <acknowledge>A production of Project Gutenberg and the HTML
    Writers Guild. E-text by Judith Boss. Markup by Davey
    Leslie</acknowledge>

    <frontmatter>
      <titlepage>
        <title>A Tale of Two Cities</title>

        <author>Charles Dickens</author>
      </titlepage>
   
      <toc>
        <title>CONTENTS</title>

        
          <subtitle>Book the First--Recalled to Life</subtitle>

          <item>Chapter I The Period</item>

          <item>Chapter II The Mail</item>

          <item>Chapter III The Night Shadows</item>

          <item>Chapter IV The Preparation</item>

          <item>Chapter V The Wine-shop</item>

          <item>Chapter VI The Shoemaker</item>
        

        
          <subtitle>Book the Second--the Golden Thread</subtitle>

          <item>Chapter I Five Years Later</item>

          <item>Chapter II A Sight</item>

          <item>Chapter III A Disappointment</item>

          <item>Chapter IV Congratulatory</item>

          <item>Chapter V The Jackal</item>

          <item>Chapter VI Hundreds of People</item>

          <item>Chapter VII Monseigneur in Town</item>

          <item>Chapter VIII Monseigneur in the Country</item>

          <item>Chapter IX The Gorgon's Head</item>

          <item>Chapter X Two Promises</item>

          <item>Chapter XI A Companion Picture</item>

          <item>Chapter XII The Fellow of Delicacy</item>

          <item>Chapter XIII The Fellow of no Delicacy</item>

          <item>Chapter XIV The Honest Tradesman</item>

          <item>Chapter XV Knitting</item>

          <item>Chapter XVI Still Knitting</item>

          <item>Chapter XVII One Night</item>

          <item>Chapter XVIII Nine Days</item>

          <item>Chapter XIX An Opinion</item>

          <item>Chapter XX A Plea</item>

          <item>Chapter XXI Echoing Footsteps</item>

          <item>Chapter XXII The Sea still Rises</item>

          <item>Chapter XXIII Fire Rises</item>

          <item>Chapter XXIV Drawn to the Loadstone Rock</item>
        

          <subtitle>Book the Third--the Track of a Storm</subtitle>

          <item>Chapter I In Secret</item>

          <item>Chapter II The Grindstone</item>

          <item>Chapter III The Shadow</item>

          <item>Chapter IV Calm in Storm</item>

          <item>Chapter V The Wood-sawyer</item>

          <item>Chapter VI Triumph</item>

          <item>Chapter VII A Knock at the Door</item>

          <item>Chapter VIII A Hand at Cards</item>

          <item>Chapter IX The Game Made</item>

          <item>Chapter X The Substance of the Shadow</item>

          <item>Chapter XI Dusk</item>

          <item>Chapter XII Darkness</item>

          <item>Chapter XIII Fifty-two</item>

          <item>Chapter XIV The Knitting Done</item>

          <item>Chapter XV The Footsteps die out For ever</item>
        
      </toc>

 </frontmatter>

    <bookbody>
      <part>
        <titlepage>
          <title>Book the First--Recalled to Life</title>
        </titlepage>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>I</chapnum>

            <title>The Period</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>It was the best of times, it was the worst of
          times, it was the age of wisdom, it was the age of
          foolishness, it was the epoch of belief, it was the epoch
          of incredulity, it was the season of Light, it was the
          season of Darkness, it was the spring of hope, it was the
          winter of despair, we had everything before us, we had
          nothing before us, we were all going direct to Heaven, we
          were all going direct the other way--in short, the period
          was so far like the present period, that some of its
          noisiest authorities insisted on its being received, for
          good or for evil, in the superlative degree of comparison
          only.</para>

          <para>There were a king with a large jaw and a queen with
          a plain face, on the throne of England; there were a king
          with a large jaw and a queen with a fair face, on the
          throne of France. In both countries it was clearer than
          crystal to the lords of the State preserves of loaves and
          fishes, that things in general were settled for
          ever.</para>

          <para>It was the year of Our Lord one thousand seven
          hundred and seventy-five. Spiritual revelations were
          conceded to England at that favoured period, as at this.
          Mrs. Southcott had recently attained her
          five-and-twentieth blessed birthday, of whom a prophetic
          private in the Life Guards had heralded the sublime
          appearance by announcing that arrangements were made for
          the swallowing up of London and Westminster. Even the
          Cock-lane ghost had been laid only a round dozen of
          years, after rapping out its messages, as the spirits of
          this very year last past (supernaturally deficient in
          originality) rapped out theirs. Mere messages in the
          earthly order of events had lately come to the English
          Crown and People, from a congress of British subjects in
          America: which, strange to relate, have proved more
          important to the human race than any communications yet
          received through any of the chickens of the Cock-lane
          brood.</para>

          <para>France, less favoured on the whole as to matters
          spiritual than her sister of the shield and trident,
          rolled with exceeding smoothness down hill, making paper
          money and spending it. Under the guidance of her
          Christian pastors, she entertained herself, besides, with
          such humane achievements as sentencing a youth to have
          his hands cut off, his tongue torn out with pincers, and
          his body burned alive, because he had not kneeled down in
          the rain to do honour to a dirty procession of monks
          which passed within his view, at a distance of some fifty
          or sixty yards. It is likely enough that, rooted in the
          woods of France and Norway, there were growing trees,
          when that sufferer was put to death, already marked by
          the Woodman, Fate, to come down and be sawn into boards,
          to make a certain movable framework with a sack and a
          knife in it, terrible in history. It is likely enough
          that in the rough outhouses of some tillers of the heavy
          lands adjacent to Paris, there were sheltered from the
          weather that very day, rude carts, bespattered with
          rustic mire, snuffed about by pigs, and roosted in by
          poultry, which the Farmer, Death, had already set apart
          to be his tumbrils of the Revolution. But that Woodman
          and that Farmer, though they work unceasingly, work
          silently, and no one heard them as they went about with
          muffled tread: the rather, forasmuch as to entertain any
          suspicion that they were awake, was to be atheistical and
          traitorous.</para>

          <para>In England, there was scarcely an amount of order
          and protection to justify much national boasting. Daring
          burglaries by armed men, and highway robberies, took
          place in the capital itself every night; families were
          publicly cautioned not to go out of town without removing
          their furniture to upholsterers' warehouses for security;
          the highwayman in the dark was a City tradesman in the
          light, and, being recognised and challenged by his
          fellow- tradesman whom he stopped in his character of
          "the Captain," gallantly shot him through the head and
          rode away; the mall was waylaid by seven robbers, and the
          guard shot three dead, and then got shot dead himself by
          the other four, "in consequence of the failure of his
          ammunition:" after which the mall was robbed in peace;
          that magnificent potentate, the Lord Mayor of London, was
          made to stand and deliver on Turnham Green, by one
          highwayman, who despoiled the illustrious creature in
          sight of all his retinue; prisoners in London gaols
          fought battles with their turnkeys, and the majesty of
          the law fired blunderbusses in among them, loaded with
          rounds of shot and ball; thieves snipped off diamond
          crosses from the necks of noble lords at Court
          drawing-rooms; musketeers went into St. Giles's, to
          search for contraband goods, and the mob fired on the
          musketeers, and the musketeers fired on the mob, and
          nobody thought any of these occurrences much out of the
          common way. In the midst of them, the hangman, ever busy
          and ever worse than useless, was in constant requisition;
          now, stringing up long rows of miscellaneous criminals;
          now, hanging a housebreaker on Saturday who had been
          taken on Tuesday; now, burning people in the hand at
          Newgate by the dozen, and now burning pamphlets at the
          door of Westminster Hall; to-day, taking the life of an
          atrocious murderer, and to-morrow of a wretched pilferer
          who had robbed a farmer's boy of sixpence.</para>

          <para>All these things, and a thousand like them, came to
          pass in and close upon the dear old year one thousand
          seven hundred and seventy-five. Environed by them, while
          the Woodman and the Farmer worked unheeded, those two of
          the large jaws, and those other two of the plain and the
          fair faces, trod with stir enough, and carried their
          divine rights with a high hand. Thus did the year one
          thousand seven hundred and seventy-five conduct their
          Greatnesses, and myriads of small creatures--the
          creatures of this chronicle among the rest--along the
          roads that lay before them.</para>
        </chapter>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>II</chapnum>

            <title>The Mail</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>It was the Dover road that lay, on a Friday night
          late in November, before the first of the persons with
          whom this history has business. The Dover road lay, as to
          him, beyond the Dover mail, as it lumbered up Shooter's
          Hill. He walked up hill in the mire by the side of the
          mail, as the rest of the passengers did; not because they
          had the least relish for walking exercise, under the
          circumstances, but because the hill, and the harness, and
          the mud, and the mail, were all so heavy, that the horses
          had three times already come to a stop, besides once
          drawing the coach across the road, with the mutinous
          intent of taking it back to Blackheath. Reins and whip
          and coachman and guard, however, in combination, had read
          that article of war which forbade a purpose otherwise
          strongly in favour of the argument, that some brute
          animals are endued with Reason; and the team had
          capitulated and returned to their duty.</para>

          <para>With drooping heads and tremulous tails, they
          mashed their way through the thick mud, floundering and
          stumbling between whiles, as if they were falling to
          pieces at the larger joints. As often as the driver
          rested them and brought them to a stand, with a wary
          "Wo-ho! so-ho- then!" the near leader violently shook his
          head and everything upon it--like an unusually emphatic
          horse, denying that the coach could be got up the hill.
          Whenever the leader made this rattle, the passenger
          started, as a nervous passenger might, and was disturbed
          in mind.</para>

          <para>There was a steaming mist in all the hollows, and
          it had roamed in its forlornness up the hill, like an
          evil spirit, seeking rest and finding none. A clammy and
          intensely cold mist, it made its slow way through the air
          in ripples that visibly followed and overspread one
          another, as the waves of an unwholesome sea might do. It
          was dense enough to shut out everything from the light of
          the coach-lamps but these its own workings, and a few
          yards of road; and the reek of the labouring horses
          steamed into it, as if they had made it all.</para>

          <para>Two other passengers, besides the one, were
          plodding up the hill by the side of the mail. All three
          were wrapped to the cheekbones and over the ears, and
          wore jack-boots. Not one of the three could have said,
          from anything he saw, what either of the other two was
          like; and each was hidden under almost as many wrappers
          from the eyes of the mind, as from the eyes of the body,
          of his two companions. In those days, travellers were
          very shy of being confidential on a short notice, for
          anybody on the road might be a robber or in league with
          robbers. As to the latter, when every posting-house and
          ale-house could produce somebody in "the Captain's" pay,
          ranging from the landlord to the lowest stable
          non-descript, it was the likeliest thing upon the cards.
          So the guard of the Dover mail thought to himself, that
          Friday night in November, one thousand seven hundred and
          seventy-five, lumbering up Shooter's Hill, as he stood on
          his own particular perch behind the mail, beating his
          feet, and keeping an eye and a hand on the arm-chest
          before him, where a loaded blunderbuss lay at the top of
          six or eight loaded horse-pistols, deposited on a
          substratum of cutlass.</para>

          <para>The Dover mail was in its usual genial position
          that the guard suspected the passengers, the passengers
          suspected one another and the guard, they all suspected
          everybody else, and the coachman was sure of nothing but
          the horses; as to which cattle he could with a clear
          conscience have taken his oath on the two Testaments that
          they were not fit for the journey.</para>

          <para>"Wo-ho!" said the coachman. "So, then! One more
          pull and you're at the top and be damned to you, for I
          have had trouble enough to get you to it!--Joe!"</para>

          <para>"Halloa!" the guard replied.</para>

          <para>"What o'clock do you make it, Joe?"</para>

          <para>"Ten minutes, good, past eleven."</para>

          <para>"My blood!" ejaculated the vexed coachman, "and not
          atop of Shooter's yet! Tst! Yah! Get on with you!
          "</para>

          <para>The emphatic horse, cut short by the whip in a most
          decided negative, made a decided scramble for it, and the
          three other horses followed suit. Once more, the Dover
          mail struggled on, with the jack-boots of its passengers
          squashing along by its side. They had stopped when the
          coach stopped, and they kept close company with it. If
          any one of the three had had the hardihood to propose to
          another to walk on a little ahead into the mist and
          darkness, he would have put himself in a fair way of
          getting shot instantly as a highwayman.</para>

          <para>The last burst carried the mail to the summit of
          the hill. The horses stopped to breathe again, and the
          guard got down to skid the wheel for the descent, and
          open the coach-door to let the passengers in.</para>

          <para>"Tst! Joe!" cried the coachman in a warning voice,
          looking down from his box.</para>

          <para>"What do you say, Tom?"</para>

          <para>They both listened.</para>

          <para>"I say a horse at a canter coming up, Joe."</para>

          <para>"_I_ say a horse at a gallop, Tom," returned the
          guard, leaving his hold of the door, and mounting nimbly
          to his place. "Gentlemen! In the kings name, all of
          you!"</para>

          <para>With this hurried adjuration, he cocked his
          blunderbuss, and stood on the offensive.</para>

          <para>The passenger booked by this history, was on the
          coach-step, getting in; the two other passengers were
          close behind him, and about to follow. He remained on the
          step, half in the coach and half out of; they re-mained
          in the road below him. They all looked from the coachman
          to the guard, and from the guard to the coachman, and
          listened. The coachman looked back and the guard looked
          back, and even the emphatic leader pricked up his ears
          and looked back, without contradicting.</para>

          <para>The stillness consequent on the cessation of the
          rumbling and and labouring of the coach, added to the
          stillness of the night, made it very quiet indeed. The
          panting of the horses communicated a tremulous motion to
          the coach, as if it were in a state of agitation. The
          hearts of the passengers beat loud enough perhaps to be
          heard; but at any rate, the quiet pause was audibly
          expressive of people out of breath, and holding the
          breath, and having the pulses quickened by
          expectation.</para>

          <para>The sound of a horse at a gallop came fast and
          furiously up the hill.</para>

          <para>"So-ho!" the guard sang out, as loud as he could
          roar. "Yo there! Stand! I shall fire!"</para>

          <para>The pace was suddenly checked, and, with much
          splashing and floundering, a man's voice called from the
          mist, "Is that the Dover mail?"</para>

          <para>"Never you mind what it is!" the guard retorted.
          "What are you?"</para>

          <para>"IS that the Dover mail?"</para>

          <para>"Why do you want to know?"</para>

          <para>"I want a passenger, if it is."</para>

          <para>"What passenger?"</para>

          <para>"Mr. Jarvis Lorry."</para>

          <para>Our booked passenger showed in a moment that it was
          his name. The guard, the coachman, and the two other
          passengers eyed him distrustfully.</para>

          <para>"Keep where you are," the guard called to the voice
          in the mist, "because, if I should make a mistake, it
          could never be set right in your lifetime. Gentleman of
          the name of Lorry answer straight."</para>

          <para>"What is the matter?" asked the passenger, then,
          with mildly quavering speech. "Who wants me? Is it
          Jerry?"</para>

          <para>("I don't like Jerry's voice, if it is Jerry,"
          growled the guard to himself. "He's hoarser than suits
          me, is Jerry.")</para>

          <para>"Yes, Mr. Lorry."</para>

          <para>"What is the matter?"</para>

          <para>"A despatch sent after you from over yonder. T. and
          Co."</para>

          <para>"I know this messenger, guard," said Mr. Lorry,
          getting down into the road--assisted from behind more
          swiftly than politely by the other two passengers, who
          immediately scrambled into the coach, shut the door, and
          pulled up the window. "He may come close; there's nothing
          wrong."</para>

          <para>"I hope there ain't, but I can't make so 'Nation
          sure of that," said the guard, in gruff soliloquy. "Hallo
          you!"</para>

          <para>"Well! And hallo you!" said Jerry, more hoarsely
          than before.</para>

          <para>"Come on at a footpace! d'ye mind me? And if you've
          got holsters to that saddle o' yourn, don't let me see
          your hand go nigh 'em. For I'm a devil at a quick
          mistake, and when I make one it takes the form of Lead.
          So now let's look at you."</para>

          <para>The figures of a horse and rider came slowly
          through the eddying mist, and came to the side of the
          mail, where the passenger stood. The rider stooped, and,
          casting up his eyes at the guard, handed the passenger a
          small folded paper. The rider's horse was blown, and both
          horse and rider were covered with mud, from the hoofs of
          the horse to the hat of the man.</para>

          <para>"Guard!" said the passenger, in a tone of quiet
          business confidence.</para>

          <para>The watchful guard, with his right hand at the
          stock of his raised blunderbuss, his left at the barrel,
          and his eye on the horseman, answered curtly,
          "Sir."</para>

          <para>"There is nothing to apprehend. I belong to
          Tellson's Bank. You must know Tellson's Bank in London. I
          am going to Paris on business. A crown to drink. I may
          read this?"</para>

          <para>"If so be as you're quick, sir."</para>

          <para>He opened it in the light of the coach-lamp on that
          side, and read--first to himself and then aloud: "`Wait
          at Dover for Mam'selle.' It's not long, you see, guard.
          Jerry, say that my answer was, RECALLED TO LIFE."</para>

          <para>Jerry started in his saddle. "That's a Blazing
          strange answer, too," said he, at his hoarsest.</para>

          <para>"Take that message back, and they will know that I
          received this, as well as if I wrote. Make the best of
          your way. Good night."</para>

          <para>With those words the passenger opened the
          coach-door and got in; not at all assisted by his
          fellow-passengers, who had expeditiously secreted their
          watches and purses in their boots, and were now making a
          general pretence of being asleep. With no more definite
          purpose than to escape the hazard of originating any
          other kind of action.</para>

          <para>The coach lumbered on again, with heavier wreaths
          of mist closing round it as it began the descent. The
          guard soon replaced his blunderbuss in his arm-chest,
          and, having looked to the rest of its contents, and
          having looked to the supplementary pistols that he wore
          in his belt, looked to a smaller chest beneath his seat,
          in which there were a few smith's tools, a couple of
          torches, and a tinder-box. For he was furnished with that
          completeness that if the coach-lamps had been blown and
          stormed out, which did occasionally happen, he had only
          to shut himself up inside, keep the flint and steel
          sparks well off the straw, and get a light with tolerable
          safety and ease (if he were lucky) in five
          minutes.</para>

          <para>"Tom!" softly over the coach roof.</para>

          <para>"Hallo, Joe."</para>

          <para>"Did you hear the message?"</para>

          <para>"I did, Joe."</para>

          <para>"What did you make of it, Tom?"</para>

          <para>"Nothing at all, Joe."</para>

          <para>"That's a coincidence, too," the guard mused, "for
          I made the same of it myself."</para>

          <para>Jerry, left alone in the mist and darkness,
          dismounted meanwhile, not only to ease his spent horse,
          but to wipe the mud from his face, and shake the wet out
          of his hat-brim, which might be capable of holding about
          half a gallon. After standing with the bridle over his
          heavily-splashed arm, until the wheels of the mail were
          no longer within hearing and the night was quite still
          again, he turned to walk down the hill.</para>

          <para>"After that there gallop from Temple Bar, old lady,
          I won't trust your fore-legs till I get you on the
          level," said this hoarse messenger, glancing at his mare.
          "`Recalled to life.' That's a Blazing strange message.
          Much of that wouldn't do for you, Jerry! I say, Jerry!
          You'd be in a Blazing bad way, if recalling to life was
          to come into fashion, Jerry!"</para>
        </chapter>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>III</chapnum>

            <title>The Night Shadows</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>A Wonderful fact to reflect upon, that every human
          creature is constituted to be that profound secret and
          mystery to every other. A solemn consideration, when I
          enter a great city by night, that every one of those
          darkly clustered houses encloses its own secret; that
          every room in every one of them encloses its own secret;
          that every beating heart in the hundreds of thousands of
          breasts there, is, in some of its imaginings, a secret to
          the heart nearest it! Something of the awfulness, even of
          Death itself, is referable to this. No more can I turn
          the leaves of this dear book that I loved, and vainly
          hope in time to read it all. No more can I look into the
          depths of this unfathomable water, wherein, as momentary
          lights glanced into it, I have had glimpses of buried
          treasure and other things submerged. It was appointed
          that the book should shut with a a spring, for ever and
          for ever, when I had read but a page. It was appointed
          that the water should be locked in an eternal frost, when
          the light was playing on its surface, and I stood in
          ignorance on the shore. My friend is dead, my neighbour
          is dead, my love, the darling of my soul, is dead; it is
          the inexorable consolidation and perpetuation of the
          secret that was always in that individuality, and which I
          shall carry in mine to my life's end. In any of the
          burial-places of this city through which I pass, is there
          a sleeper more inscrutable than its busy inhabitants are,
          in their innermost personality, to me, or than I am to
          them?</para>

          <para>As to this, his natural and not to be alienated
          inheritance, the messenger on horseback had exactly the
          same possessions as the King, the first Minister of
          State, or the richest merchant in London. So with the
          three passengers shut up in the narrow compass of one
          lumbering old mail coach; they were mysteries to one
          another, as complete as if each had been in his own coach
          and six, or his own coach and sixty, with the breadth of
          a county between him and the next.</para>

          <para>The messenger rode back at an easy trot, stopping
          pretty often at ale-houses by the way to drink, but
          evincing a tendency to keep his own counsel, and to keep
          his hat cocked over his eyes. He had eyes that assorted
          very well with that decoration, being of a surface black,
          with no depth in the colour or form, and much too near
          together--as if they were afraid of being found out in
          something, singly, if they kept too far apart. They had a
          sinister expression, under an old cocked-hat like a
          three-cornered spittoon, and over a great muffler for the
          chin and throat, which descended nearly to the wearer's
          knees. When he stopped for drink, he moved this muffler
          with his left hand, only while he poured his liquor in
          with his right; as soon as that was done, he muffled
          again.</para>

          <para>"No, Jerry, no!" said the messenger, harping on one
          theme as he rode. "It wouldn't do for you, Jerry. Jerry,
          you honest tradesman, it wouldn't suit YOUR line of
          business! Recalled--! Bust me if I don't think he'd been
          a drinking!"</para>

          <para>His message perplexed his mind to that degree that
          he was fain, several times, to take off his hat to
          scratch his head. Except on the crown, which was raggedly
          bald, he had stiff, black hair, standing jaggedly all
          over it, and growing down hill almost to his broad, blunt
          nose. It was so like Smith's work, so much more like the
          top of a strongly spiked wall than a head of hair, that
          the best of players at leap-frog might have declined him,
          as the most dangerous man in the world to go over.</para>

          <para>While he trotted back with the message he was to
          deliver to the night watchman in his box at the door of
          Tellson's Bank, by Temple Bar, who was to deliver it to
          greater authorities within, the shadows of the night took
          such shapes to him as arose out of the message, and took
          such shapes to the mare as arose out of HER private
          topics of uneasiness. They seemed to be numerous, for she
          shied at every shadow on the road.</para>

          <para>What time, the mail-coach lumbered, jolted,
          rattled, and bumped upon its tedious way, with its three
          fellow-inscrutables inside. To whom, likewise, the
          shadows of the night revealed themselves, in the forms
          their dozing eyes and wandering thoughts
          suggested.</para>

          <para>Tellson's Bank had a run upon it in the mail. As
          the bank passenger-- with an arm drawn through the
          leathern strap, which did what lay in it to keep him from
          pounding against the next passenger, and driving him into
          his corner, whenever the coach got a special jolt--nodded
          in his place, with half-shut eyes, the little
          coach-windows, and the coach-lamp dimly gleaming through
          them, and the bulky bundle of opposite passenger, became
          the bank, and did a great stroke of business. The rattle
          of the harness was the chink of money, and more drafts
          were honoured in five minutes than even Tellson's, with
          all its foreign and home connection, ever paid in thrice
          the time. Then the strong-rooms underground, at
          Tellson's, with such of their valuable stores and secrets
          as were known to the passenger (and it was not a little
          that he knew about them), opened before him, and he went
          in among them with the great keys and the feebly-burning
          candle, and found them safe, and strong, and sound, and
          still, just as he had last seen them.</para>

          <para>But, though the bank was almost always with him,
          and though the coach (in a confused way, like the
          presence of pain under an opiate) was always with him,
          there was another current of impression that never ceased
          to run, all through the night. He was on his way to dig
          some one out of a grave.</para>

          <para>Now, which of the multitude of faces that showed
          themselves before him was the true face of the buried
          person, the shadows of the night did not indicate; but
          they were all the faces of a man of five-and- forty by
          years, and they differed principally in the passions they
          expressed, and in the ghastliness of their worn and
          wasted state. Pride, contempt, defiance, stubbornness,
          submission, lamentation, succeeded one another; so did
          varieties of sunken cheek, cadaverous colour, emaciated
          hands and figures. But the face was in the main one face,
          and every head was prematurely white. A hundred times the
          dozing passenger inquired of this spectre:</para>

          <para>"Buried how long?"</para>

          <para>The answer was always the same: "Almost eighteen
          years."</para>

          <para>"You had abandoned all hope of being dug
          out?"</para>

          <para>"Long ago."</para>

          <para>"You know that you are recalled to life?"</para>

          <para>"They tell me so."</para>

          <para>"I hope you care to live?"</para>

          <para>"I can't say."</para>

          <para>"Shall I show her to you? Will you come and see
          her?"</para>

          <para>The answers to this question were various and
          contradictory. Sometimes the broken reply was, "Wait! It
          would kill me if I saw her too soon." Sometimes, it was
          given in a tender rain of tears, and then it was, "Take
          me to her." Sometimes it was staring and bewildered, and
          then it was, "I don't know her. I don't
          understand."</para>

          <para>After such imaginary discourse, the passenger in
          his fancy would dig, and dig, dig--now with a spade, now
          with a great key, now with his hands--to dig this
          wretched creature out. Got out at last, with earth
          hanging about his face and hair, he would suddenly fan
          away to dust. The passenger would then start to himself,
          and lower the window, to get the reality of mist and rain
          on his cheek.</para>

          <para>Yet even when his eyes were opened on the mist and
          rain, on the moving patch of light from the lamps, and
          the hedge at the roadside retreating by jerks, the night
          shadows outside the coach would fall into the train of
          the night shadows within. The real Banking-house by
          Temple Bar, the real business of the past day, the real
          strong rooms, the real express sent after him, and the
          real message returned, would all be there. Out of the
          midst of them, the ghostly face would rise, and he would
          accost it again.</para>

          <para>"Buried how long?"</para>

          <para>"Almost eighteen years."</para>

          <para>"I hope you care to live?"</para>

          <para>"I can't say."</para>

          <para>Dig--dig--dig--until an impatient movement from one
          of the two passengers would admonish him to pull up the
          window, draw his arm securely through the leathern strap,
          and speculate upon the two slumbering forms, until his
          mind lost its hold of them, and they again slid away into
          the bank and the grave.</para>

          <para>"Buried how long?"</para>

          <para>"Almost eighteen years."</para>

          <para>"You had abandoned all hope of being dug
          out?"</para>

          <para>"Long ago."</para>

          <para>The words were still in his hearing as just
          spoken--distinctly in his hearing as ever spoken words
          had been in his life--when the weary passenger started to
          the consciousness of daylight, and found that the shadows
          of the night were gone.</para>

          <para>He lowered the window, and looked out at the rising
          sun. There was a ridge of ploughed land, with a plough
          upon it where it had been left last night when the horses
          were unyoked; beyond, a quiet coppice-wood, in which many
          leaves of burning red and golden yellow still remained
          upon the trees. Though the earth was cold and wet, the
          sky was clear, and the sun rose bright, placid, and
          beautiful.</para>

          <para>"Eighteen years!" said the passenger, looking at
          the sun. "Gracious Creator of day! To be buried alive for
          eighteen years!"</para>
        </chapter>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>IV</chapnum>

            <title>The Preparation</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>When the mail got successfully to Dover, in the
          course of the forenoon, the head drawer at the Royal
          George Hotel opened the coach-door as his custom was. He
          did it with some flourish of ceremony, for a mail journey
          from London in winter was an achievement to congratulate
          an adventurous traveller upon.</para>

          <para>By that time, there was only one adventurous
          traveller left be congratulated: for the two others had
          been set down at their respective roadside destinations.
          The mildewy inside of the coach, with its damp and dirty
          straw, its disageeable smell, and its obscurity, was
          rather like a larger dog-kennel. Mr. Lorry, the
          passenger, shaking himself out of it in chains of straw,
          a tangle of shaggy wrapper, flapping hat, and muddy legs,
          was rather like a larger sort of dog.</para>

          <para>"There will be a packet to Calais, tomorrow,
          drawer?"</para>

          <para>"Yes, sir, if the weather holds and the wind sets
          tolerable fair. The tide will serve pretty nicely at
          about two in the afternoon, sir. Bed, sir?"</para>

          <para>"I shall not go to bed till night; but I want a
          bedroom, and a barber."</para>

          <para>"And then breakfast, sir? Yes, sir. That way, sir,
          if you please. Show Concord! Gentleman's valise and hot
          water to Concord. Pull off gentleman's boots in Concord.
          (You will find a fine sea-coal fire, sir.) Fetch barber
          to Concord. Stir about there, now, for Concord!"</para>

          <para>The Concord bed-chamber being always assigned to a
          passenger by the mail, and passengers by the mail being
          always heavily wrapped up from bead to foot, the room had
          the odd interest for the establishment of the Royal
          George, that although but one kind of man was seen to go
          into it, all kinds and varieties of men came out of it.
          Consequently, another drawer, and two porters, and
          several maids and the landlady, were all loitering by
          accident at various points of the road between the
          Concord and the coffee-room, when a gentleman of sixty,
          formally dressed in a brown suit of clothes, pretty well
          worn, but very well kept, with large square cuffs and
          large flaps to the pockets, passed along on his way to
          his breakfast.</para>

          <para>The coffee-room had no other occupant, that
          forenoon, than the gentleman in brown. His
          breakfast-table was drawn before the fire, and as he sat,
          with its light shining on him, waiting for the meal, he
          sat so still, that he might have been sitting for his
          portrait.</para>

          <para>Very orderly and methodical he looked, with a hand
          on each knee, and a loud watch ticking a sonorous sermon
          under his flapped waist-coat, as though it pitted its
          gravity and longevity against the levity and evanescence
          of the brisk fire. He had a good leg, and was a little
          vain of it, for his brown stockings fitted sleek and
          close, and were of a fine texture; his shoes and buckles,
          too, though plain, were trim. He wore an odd little sleek
          crisp flaxen wig, setting very close to his head: which
          wig, it is to be presumed, was made of hair, but which
          looked far more as though it were spun from filaments of
          silk or glass. His linen, though not of a fineness in
          accordance with his stockings, was as white as the tops
          of the waves that broke upon the neighbouring beach, or
          the specks of sail that glinted in the sunlight far at
          sea. A face habitually suppressed and quieted, was still
          lighted up under the quaint wig by a pair of moist bright
          eyes that it must have cost their owner, in years gone
          by, some pains to drill to the composed and reserved
          expression of Tellson's Bank. He had a healthy colour in
          his cheeks, and his face, though lined, bore few traces
          of anxiety. But, perhaps the confidential bachelor clerks
          in Tellson's Bank were principally occupied with the
          cares of other people; and perhaps second-hand cares,
          like second-hand clothes, come easily off and on.</para>

          <para>Completing his resemblance to a man who was sitting
          for his portrait, Mr. Lorry dropped off to sleep. The
          arrival of his breakfast roused him, and he said to the
          drawer, as he moved his chair to it:</para>

          <para>"I wish accommodation prepared for a young lady who
          may come here at any time to-day. She may ask for Mr.
          Jarvis Lorry, or she may only ask for a gentleman from
          Tellson's Bank. Please to let me know."</para>

          <para>"Yes, sir. Tellson's Bank in London, sir?"</para>

          <para>"Yes."</para>

          <para>"Yes, sir. We have oftentimes the honour to
          entertain your gentlemen in their travelling backwards
          and forwards betwixt London and Paris, sir. A vast deal
          of travelling, sir, in Tellson and Company's
          House."</para>

          <para>"Yes. We are quite a French House, as well as an
          English one."</para>

          <para>"Yes, sir. Not much in the habit of such travelling
          yourself, I think, sir?"</para>

          <para>"Not of late years. It is fifteen years since
          we--since I-- came last from France."</para>

          <para>"Indeed, sir? That was before my time here, sir.
          Before our people's time here, sir. The George was in
          other hands at that time, sir."</para>

          <para>"I believe so."</para>

          <para>"But I would hold a pretty wager, sir, that a House
          like Tellson and Company was flourishing, a matter of
          fifty, not to speak of fifteen years ago?"</para>

          <para>"You might treble that, and say a hundred and
          fifty, yet not be far from the truth."</para>

          <para>"Indeed, sir!"</para>

          <para>Rounding his mouth and both his eyes, as he stepped
          backward from the table, the waiter shifted his napkin
          from his right arm to his left, dropped into a
          comfortable attitude, and stood surveying the guest while
          he ate and drank, as from an observatory or watchtower.
          According to the immemorial usage of waiters in all
          ages.</para>

          <para>When Mr. Lorry had finished his breakfast, he went
          out for a stroll on the beach. The little narrow, crooked
          town of Dover hid itself away from the beach, and ran its
          head into the chalk cliffs, like a marine ostrich. The
          beach was a desert of heaps of sea and stones tumbling
          wildly about, and the sea did what it liked, and what it
          liked was destruction. It thundered at the town, and
          thundered at the cliffs, and brought the coast down,
          madly. The air among the houses was of so strong a
          piscatory flavour that one might have supposed sick fish
          went up to be dipped in it, as sick people went down to
          be dipped in the sea. A little fishing was done in the
          port, and a quantity of strolling about by night, and
          looking seaward: particularly at those times when the
          tide made, and was near flood. Small tradesmen, who did
          no business whatever, sometimes unaccountably realised
          large fortunes, and it was remarkable that nobody in the
          neighbourhood could endure a lamplighter.</para>

          <para>As the day declined into the afternoon, and the
          air, which had been at intervals clear enough to allow
          the French coast to be seen, became again charged with
          mist and vapour, Mr. Lorry's thoughts seemed to cloud
          too. When it was dark, and he sat before the coffee-room
          fire, awaiting his dinner as he had awaited his
          breakfast, his mind was busily digging, digging, digging,
          in the live red coals.</para>

          <para>A bottle of good claret after dinner does a digger
          in the red coals no harm, otherwise than as it has a
          tendency to throw him out of work. Mr. Lorry had been
          idle a long time, and had just poured out his last
          glassful of wine with as complete an appearance of
          satisfaction as is ever to be found in an elderly
          gentleman of a fresh complexion who has got to the end of
          a bottle, when a rattling of wheels came up the narrow
          street, and rumbled into the inn-yard.</para>

          <para>He set down his glass untouched. "This is
          Mam'selle!" said he.</para>

          <para>In a very few minutes the waiter came in to
          announce that Miss Manette had arrived from London, and
          would be happy to see the gentleman from
          Tellson's.</para>

          <para>"So soon?"</para>

          <para>Miss Manette had taken some refreshment on the
          road, and required none then, and was extremely anxious
          to see the gentleman from Tellson's immediately, if it
          suited his pleasure and convenience.</para>

          <para>The gentleman from Tellson's had nothing left for
          it but to empty his glass with an air of stolid
          desperation, settle his odd little flaxen wig at the
          ears, and follow the waiter to Miss Manette's apartment.
          It was a large, dark room, furnished in a funereal manner
          with black horsehair, and loaded with heavy dark tables.
          These had been oiled and oiled, until the two tall
          candles on the table in the middle of the room were
          gloomily reflected on every leaf; as if THEY were buried,
          in deep graves of black mahogany, and no light to speak
          of could be expected from them until they were dug
          out.</para>

          <para>The obscurity was so difficult to penetrate that
          Mr. Lorry, picking his way over the well-worn Turkey
          carpet, supposed</para>

          <para>Miss Manette to be, for the moment, in some
          adjacent room, until, having got past the two tall
          candles, he saw standing to receive him by the table
          between them and the fire, a young lady of not more than
          seventeen, in a riding-cloak, and still holding her straw
          travelling- hat by its ribbon in her hand. As his eyes
          rested on a short, slight, pretty figure, a quantity of
          golden hair, a pair of blue eyes that met his own with an
          inquiring look, and a forehead with a singular capacity
          (remembering how young and smooth it was), of rifting and
          knitting itself into an expression that was not quite one
          of perplexity, or wonder, or alarm, or merely of a bright
          fixed attention, though it included all the four
          expressions-as his eyes rested on these things, a sudden
          vivid likeness passed before him, of a child whom he had
          held in his arms on the passage across that very Channel,
          one cold time, when the hail drifted heavily and the sea
          ran high. The likeness passed away, like a breath along
          the surface of the gaunt pier-glass behind her, on the
          frame of which, a hospital procession of negro cupids,
          several headless and all cripples, were offering black
          baskets of Dead Sea fruit to black divinities of the
          feminine gender-and he made his formal bow to Miss
          Manette.</para>

          <para>"Pray take a seat, sir." In a very clear and
          pleasant young voice; a little foreign in its accent, but
          a very little indeed.</para>

          <para>"I kiss your hand, miss," said Mr. Lorry, with the
          manners of an earlier date, as he made his formal bow
          again, and took his seat.</para>

          <para>"I received a letter from the Bank, sir, yesterday,
          informing me that some intelligence--or
          discovery--"</para>

          <para>"The word is not material, miss; either word will
          do."</para>

          <para>"--respecting the small property of my poor father,
          whom I never saw--so long dead--"</para>

          <para>Mr. Lorry moved in his chair, and cast a troubled
          look towards the hospital procession of negro cupids. As
          if THEY had any help for anybody in their absurd
          baskets!</para>

          <para>"--rendered it necessary that I should go to Paris,
          there to communicate with a gentleman of the Bank, so
          good as to be despatched to Paris for the
          purpose."</para>

          <para>"Myself."</para>

          <para>"As I was prepared to hear, sir."</para>

          <para>She curtseyed to him (young ladies made curtseys in
          those days), with a pretty desire to convey to him that
          she felt how much older and wiser he was than she. He
          made her another bow.</para>

          <para>"I replied to the Bank, sir, that as it was
          considered necessary, by those who know, and who are so
          kind as to advise me, that I should go to France, and
          that as I am an orphan and have no friend who could go
          with me, I should esteem it highly if I might be
          permitted to place myself, during the journey, under that
          worthy gentleman's protection. The gentleman had left
          London, but I think a messenger was sent after him to beg
          the favour of his waiting for me here."</para>

          <para>"I was happy," said Mr. Lorry, "to be entrusted
          with the charge. I shall be more happy to execute
          it."</para>

          <para>"Sir, I thank you indeed. I thank you very
          gratefully. It was told me by the Bank that the gentleman
          would explain to me the details of the business, and that
          I must prepare myself to find them of a surprising
          nature. I have done my best to prepare myself, and I
          naturally have a strong and eager interest to know what
          they are."</para>

          <para>"Naturally," said Mr. Lorry. "Yes--I--"</para>

          <para>After a pause, he added, again settling the crisp
          flaxen wig at the ears, "It is very difficult to
          begin."</para>

          <para>He did not begin, but, in his indecision, met her
          glance. The young forehead lifted itself into that
          singular expression--but it was pretty and
          characteristic, besides being singular--and she raised
          her hand, as if with an involuntary action she caught at,
          or stayed some passing shadow.</para>

          <para>"Are you quite a stranger to me, sir?"</para>

          <para>"Am I not?" Mr. Lorry opened his hands, and
          extended them outwards with an argumentative
          smile.</para>

          <para>Between the eyebrows and just over the little
          feminine nose, the line of which was as delicate and fine
          as it was possible to be, the expression deepened itself
          as she took her seat thoughtfully in the chair by which
          she had hitherto remained standing. He watched her as she
          mused, and the moment she raised her eyes again, went
          on:</para>

          <para>"In your adopted country, I presume, I cannot do
          better than address you as a young English lady, Miss
          Manette?"</para>

          <para>"If you please, sir."</para>

          <para>"Miss Manette, I am a man of business. I have a
          business charge to acquit myself of. In your reception of
          it, don't heed me any more than if I was a speaking
          machine-truly, I am not much else. I will, with your
          leave, relate to you, miss, the story of one of our
          customers."</para>

          <para>"Story!"</para>

          <para>He seemed wilfully to mistake the word she had
          repeated, when he added, in a hurry, "Yes, customers; in
          the banking business we usually call our connection our
          customers. He was a French gentleman; a scientific
          gentleman; a man of great acquirements-- a
          Doctor."</para>

          <para>"Not of Beauvais?"</para>

          <para>"Why, yes, of Beauvais. Like Monsieur Manette, your
          father, the gentleman was of Beauvais. Like Monsieur
          Manette, your father, the gentleman was of repute in
          Paris. I had the honour of knowing him there. Our
          relations were business relations, but confidential. I
          was at that time in our French House, and had been--oh!
          twenty years."</para>

          <para>"At that time--I may ask, at what time,
          sir?"</para>

          <para>"I speak, miss, of twenty years ago. He married--an
          English lady--and I was one of the trustees. His affairs,
          like the affairs of many other French gentlemen and
          French families, were entirely in Tellson's hands. In a
          similar way I am, or I have been, trustee of one kind or
          other for scores of our customers. These are mere
          business relations, miss; there is no friendship in them,
          no particular interest, nothing like sentiment. I have
          passed from one to another, in the course of my business
          life, just as I pass from one of our customers to another
          in the course of my business day; in short, I have no
          feelings; I am a mere machine. To go on--"</para>

          <para>"But this is my father's story, sir; and I begin to
          think" --the curiously roughened forehead was very intent
          upon him--"that when I was left an orphan through my
          mother's surviving my father only two years, it was you
          who brought me to England. I am almost sure it was
          you."</para>

          <para>Mr. Lorry took the hesitating little hand that
          confidingly advanced to take his, and he put it with some
          ceremony to his lips. He then conducted the young lady
          straightway to her chair again, and, holding the
          chair-back with his left hand, and using his right by
          turns to rub his chin, pull his wig at the ears, or point
          what he said, stood looking down into her face while she
          sat looking up into his.</para>

          <para>"Miss Manette, it WAS I. And you will see how truly
          I spoke of myself just now, in saying I had no feelings,
          and that all the relations I hold with my
          fellow-creatures are mere business relations, when you
          reflect that I have never seen you since. No; you have
          been the ward of Tellson's House since, and I have been
          busy with the other business of Tellson's House since.
          Feelings! I have no time for them, no chance of them. I
          pass my whole life, miss, in turning an immense pecuniary
          Mangle."</para>

          <para>After this odd description of his daily routine of
          employment, Mr. Lorry flattened his flaxen wig upon his
          head with both hands (which was most unnecessary, for
          nothing could be flatter than its shining surface was
          before), and resumed his former attitude.</para>

          <para>"So far, miss (as you have remarked), this is the
          story of your gretted father. Now comes the difference.
          If your father had not died when he did--Don't be
          frightened! How you start!"</para>

          <para>She did, indeed, start. And she caught his wrist
          with both her hands.</para>

          <para>"Pray," said Mr. Lorry, in a soothing tone,
          bringing his left hand from the back of the chair to lay
          it on the supplicatory fingers that clasped him in so
          violent a tremble: "pray control your agitation-- a
          matter of business. As I was saying--"</para>

          <para>Her look so discomposed him that he stopped,
          wandered, and began anew:</para>

          <para>"As I was saying; if Monsieur Manette had not died;
          if he had suddenly and silently disappeared; if he had
          been spirited away; if it had not been difficult to guess
          to what dreadful place, though no art could trace him; if
          he had an enemy in some compatriot who could exercise a
          privilege that I in my own time have known the boldest
          people afraid to speak of in a whisper, across the water
          there; for instance, the privilege of filling up blank
          forms for the consignment of any one to the oblivion of a
          prison for any length of time; if his wife had implored
          the king, the queen, the court, the clergy, for any
          tidings of him, and all quite in vain;--then the history
          of your father would have been the history of this
          unfortunate gentleman, the Doctor of Beauvais."</para>

          <para>"I entreat you to tell me more, sir."</para>

          <para>"I will. I am going to. You can bear it?"</para>

          <para>"I can bear anything but the uncertainty you leave
          me in at this moment."</para>

          <para>"You speak collectedly, and you--ARE collected.
          That's good!" (Though his manner was less satisfied than
          his words.) "A matter of business. Regard it as a matter
          of business-business that must be done. Now if this
          doctor's wife, though a lady of great courage and spirit,
          had suffered so intensely from this cause before her
          little child was born--"</para>

          <para>"The little child was a daughter, sir."</para>

          <para>"A daughter. A-a-matter of business--don't be
          distressed. Miss, if the poor lady had suffered so
          intensely before her little child was born, that she came
          to the determination of sparing the poor child the
          inheritance of any part of the agony she had known the
          pains of, by rearing her in the belief that her father
          was dead-- No, don't kneel! In Heaven's name why should
          you kneel to me!"</para>

          <para>"For the truth. O dear, good, compassionate sir,
          for the truth!"</para>

          <para>"A-a matter of business. You confuse me, and how
          can I transact business if I am confused? Let us be
          clear-headed. If you could kindly mention now, for
          instance, what nine times ninepence are, or how many
          shillings in twenty guineas, it would be so encouraging.
          I should be so much more at my ease about your state of
          mind."</para>

          <para>Without directly answering to this appeal, she sat
          so still when he had very gently raised her, and the
          hands that had not ceased to clasp his wrists were so
          much more steady than they had been, that she
          communicated some reassurance to Mr. Jarvis Lorry.</para>

          <para>"That's right, that's right. Courage! Business! You
          have business before you; useful business. Miss Manette,
          your mother took this course with you. And when she
          died--I believe broken-hearted-- having never slackened
          her unavailing search for your father, she left you, at
          two years old, to grow to be blooming, beautiful, and
          happy, without the dark cloud upon you of living in
          uncertainty whether your father soon wore his heart out
          in prison, or wasted there through many lingering
          years."</para>

          <para>As he said the words he looked down, with an
          admiring pity, on the flowing golden hair; as if he
          pictured to himself that it might have been already
          tinged with grey.</para>

          <para>"You know that your parents had no great
          possession, and that what they had was secured to your
          mother and to you. There has been no new discovery, of
          money, or of any other property; but--"</para>

          <para>He felt his wrist held closer, and he stopped. The
          expression in the forehead, which had so particularly
          attracted his notice, and which was now immovable, had
          deepened into one of pain and horror.</para>

          <para>"But he has been-been found. He is alive. Greatly
          changed, it is too probable; almost a wreck, it is
          possible; though we will hope the best. Still, alive.
          Your father has been taken to the house of an old servant
          in Paris, and we are going there: I, to identify him if I
          can: you, to restore him to life, love, duty, rest,
          comfort."</para>

          <para>A shiver ran through her frame, and from it through
          his. She said, in a low, distinct, awe-stricken voice, as
          if she were saying it in a dream,</para>

          <para>"I am going to see his Ghost! It will be his
          Ghost--not him!"</para>

          <para>Mr. Lorry quietly chafed the hands that held his
          arm. "There, there, there! See now, see now! The best and
          the worst are known to you, now. You are well on your way
          to the poor wronged gentleman, and, with a fair sea
          voyage, and a fair land journey, you will be soon at his
          dear side."</para>

          <para>She repeated in the same tone, sunk to a whisper,
          "I have been free, I have been happy, yet his Ghost has
          never haunted me!"</para>

          <para>"Only one thing more," said Mr. Lorry, laying
          stress upon it as a wholesome means of enforcing her
          attention: "he has been found under another name; his
          own, long forgotten or long concealed. It would be worse
          than useless now to inquire which; worse than useless to
          seek to know whether he has been for years overlooked, or
          always designedly held prisoner. It would be worse than
          useless now to make any inquiries, because it would be
          dangerous. Better not to mention the subject, anywhere or
          in any way, and to remove him--for a while at all
          events-- out of France. Even I, safe as an Englishman,
          and even Tellson's, important as they are to French
          credit, avoid all naming of the matter. I carry about me,
          not a scrap of writing openly referring to it. This is a
          secret service altogether. My credentials, entries, and
          memoranda, are all comprehended in the one line,
          `Recalled to Life;' which may mean anything. But what is
          the matter! She doesn't notice a word! Miss
          Manette!"</para>

          <para>Perfectly still and silent, and not even fallen
          back in her chair, she sat under his hand, utterly
          insensible; with her eyes open and fixed upon him, and
          with that last expression looking as if it were carved or
          branded into her forehead. So close was her hold upon his
          arm, that he feared to detach himself lest he should hurt
          her; therefore he called out loudly for assistance
          without moving.</para>

          <para>A wild-looking woman, whom even in his agitation,
          Mr. Lorry observed to be all of a red colour, and to have
          red hair, and to be dressed in some extraordinary
          tight-fitting fashion, and to have on her head a most
          wonderful bonnet like a Grenadier wooden measure, and
          good measure too, or a great Stilton cheese, came running
          into the room in advance of the inn servants, and soon
          settled the question of his detachment from the poor
          young lady, by laying a brawny hand upon his chest, and
          sending him flying back against the nearest wall.</para>

          <para>("I really think this must be a man!" was Mr.
          Lorry's breathless reflection, simultaneously with his
          coming against the wall.)</para>

          <para>"Why, look at you all!" bawled this figure,
          addressing the inn servants. "Why don't you go and fetch
          things, instead of standing there staring at me? I am not
          so much to look at, am I? Why don't you go and fetch
          things? I'll let you know, if you don't bring
          smelling-salts, cold water, and vinegar, quick, I
          will."</para>

          <para>There was an immediate dispersal for these
          restoratives, and she softly laid the patient on a sofa,
          and tended her with great skill and gentleness: calling
          her "my precious!" and "my bird!" and spreading her
          golden hair aside over her shoulders with great pride and
          care.</para>

          <para>"And you in brown!" she said, indignantly turning
          to Mr. Lorry; couldn't you tell her what you had to tell
          her, without frightening her to death? Look at her, with
          her pretty pale face and her cold hands. Do you call THAT
          being a Banker?"</para>

          <para>Mr. Lorry was so exceedingly disconcerted by a
          question so hard to answer, that he could only look on,
          at a distance, with much feebler sympathy and humility,
          while the strong woman, having banished the inn servants
          under the mysterious penalty of "letting them know"
          something not mentioned if they stayed there, staring,
          recovered her charge by a regular series of gradations,
          and coaxed her to lay her drooping head upon her
          shoulder.</para>

          <para>"I hope she will do well now," said Mr.
          Lorry.</para>

          <para>"No thanks to you in brown, if she does. My darling
          pretty!"</para>

          <para>"I hope," said Mr. Lorry, after another pause of
          feeble sympathy and humility, "that you accompany Miss
          Manette to France?"</para>

          <para>"A likely thing, too!" replied the strong woman.
          "If it was ever intended that I should go across salt
          water, do you suppose Providence would have cast my lot
          in an island?"</para>

          <para>This being another question hard to answer, Mr.
          Jarvis Lorry withdrew to consider it.</para>
        </chapter>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>V</chapnum>

            <title>The Wine-shop</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>A large cask of wine had been dropped and broken,
          in the street. The accident had happened in getting it
          out of a cart; the cask had tumbled out with a run, the
          hoops had burst, and it lay on the stones just outside
          the door of the wine-shop, shattered like a
          walnut-shell.</para>

          <para>All the people within reach had suspended their
          business, or their idleness, to run to the spot and drink
          the wine. The rough, irregular stones of the street,
          pointing every way, and designed, one might have thought,
          expressly to lame all living creatures that approached
          them, had dammed it into little pools; these were
          surrounded, each by its own jostling group or crowd,
          according to its size. Some men kneeled down, made scoops
          of their two hands joined, and sipped, or tried to help
          women, who bent over their shoulders, to sip, before the
          wine had all run out between their fingers. Others, men
          and women, dipped in the puddles with little mugs of
          mutilated earthenware, or even with handkerchiefs from
          women's heads, which were squeezed dry into infants'
          mouths; others made small mud- embankments, to stem the
          wine as it ran; others, directed by lookers-on up at high
          windows, darted here and there, to cut off little streams
          of wine that started away in new directions; others
          devoted themselves to the sodden and lee-dyed pieces of
          the cask, licking, and even champing the moister
          wine-rotted fragments with eager relish. There was no
          drainage to carry off the wine, and not only did it all
          get taken up, but so much mud got taken up along with it,
          that there might have been a scavenger in the street, if
          anybody acquainted with it could have believed in such a
          miraculous presence.</para>

          <para>A shrill sound of laughter and of amused
          voices--voices of men, women, and children--resounded in
          the street while this wine game lasted. There was little
          roughness in the sport, and much playfulness. There was a
          special companionship in it, an observable inclination on
          the part of every one to join some other one, which led,
          especially among the luckier or lighter-hearted, to
          frolicsome embraces, drinking of healths, shaking of
          hands, and even joining of hands and dancing, a dozen
          together. When the wine was gone, and the places where it
          had been most abundant were raked into a gridiron-pattern
          by fingers, these demonstrations ceased, as suddenly as
          they had broken out. The man who had left his saw
          sticking in the firewood he was cutting, set it in motion
          again; the women who had left on a door-step the little
          pot of hot ashes, at which she had been trying to soften
          the pain in her own starved fingers and toes, or in those
          of her child, returned to it; men with bare arms, matted
          locks, and cadaverous faces, who had emerged into the
          winter light from cellars, moved away, to descend again;
          and a gloom gathered on the scene that appeared more
          natural to it than sunshine.</para>

          <para>The wine was red wine, and had stained the ground
          of the narrow street in the suburb of Saint Antoine, in
          Paris, where it was spilled. It had stained many hands,
          too, and many faces, and many naked feet, and many wooden
          shoes. The hands of the man who sawed the wood, left red
          marks on the billets; and the forehead of the woman who
          nursed her baby, was stained with the stain of the old
          rag she wound about her head again. Those who had been
          greedy with the staves of the cask, had acquired a
          tigerish smear about the mouth; and one tall joker so
          besmirched, his head more out of a long squalid bag of a
          nightcap than in it, scrawled upon a wall with his finger
          dipped in muddy wine-lees--BLOOD.</para>

          <para>The time was to come, when that wine too would be
          spilled on the street-stones, and when the stain of it
          would be red upon many there.</para>

          <para>And now that the cloud settled on Saint Antoine,
          which a momentary gleam had driven from his sacred
          countenance, the darkness of it was heavy-cold, dirt,
          sickness, ignorance, and want, were the lords in waiting
          on the saintly presence-nobles of great power all of
          them; but, most especially the last. Samples of a people
          that had undergone a terrible grinding and regrinding in
          the mill, and certainly not in the fabulous mill which
          ground old people young, shivered at every corner, passed
          in and out at every doorway, looked from every window,
          fluttered in every vestige of a garment that the wind
          shook. The mill which had worked them down, was the mill
          that grinds young people old; the children had ancient
          faces and grave voices; and upon them, and upon the grown
          faces, and ploughed into every furrow of age and coming
          up afresh, was the sigh, Hunger. It was prevalent
          everywhere. Hunger was pushed out of the tall houses, in
          the wretched clothing that hung upon poles and lines;
          Hunger was patched into them with straw and rag and wood
          and paper; Hunger was repeated in every fragment of the
          small modicum of firewood that the man sawed off; Hunger
          stared down from the smokeless chimneys, and started up
          from the filthy street that had no offal, among its
          refuse, of anything to eat. Hunger was the inscription on
          the baker's shelves, written in every small loaf of his
          scanty stock of bad bread; at the sausage-shop, in every
          dead-dog preparation that was offered for sale. Hunger
          rattled its dry bones among the roasting chestnuts in the
          turned cylinder; Hunger was shred into atomics in every
          farthing porringer of husky chips of potato, fried with
          some reluctant drops of oil.</para>

          <para>Its abiding place was in all things fitted to it. A
          narrow winding street, full of offence and stench, with
          other narrow winding streets diverging, all peopled by
          rags and nightcaps, and all smelling of rags and
          nightcaps, and all visible things with a brooding look
          upon them that looked ill. In the hunted air of the
          people there was yet some wild-beast thought of the
          possibility of turning at bay. Depressed and slinking
          though they were, eyes of fire were not wanting among
          them; nor compressed lips, white with what they
          suppressed; nor foreheads knitted into the likeness of
          the gallows-rope they mused about enduring, or
          inflicting. The trade signs (and they were almost as many
          as the shops) were, all, grim illustrations of Want. The
          butcher and the porkman painted up, only the leanest
          scrags of meat; the baker, the coarsest of meagre loaves.
          The people rudely pictured as drinking in the wine-shops,
          croaked over their scanty measures of thin wine and beer,
          and were gloweringly confidential together. Nothing was
          represented in a flourishing condition, save tools and
          weapons; but, the cutler's knives and axes were sharp and
          bright, the smith's hammers were heavy, and the
          gunmaker's stock was murderous. The crippling stones of
          the pavement, with their many little reservoirs of mud
          and water, had no footways, but broke off abruptly at the
          doors. The kennel, to make amends, ran down the middle of
          the street--when it ran at all: which was only after
          heavy rains, and then it ran, by many eccentric fits,
          into the houses. Across the streets, at wide intervals,
          one clumsy lamp was slung by a rope and pulley; at night,
          when the lamplighter had let these down, and lighted, and
          hoisted them again, a feeble grove of dim wicks swung in
          a sickly manner overhead, as if they were at sea. Indeed
          they were at sea, and the ship and crew were in peril of
          tempest.</para>

          <para>For, the time was to come, when the gaunt
          scarecrows of that region should have watched the
          lamplighter, in their idleness and hunger, so long, as to
          conceive the idea of improving on his method, and hauling
          up men by those ropes and pulleys, to flare upon the
          darkness of their condition. But, the time was not come
          yet; and every wind that blew over France shook the rags
          of the scarecrows in vain, for the birds, fine of song
          and feather, took no warning.</para>

          <para>The wine-shop was a corner shop, better than most
          others in its appearance and degree, and the master of
          the wine-shop had stood outside it, in a yellow waistcoat
          and green breeches, looking on at the struggle for the
          lost wine. "It's not my affair," said he, with a final
          shrug of the shoulders. "The people from the market did
          it. Ut them bring another."</para>

          <para>There, his eyes happening to catch the tall joker
          writing up his joke, he called to him across the
          way:</para>

          <para>"Say, then, my Gaspard, what do you do
          there?"</para>

          <para>The fellow pointed to his joke with immense
          significance, as is often the way with his tribe. It
          missed its mark, and completely failed, as is often the
          way with his tribe too.</para>

          <para>"What now? Are you a subject for the mad hospital?"
          said the wine-shop keeper, crossing the road, and
          obliterating the jest with a handful of mud, picked up
          for the purpose, and smeared over it. "Why do you write
          in the public streets? Is there--tell me thou--is there
          no other place to write such words in?"</para>

          <para>In his expostulation he dropped his cleaner hand
          (perhaps accidentally, perhaps not) upon the joker's
          heart. The joker rapped it with his own, took a nimble
          spring upward, and came down in a fantastic dancing
          attitude, with one of his stained shoes jerked off his
          foot into his hand, and held out. A joker of an
          extremely, not to say wolfishly practical character, he
          looked, under those circumstances.</para>

          <para>"Put it on, put it on," said the other. "Call wine,
          wine; and finish there." With that advice, he wiped his
          soiled hand upon the joker's dress, such as it was--quite
          deliberately, as having dirtied the hand on his account;
          and then recrossed the road and entered the
          wine-shop.</para>

          <para>This wine-shop keeper was a bull-necked,
          martial-looking man of thirty, and he should have been of
          a hot temperament, for, although it was a bitter day, he
          wore no coat, but carried one slung over his shoulder.
          His shirt-sleeves were rolled up, too, and his brown arms
          were bare to the elbows. Neither did he wear anything
          more on his head than his own crisply-curling short dark
          hair. He was a dark man altogether, with good eyes and a
          good bold breadth between them. Good-humoured looking on
          the whole, but implacable-looking, too; evidently a man
          of a strong resolution and a set purpose; a man not
          desirable to be met, rushing down a narrow pass with a
          gulf on either side, for nothing would turn the
          man.</para>

          <para>Madame Defarge, his wife, sat in the shop behind
          the counter as he came in. Madame Defarge was a stout
          woman of about his own age, with a watchful eye that
          seldom seemed to look at anything, a large hand heavily
          ringed, a steady face, strong features, and great
          composure of manner. There was a character about Madame
          Defarge, from which one might have predicated that she
          did not often make mistakes against herself in any of the
          reckonings over which she presided. Madame Defarge being
          sensitive to cold, was wrapped in fur, and had a quantity
          of bright shawl twined about her head, though not to the
          concealment of her large earrings. Her knitting was
          before her, but she had laid it down to pick her teeth
          with a toothpick. Thus engaged, with her right elbow
          supported by her left hand, Madame Defarge said nothing
          when her lord came in, but coughed just one grain of
          cough. This, in combination with the lifting of her
          darkly defined eyebrows over her toothpick by the breadth
          of a line, suggested to her husband that he would do well
          to look round the shop among the customers, for any new
          customer who had dropped in while he stepped over the
          way.</para>

          <para>The wine-shop keeper accordingly rolled his eyes
          about, until they rested upon an elderly gentleman and a
          young lady, who were seated in a corner. Other company
          were there: two playing cards, two playing dominoes,
          three standing by the counter lengthening out a short
          supply of wine. As he passed behind the counter, he took
          notice that the elderly gentleman said in a look to the
          young lady, "This is our man."</para>

          <para>"What the devil do YOU do in that galley there?"
          said Monsieur Defarge to himself; "I don't know
          you."</para>

          <para>But, he feigned not to notice the two strangers,
          and fell into discourse with the triumvirate of customers
          who were drinking at the counter.</para>

          <para>"How goes it, Jacques?" said one of these three to
          Monsieur Defarge. "Is all the spilt wine
          swallowed?"</para>

          <para>"Every drop, Jacques," answered Monsieur
          Defarge.</para>

          <para>When this interchange of Christian name was
          effected, Madame Defarge, picking her teeth with her
          toothpick, coughed another grain of cough, and raised her
          eyebrows by the breadth of another line.</para>

          <para>"It is not often," said the second of the three,
          addressing Monsieur Defarge, "that many of these
          miserable beasts know the taste of wine, or of anything
          but black bread and death. Is it not so, Jacques?"</para>

          <para>"It is so, Jacques," Monsieur Defarge
          returned.</para>

          <para>At this second interchange of the Christian name,
          Madame Defarge, still using her toothpick with profound
          composure, coughed another grain of cough, and raised her
          eyebrows by the breadth of another line.</para>

          <para>The last of the three now said his say, as he put
          down his empty drinking vessel and smacked his
          lips.</para>

          <para>"Ah! So much the worse! A bitter taste it is that
          such poor cattle always have in their mouths, and hard
          lives they live, Jacques. Am I right, Jacques?"</para>

          <para>"You are right, Jacques," was the response of
          Monsieur Defarge.</para>

          <para>This third interchange of the Christian name was
          completed at the moment when Madame Defarge put her
          toothpick by, kept her eyebrows up, and slightly rustled
          in her seat.</para>

          <para>"Hold then! True!" muttered her husband.
          "Gentlemen--my wife!"</para>

          <para>The three customers pulled off their hats to Madame
          Defarge, with three flourishes. She acknowledged their
          homage by bending her head, and giving them a quick look.
          Then she glanced in a casual manner round the wine-shop,
          took up her knitting with great apparent calmness and
          repose of spirit, and became absorbed in it.</para>

          <para>"Gentlemen," said her husband, who had kept his
          bright eye observantly upon her, "good day. The chamber,
          furnished bachelor- fashion, that you wished to see, and
          were inquiring for when I stepped out, is on the fifth
          floor. The doorway of the staircase gives on the little
          courtyard close to the left here," pointing with his
          hand, "near to the window of my establishment. But, now
          that I remember, one of you has already been there, and
          can show the way. Gentlemen, adieu!"</para>

          <para>They paid for their wine, and left the place. The
          eyes of Monsieur Defarge were studying his wife at her
          knitting when the elderly gentleman advanced from his
          corner, and begged the favour of a word.</para>

          <para>"Willingly, sir," said Monsieur Defarge, and
          quietly stepped with him to the door.</para>

          <para>Their conference was very short, but very decided.
          Almost at the first word, Monsieur Defarge started and
          became deeply attentive. It had not lasted a minute, when
          he nodded and went out. The gentleman then beckoned to
          the young lady, and they, too, went out. Madame Defarge
          knitted with nimble fingers and steady eyebrows, and saw
          nothing.</para>

          <para>Mr. Jarvis Lorry and Miss Manette, emerging from
          the wine-shop thus, joined Monsieur Defarge in the
          doorway to which he had directed his own company just
          before. It opened from a stinking little black courtyard,
          and was the general public entrance to a great pile of
          houses, inhabited by a great number of people. In the
          gloomy tile- paved entry to the gloomy tile-paved
          staircase, Monsieur Defarge bent down on one knee to the
          child of his old master, and put her hand to his lips. It
          was a gentle action, but not at all gently done; a very
          remarkable transformation had come over him in a few
          seconds. He had no good-humour in his face, nor any
          openness of aspect left, but had become a secret, angry,
          dangerous man.</para>

          <para>"It is very high; it is a little difficult. Better
          to begin slowly." Thus, Monsieur Defarge, in a stem
          voice, to Mr. Lorry, as they began ascending the
          stairs.</para>

          <para>"Is he alone?" the latter whispered.</para>

          <para>"Alone! God help him, who should be with him!" said
          the other, in the same low voice.</para>

          <para>"Is he always alone, then?"</para>

          <para>"Yes."</para>

          <para>"Of his own desire?"</para>

          <para>"Of his own necessity. As he was, when I first saw
          him after they found me and demanded to know if I would
          take him, and, at my peril be discreet--as he was then,
          so he is now."</para>

          <para>"He is greatly changed?"</para>

          <para>"Changed!"</para>

          <para>The keeper of the wine-shop stopped to strike the
          wall with his hand, and mutter a tremendous curse. No
          direct answer could have been half so forcible. Mr.
          Lorry's spirits grew heavier and heavier, as he and his
          two companions ascended higher and higher.</para>

          <para>Such a staircase, with its accessories, in the
          older and more crowded parts of Paris, would be bad
          enough now; but, at that time, it was vile indeed to
          unaccustomed and unhardened senses. Every little
          habitation within the great foul nest of one high
          building--that is to say, the room or rooms within every
          door that opened on the general staircase--left its own
          heap of refuse on its own landing, besides flinging other
          refuse from its own windows. The uncontrollable and
          hopeless mass of decomposition so engendered, would have
          polluted the air, even if poverty and deprivation had not
          loaded it with their intangible impurities; the two bad
          sources combined made it almost insupportable. Through
          such an atmosphere, by a steep dark shaft of dirt and
          poison, the way lay. Yielding to his own disturbance of
          mind, and to his young companion's agitation, which
          became greater every instant, Mr. Jarvis Lorry twice
          stopped to rest. Each of these stoppages was made at a
          doleful grating, by which any languishing good airs that
          were left uncorrupted, seemed to escape, and all spoilt
          and sickly vapours seemed to crawl in. Through the rusted
          bars, tastes, rather than glimpses, were caught of the
          jumbled neighbourhood; and nothing within range, nearer
          or lower than the summits of the two great towers of
          Notre-Dame, had any promise on it of healthy life or
          wholesome aspirations.</para>

          <para>At last, the top of the staircase was gained, and
          they stopped for the third time. There was yet an upper
          staircase, of a steeper inclination and of contracted
          dimensions, to be ascended, before the garret story was
          reached. The keeper of the wine-shop, always going a
          little in advance, and always going on the side which Mr.
          Lorry took, as though he dreaded to be asked any question
          by the young lady, turned himself about here, and,
          carefully feeling in the pockets of the coat he carried
          over his shoulder, took out a key.</para>

          <para>"The door is locked then, my friend?" said Mr.
          Lorry, surprised.</para>

          <para>"Ay. Yes," was the grim reply of Monsieur
          Defarge.</para>

          <para>"You think it necessary to keep the unfortunate
          gentleman so retired?"</para>

          <para>"I think it necessary to turn the key." Monsieur
          Defarge whispered it closer in his ear, and frowned
          heavily.</para>

          <para>"Why?"</para>

          <para>"Why! Because he has lived so long, locked up, that
          he would be frightened-rave-tear himself to
          pieces-die-come to I know not what harm--if his door was
          left open."</para>

          <para>"Is it possible!" exclaimed Mr. Lorry.</para>

          <para>"Is it possible!" repeated Defarge, bitterly. "Yes.
          And a beautiful world we live in, when it IS possible,
          and when many other such things are possible, and not
          only possible, but done--done, see you!--under that sky
          there, every day. Long live the Devil. Let us go
          on."</para>

          <para>This dialogue had been held in so very low a
          whisper, that not a word of it had reached the young
          lady's ears. But, by this time she trembled under such
          strong emotion, and her face expressed such deep anxiety,
          and, above all, such dread and terror, that Mr. Lorry
          felt it incumbent on him to speak a word or two of
          reassurance.</para>

          <para>"Courage, dear miss! Courage! Business! The worst
          will be over in a moment; it is but passing the
          room-door, and the worst is over. Then, all the good you
          bring to him, all the relief, all the happiness you bring
          to him, begin. Let our good friend here, assist you on
          that side. That's well, friend Defarge. Come, now.
          Business, business!"</para>

          <para>They went up slowly and softly. The staircase was
          short, and they were soon at the top. There, as it had an
          abrupt turn in it, they came all at once in sight of
          three men, whose heads were bent down close together at
          the side of a door, and who were intently looking into
          the room to which the door belonged, through some chinks
          or holes in the wall. On hearing footsteps close at hand,
          these three turned, and rose, and showed themselves to be
          the three of one name who had been drinking in the
          wine-shop.</para>

          <para>"I forgot them in the surprise of your visit,"
          explained Monsieur Defarge. "Leave us, good boys; we have
          business here."</para>

          <para>The three glided by, and went silently down.</para>

          <para>There appearing to be no other door on that floor,
          and the keeper of the wine-shop going straight to this
          one when they were left alone, Mr. Lorry asked him in a
          whisper, with a little anger:</para>

          <para>"Do you make a show of Monsieur Manette?"</para>

          <para>"I show him, in the way you have seen, to a chosen
          few."</para>

          <para>"Is that well?"</para>

          <para>"_I_ think it is well."</para>

          <para>"Who are the few? How do you choose them?"</para>

          <para>"I choose them as real men, of my name--Jacques is
          my name--to whom the sight is likely to do good. Enough;
          you are English; that is another thing. Stay there, if
          you please, a little moment."</para>

          <para>With an admonitory gesture to keep them back, he
          stooped, and looked in through the crevice in the wall.
          Soon raising his head again, he struck twice or thrice
          upon the door--evidently with no other object than to
          make a noise there. With the same intention, he drew the
          key across it, three or four times, before he put it
          clumsily into the lock, and turned it as heavily as he
          could.</para>

          <para>The door slowly opened inward under his hand, and
          he looked into the room and said something. A faint voice
          answered something. Little more than a single syllable
          could have been spoken on either side.</para>

          <para>He looked back over his shoulder, and beckoned them
          to enter. Mr. Lorry got his arm securely round the
          daughter's waist, and held her; for he felt that she was
          sinking.</para>

          <para>"A-a-a-business, business!" he urged, with a
          moisture that was not of business shining on his cheek.
          "Come in, come in!"</para>

          <para>"I am afraid of it," she answered,
          shuddering.</para>

          <para>"Of it? What?"</para>

          <para>"I mean of him. Of my father."</para>

          <para>Rendered in a manner desperate, by her state and by
          the beckoning of their conductor, he drew over his neck
          the arm that shook upon his shoulder, lifted her a
          little, and hurried her into the room. He sat her down
          just within the door, and held her, clinging to
          him.</para>

          <para>Defarge drew out the key, closed the door, locked
          it on the inside, took out the key again, and held it in
          his hand. All this he did, methodically, and with as loud
          and harsh an accompaniment of noise as he could make.
          Finally, he walked across the room with a measured tread
          to where the window was. He stopped there, and faced
          round.</para>

          <para>The garret, built to be a depository for firewood
          and the like, was dim and dark: for, the window of dormer
          shape, was in truth a door in the roof, with a little
          crane over it for the hoisting up of stores from the
          street: unglazed, and closing up the middle in two
          pieces, like any other door of French construction. To
          exclude the cold, one half of this door was fast closed,
          and the other was opened but a very little way. Such a
          scanty portion of light was admitted through these means,
          that it was difficult, on first coming in, to see
          anything; and long habit alone could have slowly formed
          in any one, the ability to do any work requiring nicety
          in such obscurity. Yet, work of that kind was being done
          in the garret; for, with his back towards the door, and
          his face towards the window where the keeper of the
          wine-shop stood looking at him, a white-haired man sat on
          a low bench, stooping forward and very busy, making
          shoes.</para>
        </chapter>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>VI</chapnum>

            <title>The Shoemaker</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>"Good day!" said Monsieur Defarge, looking down at
          the white head that bent low over the shoemaking.</para>

          <para>It was raised for a moment, and a very faint voice
          responded to the salutation, as if it were at a
          distance:</para>

          <para>"Good day!"</para>

          <para>"You are still hard at work, I see?"</para>

          <para>After a long silence, the head was lifted for
          another moment, and the voice replied, "Yes--I am
          working." This time, a pair of haggard eyes had looked at
          the questioner, before the face had dropped again.</para>

          <para>The faintness of the voice was pitiable and
          dreadful. It was not the faintness of physical weakness,
          though confinement and hard fare no doubt had their part
          in it. Its deplorable peculiarity was, that it was the
          faintness of solitude and disuse. It was like the last
          feeble echo of a sound made long and long ago. So
          entirely had it lost the life and resonance of the human
          voice, that it affected the senses like a once beautiful
          colour faded away into a poor weak stain. So sunken and
          suppressed it was, that it was like a voice underground.
          So expressive it was, of a hopeless and lost creature,
          that a famished traveller, wearied out by lonely
          wandering in a wilderness, would have remembered home and
          friends in such a tone before lying down to die.</para>

          <para>Some minutes of silent work had passed: and the
          haggard eyes had looked up again: not with any interest
          or curiosity, but with a dull mechanical perception,
          beforehand, that the spot where the only visitor they
          were aware of had stood, was not yet empty.</para>

          <para>"I want," said Defarge, who had not removed his
          gaze from the shoemaker, "to let in a little more light
          here. You can bear a little more?"</para>

          <para>The shoemaker stopped his work; looked with a
          vacant air of listening, at the floor on one side of him;
          then similarly, at the floor on the other side of him;
          then, upward at the speaker.</para>

          <para>"What did you say?"</para>

          <para>"You can bear a little more light?"</para>

          <para>"I must bear it, if you let it in." (Laying the
          palest shadow of a stress upon the second word.)</para>

          <para>The opened half-door was opened a little further,
          and secured at that angle for the time. A broad ray of
          light fell into the garret, and showed the workman with
          an unfinished shoe upon his lap, pausing in his labour.
          His few common tools and various scraps of leather were
          at his feet and on his bench. He had a white beard,
          raggedly cut, but not very long, a hollow face, and
          exceedingly bright eyes. The hollowness and thinness of
          his face would have caused them to look large, under his
          yet dark eyebrows and his confused white hair, though
          they had been really otherwise; but, they were naturally
          large, and looked unnaturally so. His yellow rags of
          shirt lay open at the throat, and showed his body to be
          withered and worn. He, and his old canvas frock, and his
          loose stockings, and all his poor tatters of clothes,
          had, in a long seclusion from direct light and air, faded
          down to such a dull uniformity of parchment-yellow, that
          it would have been hard to say which was which.</para>

          <para>He had put up a hand between his eyes and the
          light, and the very bones of it seemed transparent. So he
          sat, with a steadfastly vacant gaze, pausing in his work.
          He never looked at the figure before him, without first
          looking down on this side of himself, then on that, as if
          he had lost the habit of associating place with sound; he
          never spoke, without first wandering in this manner, and
          forgetting to speak.</para>

          <para>"Are you going to finish that pair of shoes
          to-day?" asked Defarge, motioning to Mr. Lorry to come
          forward.</para>

          <para>"What did you say?"</para>

          <para>"Do you mean to finish that pair of shoes
          to-day?"</para>

          <para>"I can't say that I mean to. I suppose so. I don't
          know."</para>

          <para>But, the question reminded him of his work, and he
          bent over it again.</para>

          <para>Mr. Lorry came silently forward, leaving the
          daughter by the door. When he had stood, for a minute or
          two, by the side of Defarge, the shoemaker looked up. He
          showed no surprise at seeing another figure, but the
          unsteady fingers of one of his hands strayed to his lips
          as he looked at it (his lips and his nails were of the
          same pale lead- colour), and then the hand dropped to his
          work, and he once more bent over the shoe. The look and
          the action had occupied but an instant.</para>

          <para>"You have a visitor, you see," said Monsieur
          Defarge.</para>

          <para>"What did you say?"</para>

          <para>"Here is a visitor."</para>

          <para>The shoemaker looked up as before, but without
          removing a hand from his work.</para>

          <para>"Come!" said Defarge. "Here is monsieur, who knows
          a well-made shoe when he sees one. Show him that shoe you
          are working at. Take it, monsieur."</para>

          <para>Mr. Lorry took it in his hand.</para>

          <para>"Tell monsieur what kind of shoe it is, and the
          maker's name."</para>

          <para>There was a longer pause than usual, before the
          shoemaker replied:</para>

          <para>"I forget what it was you asked me. What did you
          say?"</para>

          <para>"I said, couldn't you describe the kind of shoe,
          for monsieur's information?"</para>

          <para>"It is a lady's shoe. It is a young lady's
          walking-shoe. It is in the present mode. I never saw the
          mode. I have had a pattern in my hand." He glanced at the
          shoe with some little passing touch of pride.</para>

          <para>"And the maker's name?" said Defarge.</para>

          <para>Now that he had no work to hold, he laid the
          knuckles of the right hand in the hollow of the left, and
          then the knuckles of the left hand in the hollow of the
          right, and then passed a hand across his bearded chin,
          and so on in regular changes, without a moment's
          intermission. The task of recalling him from the vagrancy
          into which he always sank when he had spoken, was like
          recalling some very weak person from a swoon, or
          endeavouring, in the hope of some disclosure, to stay the
          spirit of a fast-dying man.</para>

          <para>"Did you ask me for my name?"</para>

          <para>"Assuredly I did."</para>

          <para>"One Hundred and Five, North Tower."</para>

          <para>"Is that all?"</para>

          <para>"One Hundred and Five, North Tower."</para>

          <para>With a weary sound that was not a sigh, nor a
          groan, he bent to work again, until the silence was again
          broken.</para>

          <para>"You are not a shoemaker by trade?" said Mr. Lorry,
          looking steadfastly at him.</para>

          <para>His haggard eyes turned to Defarge as if he would
          have transferred the question to him: but as no help came
          from that quarter, they turned back on the questioner
          when they had sought the ground.</para>

          <para>"I am not a shoemaker by trade? No, I was not a
          shoemaker by trade. I-I learnt it here. I taught myself.
          I asked leave to--"</para>

          <para>He lapsed away, even for minutes, ringing those
          measured changes on his hands the whole time. His eyes
          came slowly back, at last, to the face from which they
          had wandered; when they rested on it, he started, and
          resumed, in the manner of a sleeper that moment awake,
          reverting to a subject of last night.</para>

          <para>"I asked leave to teach myself, and I got it with
          much difficulty after a long while, and I have made shoes
          ever since."</para>

          <para>As he held out his hand for the shoe that had been
          taken from him, Mr. Lorry said, still looking steadfastly
          in his face:</para>

          <para>"Monsieur Manette, do you remember nothing of
          me?"</para>

          <para>The shoe dropped to the ground, and he sat looking
          fixedly at the questioner.</para>

          <para>"Monsieur Manette"; Mr. Lorry laid his hand upon
          Defarge's arm; "do you remember nothing of this man? Look
          at him. Look at me. Is there no old banker, no old
          business, no old servant, no old time, rising in your
          mind, Monsieur Manette?"</para>

          <para>As the captive of many years sat looking fixedly,
          by turns, at Mr. Lorry and at Defarge, some long
          obliterated marks of an actively intent intelligence in
          the middle of the forehead, gradually forced themselves
          through the black mist that had fallen on him. They were
          overclouded again, they were fainter, they were gone; but
          they had been there. And so exactly was the expression
          repeated on the fair young face of her who had crept
          along the wall to a point where she could see him, and
          where she now stood looking at him, with hands which at
          first had been only raised in frightened compassion, if
          not even to keep him off and shut out the sight of him,
          but which were now extending towards him, trembling with
          eagerness to lay the spectral face upon her warm young
          breast, and love it back to life and hope--so exactly was
          the expression repeated (though in stronger characters)
          on her fair young face, that it looked as though it had
          passed like a moving light, from him to her.</para>

          <para>Darkness had fatten on him in its place. He looked
          at the two, less and less attentively, and his eyes in
          gloomy abstraction sought the ground and looked about him
          in the old way. Finally, with a deep long sigh, he took
          the shoe up, and resumed his work.</para>

          <para>"Have you recognised him, monsieur?" asked Defarge
          in a whisper.</para>

          <para>"Yes; for a moment. At first I thought it quite
          hopeless, but I have unquestionably seen, for a single
          moment, the face that I once knew so well. Hush! Let us
          draw further back. Hush!"</para>

          <para>She had moved from the wall of the garret, very
          near to the bench on which he sat. There was something
          awful in his unconsciousness of the figure that could
          have put out its hand and touched him as he stooped over
          his labour.</para>

          <para>Not a word was spoken, not a sound was made. She
          stood, like a spirit, beside him, and he bent over his
          work.</para>

          <para>It happened, at length, that he had occasion to
          change the instrument in his hand, for his shoemaker's
          knife. It lay on that side of him which was not the side
          on which she stood. He had taken it up, and was stooping
          to work again, when his eyes caught the skirt of her
          dress. He raised them, and saw her face. The two
          spectators started forward, but she stayed them with a
          motion of her hand. She had no fear of his striking at
          her with the knife, though they had.</para>

          <para>He stared at her with a fearful look, and after a
          while his lips began to form some words, though no sound
          proceeded from them. By degrees, in the pauses of his
          quick and laboured breathing, he was heard to say:</para>

          <para>"What is this?"</para>

          <para>With the tears streaming down her face, she put her
          two hands to her lips, and kissed them to him; then
          clasped them on her breast, as if she laid his ruined
          head there.</para>

          <para>"You are not the gaoler's daughter?"</para>

          <para>She sighed "No."</para>

          <para>"Who are you?"</para>

          <para>Not yet trusting the tones of her voice, she sat
          down on the bench beside him. He recoiled, but she laid
          her hand upon his arm. A strange thrill struck him when
          she did so, and visibly passed over his frame; he laid
          the knife down' softly, as he sat staring at her.</para>

          <para>Her golden hair, which she wore in long curls, had
          been hurriedly pushed aside, and fell down over her neck.
          Advancing his hand by little and little, he took it up
          and looked at it. In the midst of the action he went
          astray, and, with another deep sigh, fell to work at his
          shoemaking.</para>

          <para>But not for long. Releasing his arm, she laid her
          hand upon his shoulder. After looking doubtfully at it,
          two or three times, as if to be sure that it was really
          there, he laid down his work, put his hand to his neck,
          and took off a blackened string with a scrap of folded
          rag attached to it. He opened this, carefully, on his
          knee, and it contained a very little quantity of hair:
          not more than one or two long golden hairs, which he had,
          in some old day, wound off upon his finger.</para>

          <para>He took her hair into his hand again, and looked
          closely at it. "It is the same. How can it be! When was
          it! How was it!"</para>

          <para>As the concentrated expression returned to his
          forehead, he seemed to become conscious that it was in
          hers too. He turned her full to the light, and looked at
          her.</para>

          <para>"She had laid her head upon my shoulder, that night
          when I was summoned out--she had a fear of my going,
          though I had none--and when I was brought to the North
          Tower they found these upon my sleeve. 'You will leave me
          them? They can never help me to escape in the body,
          though they may in the spirit.' Those were the words I
          said. I remember them very well."</para>

          <para>He formed this speech with his lips many times
          before he could utter it. But when he did find spoken
          words for it, they came to him coherently, though
          slowly.</para>

          <para>"How was this?--WAS IT YOU?"</para>

          <para>Once more, the two spectators started, as he turned
          upon her with a frightful suddenness. But she sat
          perfectly still in his grasp, and only said, in a low
          voice, "I entreat you, good gentlemen, do not come near
          us, do not speak, do not move!"</para>

          <para>"Hark!" he exclaimed. "Whose voice was
          that?"</para>

          <para>His hands released her as he uttered this cry, and
          went up to his white hair, which they tore in a frenzy.
          It died out, as everything but his shoemaking did die out
          of him, and he refolded his little packet and tried to
          secure it in his breast; but he still looked at her, and
          gloomily shook his head.</para>

          <para>"No, no, no; you are too young, too blooming. It
          can't be. See what the prisoner is. These are not the
          hands she knew, this is not the face she knew, this is
          not a voice she ever heard. No, no. She was--and He
          was--before the slow years of the North Tower--ages ago.
          What is your name, my gentle angel?"</para>

          <para>Hailing his softened tone and manner, his daughter
          fell upon her knees before him, with her appealing hands
          upon his breast.</para>

          <para>"O, sir, at another time you shall know my name,
          and who my mother was, and who my father, and how I never
          knew their hard, hard history. But I cannot tell you at
          this time, and I cannot tell you here. All that I may
          tell you, here and now, is, that I pray to you to touch
          me and to bless me. Kiss me, kiss me! O my dear, my
          dear!"</para>

          <para>His cold white head mingled with her radiant hair,
          which warmed and lighted it as though it were the light
          of Freedom shining on him.</para>

          <para>"If you hear in my voice--I don't know that it is
          so, but I hope it is--if you hear in my voice any
          resemblance to a voice that once was sweet music in your
          ears, weep for it, weep for it! If you touch, in touching
          my hair, anything that recalls a beloved head that lay on
          your breast when you were young and free, weep for it,
          weep for it! If, when I hint to you of a Home that is
          before us, where I will be true to you with all my duty
          and with all my faithful service, I bring back the
          remembrance of a Home long desolate, while your poor
          heart pined away, weep for it, weep for it!"</para>

          <para>She held him closer round the neck, and rocked him
          on her breast like a child.</para>

          <para>"If, when I tell you, dearest dear, that your agony
          is over, and that I have come here to take you from it,
          and that we go to England to be at peace and at rest, I
          cause you to think of your useful life laid waste, and of
          our native France so wicked to you, weep for it, weep for
          it! And if, when I shall tell you of my name, and of my
          father who is living, and of my mother who is dead, you
          learn that I have to kneel to my honoured father, and
          implore his pardon for having never for his sake striven
          all day and lain awake and wept all night, because the
          love of my poor mother hid his torture from me, weep for
          it, weep for it! Weep for her, then, and for me! Good
          gentlemen, thank God! I feel his sacred tears upon my
          face, and his sobs strike against my heart. O, see! Thank
          God for us, thank God!"</para>

          <para>He had sunk in her arms, and his face dropped on
          her breast: a sight so touching, yet so terrible in the
          tremendous wrong and suffering which had gone before it,
          that the two beholders covered their faces.</para>

          <para>When the quiet of the garret had been long
          undisturbed, and his heaving breast and shaken form had
          long yielded to the calm that must follow all
          storms--emblem to humanity, of the rest and silence into
          which the storm called Life must hush at last--they came
          forward to raise the father and daughter from the ground.
          He had gradually dropped to the floor, and lay there in a
          lethargy, worn out. She had nestled down with him, that
          his head might lie upon her arm; and her hair drooping
          over him curtained him from the light.</para>

          <para>"If, without disturbing him," she said, raising her
          hand to Mr. Lorry as he stooped over them, after repeated
          blowings of his nose, "all could be arranged for our
          leaving Paris at once, so that, from the, very door, he
          could be taken away--"</para>

          <para>"But, consider. Is he fit for the journey?" asked
          Mr. Lorry.</para>

          <para>"More fit for that, I think, than to remain in this
          city, so dreadful to him."</para>

          <para>"It is true," said Defarge, who was kneeling to
          look on and hear. "More than that; Monsieur Manette is,
          for all reasons, best out of France. Say, shall I hire a
          carriage and post-horses?"</para>

          <para>"That's business," said Mr. Lorry, resuming on the
          shortest notice his methodical manners; "and if business
          is to be done, I had better do it."</para>

          <para>"Then be so kind," urged Miss Manette, "as to leave
          us here. You see how composed he has become, and you
          cannot be afraid to leave him with me now. Why should you
          be? If you will lock the door to secure us from
          interruption, I do not doubt that you will find him, when
          you come back, as quiet as you leave him. In any case, I
          will take care of him until you return, and then we will
          remove him straight."</para>

          <para>Both Mr. Lorry and Defarge were rather disinclined
          to this course, and in favour of one of them remaining.
          But, as there were not only carriage and horses to be
          seen to, but travelling papers; and as time pressed, for
          the day was drawing to an end, it came at last to their
          hastily dividing the business that was necessary to be
          done, and hurrying away to do it.</para>

          <para>Then, as the darkness closed in, the daughter laid
          her head down on the hard ground close at the father's
          side, and watched him. The darkness deepened and
          deepened, and they both lay quiet, until a light gleamed
          through the chinks in the wall.</para>

          <para>Mr. Lorry and Monsieur Defarge had made all ready
          for the journey, and had brought with them, besides
          travelling cloaks and wrappers, bread and meat, wine, and
          hot coffee. Monsieur Defarge put this provender, and the
          lamp he carried, on the shoemaker's bench (there was
          nothing else in the garret but a pallet bed), and he and
          Mr. Lorry roused the captive, and assisted him to his
          feet.</para>

          <para>No human intelligence could have read the mysteries
          of his mind, in the scared blank wonder of his face.
          Whether he knew what had happened, whether he recollected
          what they had said to him, whether he knew that he was
          free, were questions which no sagacity could have solved.
          They tried speaking to him; but, he was so confused, and
          so very slow to answer, that they took fright at his
          bewilderment, and agreed for the time to tamper with him
          no more. He had a wild, lost manner of occasionally
          clasping his head in his hands, that had not been seen in
          him before; yet, he had some pleasure in the mere sound
          of his daughter's voice, and invariably turned to it when
          she spoke.</para>

          <para>In the submissive way of one long accustomed to
          obey under coercion, he ate and drank what they gave him
          to eat and drink, and put on the cloak and other
          wrappings, that they gave him to wear. He readily
          responded to his daughter's drawing her arm through his,
          and took--and kept--her hand in both his own.</para>

          <para>They began to descend; Monsieur Defarge going first
          with the lamp, Mr. Lorry closing the little procession.
          They had not traversed many steps of the long main
          staircase when he stopped, and stared at the roof and
          round at the wails.</para>

          <para>"You remember the place, my father? You remember
          coming up here?"</para>

          <para>"What did you say?"</para>

          <para>But, before she could repeat the question, he
          murmured an answer as if she had repeated it.</para>

          <para>"Remember? No, I don't remember. It was so very
          long ago."</para>

          <para>That he had no recollection whatever of his having
          been brought from his prison to that house, was apparent
          to them. They heard him mutter, "One Hundred and Five,
          North Tower;" and when he looked about him, it evidently
          was for the strong fortress-walls which had long
          encompassed him. On their reaching the courtyard he
          instinctively altered his tread, as being in expectation
          of a drawbridge; and when there was no drawbridge, and he
          saw the carriage waiting in the open street, he dropped
          his daughter's hand and clasped his head again.</para>

          <para>No crowd was about the door; no people were
          discernible at any of the many windows; not even a chance
          passerby was in the street. An unnatural silence and
          desertion reigned there. Only one soul was to be seen,
          and that was Madame Defarge--who leaned against the
          door-post, knitting, and saw nothing.</para>

          <para>The prisoner had got into a coach, and his daughter
          had followed him, when Mr. Lorry's feet were arrested on
          the step by his asking, miserably, for his shoemaking
          tools and the unfinished shoes. Madame Defarge
          immediately called to her husband that she would get
          them, and went, knitting, out of the lamplight, through
          the courtyard. She quickly brought them down and handed
          them in;--and immediately afterwards leaned against the
          door-post, knitting, and saw nothing.</para>

          <para>Defarge got upon the box, and gave the word "To the
          Barrier!" The postilion cracked his whip, and they
          clattered away under the feeble over-swinging
          lamps.</para>

          <para>Under the over-swinging lamps--swinging ever
          brighter in the better streets, and ever dimmer in the
          worse--and by lighted shops, gay crowds, illuminated
          coffee-houses, and theatre-doors, to one of the city
          gates. Soldiers with lanterns, at the guard-house there.
          "Your papers, travellers!" "See here then, Monsieur the
          Officer," said Defarge, getting down, and taking him
          gravely apart, "these are the papers of monsieur inside,
          with the white head. They were consigned to me, with him,
          at the--" He dropped his voice, there was a flutter among
          the military lanterns, and one of them being handed into
          the coach by an arm in uniform, the eyes connected with
          the arm looked, not an every day or an every night look,
          at monsieur with the white head. "It is well. Forward!"
          from the uniform. "Adieu!" from Defarge. And so, under a
          short grove of feebler and feebler over-swinging lamps,
          out under the great grove of stars.</para>

          <para>Beneath that arch of unmoved and eternal lights;
          some, so remote from this little earth that the learned
          tell us it is doubtful whether their rays have even yet
          discovered it, as a point in space where anything is
          suffered or done: the shadows of the night were broad and
          black. All through the cold and restless interval, until
          dawn, they once more whispered in the ears of Mr. Jarvis
          Lorry--sitting opposite the buried man who had been dug
          out, and wondering what subtle powers were for ever lost
          to him, and what were capable of restoration--the old
          inquiry:</para>

          <para>"I hope you care to be recalled to life?"</para>

          <para>And the old answer:</para>

          <para>"I can't say."</para>

          <para>The end of the first book.</para>
        </chapter>
      </part>

      <part>
        <titlepage>
          <title>Book the Second-the Golden Thread</title>
        </titlepage>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>I</chapnum>

            <title>Five Years Later</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>Tellson's Bank by Temple Bar was an old-fashioned
          place, even in the year one thousand seven hundred and
          eighty. It was very small, very dark, very ugly, very
          incommodious. It was an old-fashioned place, moreover, in
          the moral attribute that the partners in the House were
          proud of its smallness, proud of its darkness, proud of
          its ugliness, proud of its incommodiousness. They were
          even boastful of its eminence in those particulars, and
          were fired by an express conviction that, if it were less
          objectionable, it would be less respectable. This was no
          passive belief, but an active weapon which they flashed
          at more convenient places of business. Tellson's (they
          said) wanted no elbow-room, Tellson's wanted no light,
          Tellson's wanted no embellishment. Noakes and Co.'s
          might, or Snooks Brothers' might; but Tellson's, thank
          Heaven!--</para>

          <para>Any one of these partners would have disinherited
          his son on the question of rebuilding Tellson's. In this
          respect the House was much on a par with the Country;
          which did very often disinherit its sons for suggesting
          improvements in laws and customs that had long been
          highly objectionable, but were only the more
          respectable.</para>

          <para>Thus it had come to pass, that Tellson's was the
          triumphant perfection of inconvenience. After bursting
          open a door of idiotic obstinacy with a weak rattle in
          its throat, you fell into Tellson's down two steps, and
          came to your senses in a miserable little shop, with two
          little counters, where the oldest of men made your cheque
          shake as if the wind rustled it, while they examined the
          signature by the dingiest of windows, which were always
          under a shower-bath of mud from Fleet-street, and which
          were made the dingier by their own iron bars proper, and
          the heavy shadow of Temple Bar. If your business
          necessitated your seeing "the House," you were put into a
          species of Condemned Hold at the back, where you
          meditated on a misspent life, until the House came with
          its bands in its pockets, and you could hardly blink at
          it in the dismal twilight. Your money came out of, or
          went into, wormy old wooden drawers, particles of which
          flew up your nose and down your throat when they were
          opened and shut. Your bank-notes had a musty odour, as if
          they were fast decomposing into rags again. Your plate
          was stowed away among the neighbouring cesspools, and
          evil communications corrupted its good polish in a day or
          two. Your deeds got into extemporised strong-rooms made
          of kitchens and sculleries, and fretted all the fat out
          of their parchments into the banking-house air. Your
          lighter boxes of family papers went up-stairs into a
          Barmecide room, that always had a great dining-table in
          it and never had a dinner, and where, even in the year
          one thousand seven hundred and eighty, the first letters
          written to you by your old love, or by your little
          children, were but newly released from the horror of
          being ogled through the windows, by the heads exposed on
          Temple Bar with an insensate brutality and ferocity
          worthy of Abyssinia or Ashantee.</para>

          <para>But indeed, at that time, putting to death was a
          recipe much in vogue with all trades and professions, and
          not least of all with Tellson's. Death is Nature's remedy
          for all things, and why not Legislation's? Accordingly,
          the forger was put to Death; the utterer of a bad note
          was put to Death; the unlawful opener of a letter was put
          to Death; the purloiner of forty shillings and sixpence
          was put to Death; the holder of a horse at Tellson's
          door, who made off with it, was put to Death; the coiner
          of a bad shilling was put to Death; the sounders of
          three-fourths of the notes in the whole gamut of Crime,
          were put to Death. Not that it did the least good in the
          way of prevention--it might almost have been worth
          remarking that the fact was exactly the reverse--but, it
          cleared off (as to this world) the trouble of each
          particular case, and left nothing else connected with it
          to be looked after. Thus, Tellson's, in its day, like
          greater places of business, its contemporaries, had taken
          so many lives, that, if the heads laid low before it had
          been ranged on Temple Bar instead of being privately
          disposed of, they would probably have excluded what
          little light the ground floor bad, in a rather
          significant manner.</para>

          <para>Cramped in all kinds of dun cupboards and hutches
          at Tellson's, the oldest of men carried on the business
          gravely. When they took a young man into Tellson's London
          house, they hid him somewhere till he was old. They kept
          him in a dark place, like a cheese, until he had the full
          Tellson flavour and blue-mould upon him. Then only was he
          permitted to be seen, spectacularly poring over large
          books, and casting his breeches and gaiters into the
          general weight of the establishment.</para>

          <para>Outside Tellson's--never by any means in it, unless
          called in--was an odd-job-man, an occasional porter and
          messenger, who served as the live sign of the house. He
          was never absent during business hours, unless upon an
          errand, and then he was represented by his son: a grisly
          urchin of twelve, who was his express image. People
          understood that Tellson's, in a stately way, tolerated
          the odd-job-man. The house had always tolerated some
          person in that capacity, and time and tide had drifted
          this person to the post. His surname was Cruncher, and on
          the youthful occasion of his renouncing by proxy the
          works of darkness, in the easterly parish church of
          Hounsditch, he had received the added appellation of
          Jerry.</para>

          <para>The scene was Mr. Cruncher's private lodging in
          Hanging-sword-alley, Whitefriars: the time, half-past
          seven of the clock on a windy March morning, Anno Domini
          seventeen hundred and eighty. (Mr. Cruncher himself
          always spoke of the year of our Lord as Anna Dominoes:
          apparently under the impression that the Christian era
          dated from the invention of a popular game, by a lady who
          had bestowed her name upon it.)</para>

          <para>Mr. Cruncher's apartments were not in a savoury
          neighbourhood, and were but two in number, even if a
          closet with a single pane of glass in it might be counted
          as one. But they were very decently kept. Early as it
          was, on the windy March morning, the room in which he lay
          abed was already scrubbed throughout; and between the
          cups and saucers arranged for breakfast, and the
          lumbering deal table, a very clean white cloth was
          spread.</para>

          <para>Mr. Cruncher reposed under a patchwork counterpane,
          like a Harlequin at home. At fast, he slept heavily, but,
          by degrees, began to roll and surge in bed, until he rose
          above the surface, with his spiky hair looking as if it
          must tear the sheets to ribbons. At which juncture, he
          exclaimed, in a voice of dire exasperation:</para>

          <para>"Bust me, if she ain't at it agin!"</para>

          <para>A woman of orderly and industrious appearance rose
          from her knees in a corner, with sufficient haste and
          trepidation to show that she was the person referred
          to.</para>

          <para>"What!" said Mr. Cruncher, looking out of bed for a
          boot. "You're at it agin, are you?"</para>

          <para>After hailing the mom with this second salutation,
          he threw a boot at the woman as a third. It was a very
          muddy boot, and may introduce the odd circumstance
          connected with Mr. Cruncher's domestic economy, that,
          whereas he often came home after banking hours with clean
          boots, he often got up next morning to find the same
          boots covered with clay.</para>

          <para>"What," said Mr. Cruncher, varying his apostrophe
          after missing his mark--"what are you up to,
          Aggerawayter?"</para>

          <para>"I was only saying my prayers."</para>

          <para>"Saying your prayers! You're a nice woman! What do
          you mean by flopping yourself down and praying agin
          me?"</para>

          <para>"I was not praying against you; I was praying for
          you."</para>

          <para>"You weren't. And if you were, I won't be took the
          liberty with. Here! your mother's a nice woman, young
          Jerry, going a praying agin your father's prosperity.
          You've got a dutiful mother, you have, my son. You've got
          a religious mother, you have, my boy: going and flopping
          herself down, and praying that the bread-and-butter may
          be snatched out of the mouth of her only child."</para>

          <para>Master Cruncher (who was in his shirt) took this
          very ill, and, turning to his mother, strongly deprecated
          any praying away of his personal board.</para>

          <para>"And what do you suppose, you conceited female,"
          said Mr. Cruncher, with unconscious inconsistency, "that
          the worth of YOUR prayers may be? Name the price that you
          put YOUR prayers at!"</para>

          <para>"They only come from the heart, Jerry. They are
          worth no more than that."</para>

          <para>"Worth no more than that," repeated Mr. Cruncher.
          "They ain't worth much, then. Whether or no, I won't be
          prayed agin, I tell you. I can't afford it. I'm not a
          going to be made unlucky by YOUR sneaking. If you must go
          flopping yourself down, flop in favour of your husband
          and child, and not in opposition to 'em. If I had had any
          but a unnat'ral wife, and this poor boy had had any but a
          unnat'ral mother, I might have made some money last week
          instead of being counter-prayed and countermined and
          religiously circumwented into the worst of luck.
          B-u-u-ust me!" said Mr. Cruncher, who all this time had
          been putting on his clothes, "if I ain't, what with piety
          and one blowed thing and another, been choused this last
          week into as bad luck as ever a poor devil of a honest
          tradesman met with! Young Jerry, dress yourself, my boy,
          and while I clean my boots keep a eye upon your mother
          now and then, and if you see any signs of more flopping,
          give me a call. For, I tell you," here he addressed his
          wife once more, "I won't be gone agin, in this manner. I
          am as rickety as a hackney-coach, I'm as sleepy as
          laudanum, my lines is strained to that degree that I
          shouldn't know, if it wasn't for the pain in 'em, which
          was me and which somebody else, yet I'm none the better
          for it in pocket; and it's my suspicion that you've been
          at it from morning to night to prevent me from being the
          better for it in pocket, and I won't put up with it,
          Aggerawayter, and what do you say now!"</para>

          <para>Growling, in addition, such phrases as "Ah! yes!
          You're religious, too. You wouldn't put yourself in
          opposition to the interests of your husband and child,
          would you? Not you!" and throwing off other sarcastic
          sparks from the whirling grindstone of his indignation,
          Mr. Cruncher betook himself to his boot-cleaning and his
          general preparation for business. In the meantime, his
          son, whose head was garnished with tenderer spikes, and
          whose young eyes stood close by one another, as his
          father's did, kept the required watch upon his mother. He
          greatly disturbed that poor woman at intervals, by
          darting out of his sleeping closet, where he made his
          toilet, with a suppressed cry of "You are going to flop,
          mother. --Halloa, father!" and, after raising this
          fictitious alarm, darting in again with an undutiful
          grin.</para>

          <para>Mr. Cruncher's temper was not at all improved when
          he came to his breakfast. He resented Mrs. Cruncher's
          saying grace with particular animosity.</para>

          <para>"Now, Aggerawayter! What are you up to? At it
          again?"</para>

          <para>His wife explained that she had merely "asked a
          blessing."</para>

          <para>"Don't do it!" said Mr. Crunches looking about, as
          if he rather expected to see the loaf disappear under the
          efficacy of his wife's petitions. "I ain't a going to be
          blest out of house and home. I won't have my wittles
          blest off my table. Keep still!"</para>

          <para>Exceedingly red-eyed and grim, as if he had been up
          all night at a party which had taken anything but a
          convivial turn, Jerry Cruncher worried his breakfast
          rather than ate it, growling over it like any four-footed
          inmate of a menagerie. Towards nine o'clock he smoothed
          his ruffled aspect, and, presenting as respectable and
          business-like an exterior as he could overlay his natural
          self with, issued forth to the occupation of the
          day.</para>

          <para>It could scarcely be called a trade, in spite of
          his favourite description of himself as "a honest
          tradesman." His stock consisted of a wooden stool, made
          out of a broken-backed chair cut down, which stool, young
          Jerry, walking at his father's side, carried every
          morning to beneath the banking-house window that was
          nearest Temple Bar: where, with the addition of the first
          handful of straw that could be gleaned from any passing
          vehicle to keep the cold and wet from the odd-job-man's
          feet, it formed the encampment for the day. On this post
          of his, Mr. Cruncher was as well known to Fleet-street
          and the Temple, as the Bar itself,--and was almost as
          in-looking.</para>

          <para>Encamped at a quarter before nine, in good time to
          touch his three- cornered hat to the oldest of men as
          they passed in to Tellson's, Jerry took up his station on
          this windy March morning, with young Jerry standing by
          him, when not engaged in making forays through the Bar,
          to inflict bodily and mental injuries of an acute
          description on passing boys who were small enough for his
          amiable purpose. Father and son, extremely like each
          other, looking silently on at the morning traffic in
          Fleet-street, with their two heads as near to one another
          as the two eyes of each were, bore a considerable
          resemblance to a pair of monkeys. The resemblance was not
          lessened by the accidental circumstance, that the mature
          Jerry bit and spat out straw, while the twinkling eyes of
          the youthful Jerry were as restlessly watchful of him as
          of everything else in Fleet-street.</para>

          <para>The head of one of the regular indoor messengers
          attached to Tellson's establishment was put through the
          door, and the word was given:</para>

          <para>"Porter wanted!"</para>

          <para>"Hooray, father! Here's an early job to begin
          with!"</para>

          <para>Having thus given his parent God speed, young Jerry
          seated himself on the stool, entered on his reversionary
          interest in the straw his father had been chewing, and
          cogitated.</para>

          <para>"Al-ways rusty! His fingers is al-ways rusty!"
          muttered young Jerry. "Where does my father get all that
          iron rust from? He don't get no iron rust here!"</para>
        </chapter>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>II</chapnum>

            <title>A Sight</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>"You know the Old Bailey, well, no doubt?" said one
          of the oldest of clerks to Jerry the messenger.</para>

          <para>"Ye-es, sir," returned Jerry, in something of a
          dogged manner. "I DO know the Bailey."</para>

          <para>"Just so. And you know Mr. Lorry."</para>

          <para>"I know Mr. Lorry, sir, much better than I know the
          Bailey. Much better," said Jerry, not unlike a reluctant
          witness at the establishment in question, "than I, as a
          honest tradesman, wish to know the Bailey."</para>

          <para>"Very well. Find the door where the witnesses go
          in, and show the door-keeper this note for Mr. Lorry. He
          will then let you in."</para>

          <para>"Into the court, sir?"</para>

          <para>"Into the court."</para>

          <para>Mr. Cruncher's eyes seemed to get a little closer
          to one another, and to interchange the inquiry, "What do
          you think of this?"</para>

          <para>"Am I to wait in the court, sir?" he asked, as the
          result of that conference.</para>

          <para>"I am going to tell you. The door-keeper will pass
          the note to Mr. Lorry, and do you make any gesture that
          will attract Mr. Lorry's attention, and show him where
          you stand. Then what you have to do, is, to remain there
          until he wants you."</para>

          <para>"Is that all, sir?"</para>

          <para>"That's all. He wishes to have a messenger at hand.
          This is to tell him you are there."</para>

          <para>As the ancient clerk deliberately folded and
          superscribed the note, Mr. Cruncher, after surveying him
          in silence until he came to the blotting-paper stage,
          remarked:</para>

          <para>"I suppose they'll be trying Forgeries this
          morning?"</para>

          <para>"Treason!"</para>

          <para>"That's quartering," said Jerry.
          "Barbarous!"</para>

          <para>"It is the law," remarked the ancient clerk,
          turning his surprised spectacles upon him. "It is the
          law."</para>

          <para>"It's hard in the law to spile a man, I think. Ifs
          hard enough to kill him, but it's wery hard to spile him,
          sir."</para>

          <para>"Not at all," retained the ancient clerk. "Speak
          well of the law. Take care of your chest and voice, my
          good friend, and leave the law to take care of itself. I
          give you that advice."</para>

          <para>"It's the damp, sir, what settles on my chest and
          voice," said Jerry. "I leave you to judge what a damp way
          of earning a living mine is."</para>

          <para>"WeB, well," said the old clerk; "we aa have our
          various ways of gaining a livelihood. Some of us have
          damp ways, and some of us have dry ways. Here is the
          letter. Go along."</para>

          <para>Jerry took the letter, and, remarking to himself
          with less internal deference than he made an outward show
          of, "You are a lean old one, too," made his bow, informed
          his son, in passing, of his destination, and went his
          way.</para>

          <para>They hanged at Tyburn, in those days, so the street
          outside Newgate had not obtained one infamous notoriety
          that has since attached to it. But, the gaol was a vile
          place, in which most kinds of debauchery and villainy
          were practised, and where dire diseases were bred, that
          came into court with the prisoners, and sometimes rushed
          straight from the dock at my Lord Chief Justice himself,
          and pulled him off the bench. It had more than once
          happened, that the Judge in the black cap pronounced his
          own doom as certainly as the prisoner's, and even died
          before him. For the rest, the Old Bailey was famous as a
          kind of deadly inn-yard, from which pale travellers set
          out continually, in carts and coaches, on a violent
          passage into the other world: traversing some two miles
          and a half of public street and road, and shaming few
          good citizens, if any. So powerful is use, and so
          desirable to be good use in the beginning. It was famous,
          too, for the pillory, a wise old institution, that
          inflicted a punishment of which no one could foresee the
          extent; also, for the whipping-post, another dear old
          institution, very humanising and softening to behold in
          action; also, for extensive transactions in blood-money,
          another fragment of ancestral wisdom, systematically
          leading to the most frightful mercenary crimes that could
          be committed under Heaven. Altogether, the Old Bailey, at
          that date, was a choice illustration of the precept, that
          "Whatever is is right;" an aphorism that would be as
          final as it is lazy, did it not include the troublesome
          consequence, that nothing that ever was, was
          wrong.</para>

          <para>Making his way through the tainted crowd, dispersed
          up and down this hideous scene of action, with the skill
          of a man accustomed to make his way quietly, the
          messenger found out the door he sought, and handed in his
          letter through a trap in it. For, people then paid to see
          the play at the Old Bailey, just as they paid to see the
          play in Bedlam--only the former entertainment was much
          the dearer. Therefore, all the Old Bailey doors were well
          guarded--except, indeed, the social doors by which the
          criminals got there, and those were always left wide
          open.</para>

          <para>After some delay and demur, the door grudgingly
          turned on its hinges a very little way, and allowed Mr.
          Jerry Cruncher to squeeze himself into court.</para>

          <para>"What's on?" he asked, in a whisper, of the man he
          found himself next to.</para>

          <para>"Nothing yet."</para>

          <para>"What's coming on?"</para>

          <para>"The Treason case."</para>

          <para>"The quartering one, eh?"</para>

          <para>"Ah!" returned the man, with a relish; "he'll be
          drawn on a hurdle to be half hanged, and then he'll be
          taken down and sliced before his own face, and then his
          inside will be taken out and burnt while he looks on, and
          then his head will be chopped off, and he'll be cut into
          quarters. That's the sentence."</para>

          <para>"If he's found Guilty, you mean to say?" Jerry
          added, by way of proviso.</para>

          <para>"Oh! they'll find him guilty," said the other.
          "Don't you be afraid of that."</para>

          <para>Mr. Cruncher's attention was here diverted to the
          door-keeper, whom he saw making his way to Mr. Lorry,
          with the note in his hand. Mr. Lorry sat at a table,
          among the gentlemen in wigs: not far from a wigged
          gentleman, the prisoner's counsel, who had a great bundle
          of papers before him: and nearly opposite another wigged
          gentleman with his hands in his pockets, whose whole
          attention, when Mr. Cruncher looked at him then or
          afterwards, seemed to be concentrated on the ceiling of
          the court. After some gruff coughing and rubbing of his
          chin and signing with his hand, Jerry attracted the
          notice of Mr. Lorry, who had stood up to look for him,
          and who quietly nodded and sat down again.</para>

          <para>"What's HE got to do with the case?" asked the man
          he had spoken with.</para>

          <para>"Blest if I know," said Jerry.</para>

          <para>"What have YOU got to do with it, then, if a person
          may inquire?"</para>

          <para>"Blest if I know that either," said Jerry.</para>

          <para>The entrance of the Judge, and a consequent great
          stir and settling down in the court, stopped the
          dialogue. Presently, the dock became the central point of
          interest. Two gaolers, who had been standing there, wont
          out, and the prisoner was brought in, and put to the
          bar.</para>

          <para>Everybody present, except the one wigged gentleman
          who looked at the ceiling, stared at him. All the human
          breath in the place, rolled at him, like a sea, or a
          wind, or a fire. Eager faces strained round pillars and
          corners, to get a sight of him; spectators in back rows
          stood up, not to miss a hair of him; people on the floor
          of the court, laid their hands on the shoulders of the
          people before them, to help themselves, at anybody's
          cost, to a view of him--stood a-tiptoe, got upon ledges,
          stood upon next to nothing, to see every inch of him.
          Conspicuous among these latter, like an animated bit of
          the spiked wall of Newgate, Jerry stood: aiming at the
          prisoner the beery breath of a whet he had taken as he
          came along, and discharging it to mingle with the waves
          of other beer, and gin, and tea, and coffee, and what
          not, that flowed at him, and already broke upon the great
          windows behind him in an impure mist and rain.</para>

          <para>The object of all this staring and blaring, was a
          young man of about five-and-twenty, well-grown and
          well-looking, with a sunburnt cheek and a dark eye. His
          condition was that of a young gentleman. He was plainly
          dressed in black, or very dark grey, and his hair, which
          was long and dark, was gathered in a ribbon at the back
          of his neck; more to be out of his way than for ornament.
          As an emotion of the mind will express itself through any
          covering of the body, so the paleness which his situation
          engendered came through the brown upon his cheek, showing
          the soul to be stronger than the sun. He was otherwise
          quite self-possessed, bowed to the Judge, and stood
          quiet.</para>

          <para>The sort of interest with which this man was stared
          and breathed at, was not a sort that elevated humanity.
          Had he stood in peril of a less horrible sentence--had
          there been a chance of any one of its savage details
          being spared--by just so much would he have lost in his
          fascination. The form that was to be doomed to be so
          shamefully mangled, was the sight; the immortal creature
          that was to be so butchered and torn asunder, yielded the
          sensation. Whatever gloss the various spectators put upon
          the interest, according to their several arts and powers
          of self-deceit, the interest was, at the root of it,
          Ogreish.</para>

          <para>Silence in the court! Charles Darnay had yesterday
          pleaded Not Guilty to an indictment denouncing him (with
          infinite jingle and jangle) for that he was a false
          traitor to our serene, illustrious, excellent, and so
          forth, prince, our Lord the King, by reason of his
          having, on divers occasions, and by divers means and
          ways, assisted Lewis, the French King, in his wars
          against our said serene, illustrious, excellent, and so
          forth; that was to say, by coming and going, between the
          dominions of our said serene, illustrious, excellent, and
          so forth, and those of the said French Lewis, and
          wickedly, falsely, traitorously, and otherwise
          evil-adverbiously, revealing to the said French Lewis
          what forces our said serene, illustrious, excellent, and
          so forth, had in preparation to send to Canada and North
          America. This much, Jerry, with his head becoming more
          and more spiky as the law terms bristled it, made out
          with huge satisfaction, and so arrived circuitously at
          the understanding that the aforesaid, and over and over
          again aforesaid, Charles Darnay, stood there before him
          upon his trial; that the jury were swearing in; and that
          Mr. Attorney-General was making ready to speak.</para>

          <para>The accused, who was (and who knew he was) being
          mentally hanged, beheaded, and quartered, by everybody
          there, neither flinched from the situation, nor assumed
          any theatrical air in it. He was quiet and attentive;
          watched the opening proceedings with a grave interest;
          and stood with his hands resting on the slab of wood
          before him, so composedly, that they had not displaced a
          leaf of the herbs with which it was strewn. The court was
          all bestrewn with herbs and sprinkled with vinegar, as a
          precaution against gaol air and gaol fever.</para>

          <para>Over the prisoner's head there was a mirror, to
          throw the light down upon him. Crowds of the wicked and
          the wretched had been reflected in it, and had passed
          from its surface and this earth's together. Haunted in a
          most ghastly manner that abominable place would have
          been, if the glass could ever have rendered back its
          reflections, as the ocean is one day to give up its dead.
          Some passing thought of the infamy and disgrace for which
          it had been reserved, may have struck the prisoner's
          mind. Be that as it may, a change in his position making
          him conscious of a bar of light across his face, he
          looked up; and when he saw the glass his face flushed,
          and his right hand pushed the herbs away.</para>

          <para>It happened, that the action turned his face to
          that side of the court which was on his left. About on a
          level with his eyes, there sat, in that corner of the
          Judge's bench, two persons upon whom his look immediately
          rested; so immediately, and so much to the changing of
          his aspect, that all the eyes that were tamed upon him,
          turned to them.</para>

          <para>The spectators saw in the two figures, a young lady
          of little more than twenty, and a gentleman who was
          evidently her father; a man of a very remarkable
          appearance in respect of the absolute whiteness of his
          hair, and a certain indescribable intensity of face: not
          of an active kind, but pondering and self-communing. When
          this expression was upon him, he looked as if he were
          old; but when it was stirred and broken up--as it was
          now, in a moment, on his speaking to his daughter--he
          became a handsome man, not past the prime of life.</para>

          <para>His daughter had one of her hands drawn through his
          arm, as she sat by him, and the other pressed upon it.
          She had drawn close to him, in her dread of the scene,
          and in her pity for the prisoner. Her forehead had been
          strikingly expressive of an engrossing terror and
          compassion that saw nothing but the peril of the accused.
          This had been so very noticeable, so very powerfully and
          naturally shown, that starers who had had no pity for him
          were touched by her; and the whisper went about, "Who are
          they?"</para>

          <para>Jerry, the messenger, who had made his own
          observations, in his own manner, and who had been sucking
          the rust off his fingers in his absorption, stretched his
          neck to hear who they were. The crowd about him had
          pressed and passed the inquiry on to the nearest
          attendant, and from him it had been more slowly pressed
          and passed back; at last it got to Jerry:</para>

          <para>"Witnesses."</para>

          <para>"For which side?"</para>

          <para>"Against."</para>

          <para>"Against what side?"</para>

          <para>"The prisoner's."</para>

          <para>The Judge, whose eyes had gone in the general
          direction, recalled them, leaned back in his seat, and
          looked steadily at the man whose life was in his hand, as
          Mr. Attorney-General rose to spin the rope, grind the
          axe, and hammer the nails into the scaffold.</para>
        </chapter>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>III</chapnum>

            <title>A Disappointment</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>Mr. Attorney-General had to inform the jury, that
          the prisoner before them, though young in years, was old
          in the treasonable practices which claimed the forfeit of
          his life. That this correspondence with the public enemy
          was not a correspondence of to-day, or of yesterday, or
          even of last year, or of the year before. That, it was
          certain the prisoner had, for longer than that, been in
          the habit of passing and repassing between France and
          England, on secret business of which he could give no
          honest account. That, if it were in the nature of
          traitorous ways to thrive (which happily it never was),
          the real wickedness and guilt of his business might have
          remained undiscovered. That Providence, however, had put
          it into the heart of a person who was beyond fear and
          beyond reproach, to ferret out the nature of the
          prisoner's schemes, and, struck with horror, to disclose
          them to his Majesty's Chief Secretary of State and most
          honourable Privy Council. That, this patriot would be
          produced before them. That, his position and attitude
          were, on the whole, sublime. That, he had been the
          prisoner's friend, but, at once in an auspicious and an
          evil hour detecting his infamy, had resolved to immolate
          the traitor he could no longer cherish in his bosom, on
          the sacred altar of his country. That, if statues were
          decreed in Britain, as in ancient Greece and Rome, to
          public benefactors, this shining citizen would assuredly
          have had one. That, as they were not so decreed, he
          probably would not have one. That, Virtue, as had been
          observed by the poets (in many passages which he well
          knew the jury would have, word for word, at the tips of
          their tongues; whereat the jury's countenances displayed
          a guilty consciousness that they knew nothing about the
          passages), was in a manner contagious; more especially
          the bright virtue known as patriotism, or love of
          country. That, the lofty example of this immaculate and
          unimpeachable witness for the Crown, to refer to whom
          however unworthily was an honour, had communicated itself
          to the prisoner's servant, and had engendered in him a
          holy determination to examine his master's table-drawers
          and pockets, and secrete his papers. That, he (Mr.
          Attorney-General) was prepared to hear some disparagement
          attempted of this admirable servant; but that, in a
          general way, he preferred him to his (Mr.
          Attorney-General's) brothers and sisters, and honoured
          him more than his (Mr. Attorney-General's) father and
          mother. That, he called with confidence on the jury to
          come and do likewise. That, the evidence of these two
          witnesses, coupled with the documents of their
          discovering that would be produced, would show the
          prisoner to have been furnished with lists of his
          Majesty's forces, and of their disposition and
          preparation, both by sea and land, and would leave no
          doubt that he had habitually conveyed such information to
          a hostile power. That, these lists could not be proved to
          be in the prisoner's handwriting; but that it was all the
          same; that, indeed, it was rather the better for the
          prosecution, as showing the prisoner to be artful in his
          precautions. That, the proof would go back five years,
          and would show the prisoner already engaged in these
          pernicious missions, within a few weeks before the date
          of the very first action fought between the British
          troops and the Americans. That, for these reasons, the
          jury, being a loyal jury (as he knew they were), and
          being a responsible jury (as THEY knew they were), must
          positively find the prisoner Guilty, and make an end of
          him, whether they liked it or not. That, they never could
          lay their heads upon their pillows; that, they never
          could tolerate the idea of their wives laying their heads
          upon their pillows; that, they never could endure the
          notion of their children laying their heads upon their
          pillows; in short, that there never more could be, for
          them or theirs, any laying of heads upon pillows at all,
          unless the prisoner's head was taken off. That head Mr.
          Attorney-General concluded by demanding of them, in the
          name of everything he could think of with a round turn in
          it, and on the faith of his solemn asseveration that he
          already considered the prisoner as good as dead and
          gone.</para>

          <para>When the Attorney-General ceased, a buzz arose in
          the court as if a cloud of great blue-flies were swarming
          about the prisoner, in anticipation of what he was soon
          to become. When toned down again, the unimpeachable
          patriot appeared in the witness-box.</para>

          <para>Mr. Solicitor-General then, following his leader's
          lead, examined the patriot: John Barsad, gentleman, by
          name. The story of his pure soul was exactly what Mr.
          Attorney-General had described it to be-- perhaps, if it
          had a fault, a little too exactly. Having released his
          noble bosom of its burden, he would have modestly
          withdrawn himself, but that the wigged gentleman with the
          papers before him, sitting not far from Mr. Lorry, begged
          to ask him a few questions. The wigged gentleman sitting
          opposite, still looking at the ceiling of the
          court.</para>

          <para>Had he ever been a spy himself? No, he scorned the
          base insinuation. What did he live upon? His property.
          Where was his property? He didn't precisely remember
          where it was. What was it? No business of anybody's. Had
          he inherited it? Yes, he had. From whom? Distant
          relation. Very distant? Rather. Ever been in prison?
          Certainly not. Never in a debtors' prison? Didn't see
          what that had to do with it. Never in a debtors'
          prison?--Come, once again. Never? Yes. How many times?
          Two or three times. Not five or six? Perhaps. Of what
          profession? Gentleman. Ever been kicked? Might have been.
          Frequently? No. Ever kicked downstairs? Decidedly not;
          once received a kick on the top of a staircase, and fell
          downstairs of his own accord. Kicked on that occasion for
          cheating at dice? Something to that effect was said by
          the intoxicated liar who committed the assault, but it
          was not true. Swear it was not true? Positively. Ever
          live by cheating at play? Never. Ever live by play? Not
          more than other gentlemen do. Ever borrow money of the
          prisoner? Yes. Ever pay him? No. Was not this intimacy
          with the prisoner, in reality a very slight one, forced
          upon the prisoner in coaches, inns, and packets? No. Sure
          he saw the prisoner with these lists? Certain. Knew no
          more about the lists? No. Had not procured them himself,
          for instance? No. Expect to get anything by this
          evidence? No. Not in regular government pay and
          employment, to lay traps? Oh dear no. Or to do anything?
          Oh dear no. Swear that? Over and over again. No motives
          but motives of sheer patriotism? None whatever.</para>

          <para>The virtuous servant, Roger Cly, swore his way
          through the case at a great rate. He had taken service
          with the prisoner, in good faith and simplicity, four
          years ago. He had asked the prisoner, aboard the Calais
          packet, if he wanted a handy fellow, and the prisoner had
          engaged him. He had not asked the prisoner to take the
          handy fellow as an act of charity--never thought of such
          a thing. He began to have suspicions of the prisoner, and
          to keep an eye upon him, soon afterwards. In arranging
          his clothes, while travelling, he had seen similar lists
          to these in the prisoner's pockets, over and over again.
          He had taken these lists from the drawer of the
          prisoner's desk. He had not put them there first. He had
          seen the prisoner show these identical lists to French
          gentlemen at Calais, and similar lists to French
          gentlemen, both at Calais and Boulogne. He loved his
          country, and couldn't bear it, and had given information.
          He had never been suspected of stealing a silver tea-pot;
          he had been maligned respecting a mustard-pot, but it
          turned out to be only a plated one. He had known the last
          witness seven or eight years; that was merely a
          coincidence. He didn't call it a particularly curious
          coincidence; most coincidences were curious. Neither did
          he call it a curious coincidence that true patriotism was
          HIS only motive too. He was a true Briton, and hoped
          there were many like him.</para>

          <para>The blue-flies buzzed again, and Mr.
          Attorney-General called Mr. Jarvis Lorry.</para>

          <para>"Mr. Jarvis Lorry, are you a clerk in Tellson's
          bank?"</para>

          <para>"I am."</para>

          <para>"On a certain Friday night in November one thousand
          seven hundred and seventy-five, did business occasion you
          to travel between London and Dover by the mail?"</para>

          <para>"It did."</para>

          <para>"Were there any other passengers in the
          mail?"</para>

          <para>"Two."</para>

          <para>"Did they alight on the road in the course of the
          night?"</para>

          <para>"They did."</para>

          <para>"Mr. Lorry, look upon the prisoner. Was he one of
          those two passengers?"</para>

          <para>"I cannot undertake to say that he was."</para>

          <para>"Does he resemble either of these two
          passengers?"</para>

          <para>"Both were so wrapped up, and the night was so
          dark, and we were all so reserved, that I cannot
          undertake to say even that."</para>

          <para>"Mr. Lorry, look again upon the prisoner. Supposing
          him wrapped up as those two passengers were, is there
          anything in his bulk and stature to render it unlikely
          that he was one of them?"</para>

          <para>"No."</para>

          <para>"You will not swear, Mr. Lorry, that he was not one
          of them?"</para>

          <para>"No."</para>

          <para>"So at least you say he may have been one of
          them?"</para>

          <para>"Yes. Except that I remember them both to have
          been--like myself-- timorous of highwaymen, and the
          prisoner has not a timorous air."</para>

          <para>"Did you ever see a counterfeit of timidity, Mr.
          Lorry?"</para>

          <para>"I certainly have seen that."</para>

          <para>"Mr. Lorry, look once more upon the prisoner. Have
          you seen him, to your certain knowledge, before?"</para>

          <para>"I have."</para>

          <para>"When?"</para>

          <para>"I was returning from France a few days afterwards,
          and, at Calais, the prisoner came on board the
          packet-ship in which I returned, and made the voyage with
          me."</para>

          <para>"At what hour did he come on board?"</para>

          <para>"At a little after midnight."</para>

          <para>"In the dead of the night. Was he the only
          passenger who came on board at that untimely
          hour?"</para>

          <para>"He happened to be the only one."</para>

          <para>"Never mind about `happening,' Mr. Lorry. He was
          the only passenger who came on board in the dead of the
          night?"</para>

          <para>"He was."</para>

          <para>"Were you travelling alone, Mr. Lorry, or with any
          companion?"</para>

          <para>"With two companions. A gentleman and lady. They
          are here."</para>

          <para>"They are here. Had you any conversation with the
          prisoner?"</para>

          <para>"Hardly any. The weather was stormy, and the
          passage long and rough, and I lay on a sofa, almost from
          shore to shore."</para>

          <para>"Miss Manette!"</para>

          <para>The young lady, to whom all eyes had been turned
          before, and were now turned again, stood up where she had
          sat. Her father rose with her, and kept her hand drawn
          through his arm.</para>

          <para>"Miss Manette, look upon the prisoner."</para>

          <para>To be confronted with such pity, and such earnest
          youth and beauty, was far more trying to the accused than
          to be confronted with all the crowd. Standing, as it
          were, apart with her on the edge of his grave, not all
          the staring curiosity that looked on, could, for the
          moment, nerve him to remain quite still. His hurried
          right hand parcelled out the herbs before him into
          imaginary beds of flowers in a garden; and his efforts to
          control and steady his breathing shook the lips from
          which the colour rushed to his heart. The buzz of the
          great flies was loud again.</para>

          <para>"Miss Manette, have you seen the prisoner
          before?"</para>

          <para>"Yes, sir."</para>

          <para>"Where?"</para>

          <para>"On board of the packet-ship just now referred to,
          sir, and on the same occasion."</para>

          <para>"You are the young lady just now referred
          to?"</para>

          <para>"O! most unhappily, I am!"</para>

          <para>The plaintive tone of her compassion merged into
          the less musical voice of the Judge, as he said something
          fiercely: "Answer the questions put to you, and make no
          remark upon them."</para>

          <para>"Miss Manette, had you any conversation with the
          prisoner on that passage across the Channel?"</para>

          <para>"Yes, sir."</para>

          <para>"Recall it."</para>

          <para>In the midst of a profound stillness, she faintly
          began: "When the gentleman came on board--"</para>

          <para>"Do you mean the prisoner?" inquired the Judge,
          knitting his brows.</para>

          <para>"Yes, my Lord."</para>

          <para>"Then say the prisoner."</para>

          <para>"When the prisoner came on board, he noticed that
          my father," turning her eyes lovingly to him as he stood
          beside her, "was much fatigued and in a very weak state
          of health. My father was so reduced that I was afraid to
          take him out of the air, and I had made a bed for him on
          the deck near the cabin steps, and I sat on the deck at
          his side to take care of him. There were no other
          passengers that night, but we four. The prisoner was so
          good as to beg permission to advise me how I could
          shelter my father from the wind and weather, better than
          I had done. I had not known how to do it well, not
          understanding how the wind would set when we were out of
          the harbour. He did it for me. He expressed great
          gentleness and kindness for my father's state, and I am
          sure he felt it. That was the manner of our beginning to
          speak together."</para>

          <para>"Let me interrupt you for a moment. Had he come on
          board alone?"</para>

          <para>"No."</para>

          <para>"How many were with him?"</para>

          <para>"Two French gentlemen."</para>

          <para>"Had they conferred together?"</para>

          <para>"They had conferred together until the last moment,
          when it was necessary for the French gentlemen to be
          landed in their boat."</para>

          <para>"Had any papers been handed about among them,
          similar to these lists?"</para>

          <para>"Some papers had been handed about among them, but
          I don't know what papers."</para>

          <para>"Like these in shape and size?"</para>

          <para>"Possibly, but indeed I don't know, although they
          stood whispering very near to me: because they stood at
          the top of the cabin steps to have the light of the lamp
          that was hanging there; it was a dull lamp, and they
          spoke very low, and I did not hear what they said, and
          saw only that they looked at papers."</para>

          <para>"Now, to the prisoner's conversation, Miss
          Manette."</para>

          <para>"The prisoner was as open in his confidence with
          me--which arose out of my helpless situation--as he was
          kind, and good, and useful to my father. I hope,"
          bursting into tears, "I may not repay him by doing him
          harm to-day."</para>

          <para>Buzzing from the blue-flies.</para>

          <para>"Miss Manette, if the prisoner does not perfectly
          understand that you give the evidence which it is your
          duty to give--which you must give-- and which you cannot
          escape from giving--with great unwillingness, he is the
          only person present in that condition. Please to go
          on."</para>

          <para>"He told me that he was travelling on business of a
          delicate and difficult nature, which might get people
          into trouble, and that he was therefore travelling under
          an assumed name. He said that this business had, within a
          few days, taken him to France, and might, at intervals,
          take him backwards and forwards between France and
          England for a long time to come."</para>

          <para>"Did he say anything about America, Miss Manette?
          Be particular."</para>

          <para>"He tried to explain to me how that quarrel had
          arisen, and he said that, so far as he could judge, it
          was a wrong and foolish one on England's part. He added,
          in a jesting way, that perhaps George Washington might
          gain almost as great a name in history as George the
          Third. But there was no harm in his way of saying this:
          it was said laughingly, and to beguile the time."</para>

          <para>Any strongly marked expression of face on the part
          of a chief actor in a scene of great interest to whom
          many eyes are directed, will be unconsciously imitated by
          the spectators. Her forehead was painfully anxious and
          intent as she gave this evidence, and, in the pauses when
          she stopped for the Judge to write it down, watched its
          effect upon the counsel for and against. Among the
          lookers-on there was the same expression in all quarters
          of the court; insomuch, that a great majority of the
          foreheads there, might have been mirrors reflecting the
          witness, when the Judge looked up from his notes to glare
          at that tremendous heresy about George Washington.</para>

          <para>Mr. Attorney-General now signified to my Lord, that
          he deemed it necessary, as a matter of precaution and
          form, to call the young lady's father, Doctor Manette.
          Who was called accordingly.</para>

          <para>"Doctor Manette, look upon the prisoner. Have you
          ever seen him before?"</para>

          <para>"Once. When he caged at my lodgings in London. Some
          three years, or three years and a half ago."</para>

          <para>"Can you identify him as your fellow-passenger on
          board the packet, or speak to his conversation with your
          daughter?"</para>

          <para>"Sir, I can do neither."</para>

          <para>"Is there any particular and special reason for
          your being unable to do either?"</para>

          <para>He answered, in a low voice, "There is."</para>

          <para>"Has it been your misfortune to undergo a long
          imprisonment, without trial, or even accusation, in your
          native country, Doctor Manette?"</para>

          <para>He answered, in a tone that went to every heart, "A
          long imprisonment."</para>

          <para>"Were you newly released on the occasion in
          question?"</para>

          <para>"They tell me so."</para>

          <para>"Have you no remembrance of the occasion?"</para>

          <para>"None. My mind is a blank, from some time--I cannot
          even say what time-- when I employed myself, in my
          captivity, in making shoes, to the time when I found
          myself living in London with my dear daughter here. She
          had become familiar to me, when a gracious God restored
          my faculties; but, I am quite unable even to say how she
          had become familiar. I have no remembrance of the
          process."</para>

          <para>Mr. Attorney-General sat down, and the father and
          daughter sat down together.</para>

          <para>A singular circumstance then arose in the case. The
          object in hand being to show that the prisoner went down,
          with some fellow-plotter untracked, in the Dover mail on
          that Friday night in November five years ago, and got out
          of the mail in the night, as a blind, at a place where he
          did not remain, but from which he travelled back some
          dozen miles or more, to a garrison and dockyard, and
          there collected information; a witness was called to
          identify him as having been at the precise time required,
          in the coffee-room of an hotel in that
          garrison-and-dockyard town, waiting for another person.
          The prisoner's counsel was cross-examining this witness
          with no result, except that he had never seen the
          prisoner on any other occasion, when the wigged gentleman
          who had all this time been looking at the ceiling of the
          court, wrote a word or two on a little piece of paper,
          screwed it up, and tossed it to him. Opening this piece
          of paper in the next pause, the counsel looked with great
          attention and curiosity at the prisoner.</para>

          <para>"You say again you are quite sure that it was the
          prisoner?"</para>

          <para>The witness was quite sure.</para>

          <para>"Did you ever see anybody very like the
          prisoner?"</para>

          <para>Not so like (the witness said) as that he could be
          mistaken.</para>

          <para>"Look well upon that gentleman, my learned friend
          there," pointing to him who had tossed the paper over,
          "and then look well upon the prisoner. How say you? Are
          they very like each other?"</para>

          <para>Allowing for my learned friend's appearance being
          careless and slovenly if not debauched, they were
          sufficiently like each other to surprise, not only the
          witness, but everybody present, when they were thus
          brought into comparison. My Lord being prayed to bid my
          learned friend lay aside his wig, and giving no very
          gracious consent, the likeness became much more
          remarkable. My Lord inquired of Mr. Stryver (the
          prisoner's counsel), whether they were next to try Mr.
          Carton (name of my learned friend) for treason? But, Mr.
          Stryver replied to my Lord, no; but he would ask the
          witness to tell him whether what happened once, might
          happen twice; whether he would have been so confident if
          he had seen this illustration of his rashness sooner,
          whether he would be so confident, having seen it; and
          more. The upshot of which, was, to smash this witness
          like a crockery vessel, and shiver his part of the case
          to useless lumber.</para>

          <para>Mr. Cruncher had by this time taken quite a lunch
          of rust off his fingers in his following of the evidence.
          He had now to attend while Mr. Stryver fitted the
          prisoner's case on the jury, like a compact suit of
          clothes; showing them how the patriot, Barsad, was a
          hired spy and traitor, an unblushing trafficker in blood,
          and one of the greatest scoundrels upon earth since
          accursed Judas--which he certainly did look rather like.
          How the virtuous servant, Cly, was his friend and
          partner, and was worthy to be; how the watchful eyes of
          those forgers and false swearers had rested on the
          prisoner as a victim, because some family affairs in
          France, he being of French extraction, did require his
          making those passages across the Channel--though what
          those affairs were, a consideration for others who were
          near and dear to him, forbade him, even for his life, to
          disclose. How the evidence that had been warped and
          wrested from the young lady, whose anguish in giving it
          they had witnessed, came to nothing, involving the mere
          little innocent gallantries and politenesses likely to
          pass between any young gentleman and young lady so thrown
          together;--with the exception of that reference to George
          Washington, which was altogether too extravagant and
          impossible to be regarded in any other light than as a
          monstrous joke. How it would be a weakness in the
          government to break down in this attempt to practise for
          popularity on the lowest national antipathies and fears,
          and therefore Mr. Attorney-General had made the most of
          it; how, nevertheless, it rested upon nothing, save that
          vile and infamous character of evidence too often
          disfiguring such cases, and of which the State Trials of
          this country were full. But, there my Lord interposed
          (with as grave a face as if it had not been true), saying
          that he could not sit upon that Bench and suffer those
          allusions.</para>

          <para>Mr. Stryver then called his few witnesses, and Mr.
          Cruncher had next to attend while Mr. Attorney-General
          turned the whole suit of clothes Mr. Stryver had fitted
          on the jury, inside out; showing how Barsad and Cly were
          even a hundred times better than he had thought them, and
          the prisoner a hundred times worse. Lastly, came my Lord
          himself, turning the suit of clothes, now inside out, now
          outside in, but on the whole decidedly trimming and
          shaping them into grave-clothes for the prisoner.</para>

          <para>And now, the jury turned to consider, and the great
          flies swarmed again.</para>

          <para>Mr. Carton, who had so long sat looking at the
          ceiling of the court, changed neither his place nor his
          attitude, even in this excitement. While his teamed
          friend, Mr. Stryver, massing his papers before him,
          whispered with those who sat near, and from time to time
          glanced anxiously at the jury; while all the spectators
          moved more or less, and grouped themselves anew; while
          even my Lord himself arose from his seat, and slowly
          paced up and down his platform, not unattended by a
          suspicion in the minds of the audience that his state was
          feverish; this one man sat leaning back, with his torn
          gown half off him, his untidy wig put on just as it had
          happened to fight on his head after its removal, his
          hands in his pockets, and his eyes on the ceiling as they
          had been all day. Something especially reckless in his
          demeanour, not only gave him a disreputable look, but so
          diminished the strong resemblance he undoubtedly bore to
          the prisoner (which his momentary earnestness, when they
          were compared together, had strengthened), that many of
          the lookers-on, taking note of him now, said to one
          another they would hardly have thought the two were so
          alike. Mr. Cruncher made the observation to his next
          neighbour, and added, "I'd hold half a guinea that HE
          don't get no law-work to do. Don't look like the sort of
          one to get any, do he?"</para>

          <para>Yet, this Mr. Carton took in more of the details of
          the scene than he appeared to take in; for now, when Miss
          Manette's head dropped upon her father's breast, he was
          the first to see it, and to say audibly: "Officer! look
          to that young lady. Help the gentleman to take her out.
          Don't you see she will fall!"</para>

          <para>There was much commiseration for her as she was
          removed, and much sympathy with her father. It had
          evidently been a great distress to him, to have the days
          of his imprisonment recalled. He had shown strong
          internal agitation when he was questioned, and that
          pondering or brooding look which made him old, had been
          upon him, like a heavy cloud, ever since. As he passed
          out, the jury, who had turned back and paused a moment,
          spoke, through their foreman.</para>

          <para>They were not agreed, and wished to retire. My Lord
          (perhaps with George Washington on his mind) showed some
          surprise that they were not agreed, but signified his
          pleasure that they should retire under watch and ward,
          and retired himself. The trial had lasted all day, and
          the lamps in the court were now being lighted. It began
          to be rumoured that the jury would be out a long while.
          The spectators dropped off to get refreshment, and the
          prisoner withdrew to the back of the dock, and sat
          down.</para>

          <para>Mr. Lorry, who had gone out when the young lady and
          her father went out, now reappeared, and beckoned to
          Jerry: who, in the slackened interest, could easily get
          near him.</para>

          <para>"Jerry, if you wish to take something to eat, you
          can. But, keep in the way. You will be sure to hear when
          the jury come in. Don't be a moment behind them, for I
          want you to take the verdict back to the bank. You are
          the quickest messenger I know, and will get to Temple Bar
          long before I can."</para>

          <para>Jerry had just enough forehead to knuckle, and he
          knuckled it in acknowedgment of this communication and a
          shilling. Mr. Carton came up at the moment, and touched
          Mr. Lorry on the arm.</para>

          <para>"How is the young lady?"</para>

          <para>"She is greatly distressed; but her father is
          comforting her, and she feels the better for being out of
          court."</para>

          <para>"I'll tell the prisoner so. It won't do for a
          respectable bank gentleman like you, to be seen speaking
          to him publicly, you know."</para>

          <para>Mr. Lorry reddened as if he were conscious of
          having debated the point in his mind, and Mr. Carton made
          his way to the outside of the bar. The way out of court
          lay in that direction, and Jerry followed him, all eyes,
          ears, and spikes.</para>

          <para>"Mr. Darnay!"</para>

          <para>The prisoner came forward directly.</para>

          <para>"You will naturally be anxious to hear of the
          witness, Miss Manette. She will do very well. You have
          seen the worst of her agitation."</para>

          <para>"I am deeply sorry to have been the cause of it.
          Could you tell her so for me, with my fervent
          acknowledgments?"</para>

          <para>"Yes, I could. I will, if you ask it."</para>

          <para>Mr. Carton's manner was so careless as to be almost
          insolent. He stood, half turned from the prisoner,
          lounging with his elbow against the bar.</para>

          <para>"I do ask it. Accept my cordial thanks."</para>

          <para>"What," said Carton, still only half turned towards
          him, "do you expect, Mr. Darnay?"</para>

          <para>"The worst."</para>

          <para>"It's the wisest thing to expect, and the
          likeliest. But I think their withdrawing is in your
          favour."</para>

          <para>Loitering on the way out of court not being
          allowed, Jerry heard no more: but left them--so like each
          other in feature, so unlike each other in
          manner--standing side by side, both reflected in the
          glass above them.</para>

          <para>An hour and a half limped heavily away in the
          thief-and-rascal crowded passages below, even though
          assisted off with mutton pies and ale. The hoarse
          messenger, uncomfortably seated on a form after taking
          that refection, had dropped into a doze, when a loud
          murmur and a rapid tide of people setting up the stairs
          that led to the court, carried him along with
          them.</para>

          <para>"Jerry! Jerry!" Mr. Lorry was already calling at
          the door when he got there.</para>

          <para>"Here, sir! It's a fight to get back again. Here I
          am, sir!"</para>

          <para>Mr. Lorry handed him a paper through the throng.
          "Quick! Have you got it?"</para>

          <para>"Yes, sir."</para>

          <para>Hastily written on the paper was the word
          "AQUITTED."</para>

          <para>"If you had sent the message, `Recalled to Life,'
          again," muttered Jerry, as he turned, "I should have
          known what you meant, this time."</para>

          <para>He had no opportunity of saying, or so much as
          thinking, anything else, until he was clear of the Old
          Bailey; for, the crowd came pouring out with a vehemence
          that nearly took him off his legs, and a loud buzz swept
          into the street as if the baffled blue-flies were
          dispersing in search of other carrion.</para>
        </chapter>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>IV</chapnum>

            <title>Congratulatory</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>From the dimly-lighted passages of the court, the
          last sediment of the human stew that had been boiling
          there all day, was straining off, when Doctor Manette,
          Lucie Manette, his daughter, Mr. Lorry, the solicitor for
          the defence, and its counsel, Mr. Stryver, stood gathered
          round Mr. Charles Darnay--just released--congratulating
          him on his escape from death.</para>

          <para>It would have been difficult by a far brighter
          light, to recognise in Doctor Manette, intellectual of
          face and upright of bearing, the shoemaker of the garret
          in Paris. Yet, no one could have looked at him twice,
          without looking again: even though the opportunity of
          observation had not extended to the mournful cadence of
          his low grave voice, and to the abstraction that
          overclouded him fitfully, without any apparent reason.
          While one external cause, and that a reference to his
          long lingering agony, would always--as on the
          trial--evoke this condition from the depths of his soul,
          it was also in its nature to arise of itself, and to draw
          a gloom over him, as incomprehensible to those
          unacquainted with his story as if they had seen the
          shadow of the actual Bastille thrown upon him by a summer
          sun, when the substance was three hundred miles
          away.</para>

          <para>Only his daughter had the power of charming this
          black brooding from his mind. She was the golden thread
          that united him to a Past beyond his misery, and to a
          Present beyond his misery: and the sound of her voice,
          the light of her face, the touch of her hand, had a
          strong beneficial influence with him almost always. Not
          absolutely always, for she could recall some occasions on
          which her power had failed; but they were few and slight,
          and she believed them over.</para>

          <para>Mr. Darnay had kissed her hand fervently and
          gratefully, and had turned to Mr. Stryver, whom he warmly
          thanked. Mr. Stryver, a man of little more than thirty,
          but looking twenty years older than he was, stout, loud,
          red, bluff, and free from any drawback of delicacy, had a
          pushing way of shouldering himself (morally and
          physically) into companies and conversations, that argued
          well for his shouldering his way up in life.</para>

          <para>He still had his wig and gown on, and he said,
          squaring himself at his late client to that degree that
          he squeezed the innocent Mr. Lorry clean out of the
          group: "I am glad to have brought you off with honour,
          Mr. Darnay. It was an infamous prosecution, grossly
          infamous; but not the less likely to succeed on that
          account."</para>

          <para>"You have laid me under an obligation to you for
          life--in two senses," said his late client, taking his
          hand.</para>

          <para>"I have done my best for you, Mr. Darnay; and my
          best is as good as another man's, I believe."</para>

          <para>It clearly being incumbent on some one to say,
          "Much better," Mr. Lorry said it; perhaps not quite
          disinterestedly, but with the interested object of
          squeezing himself back again.</para>

          <para>"You think so?" said Mr. Stryver. "Well! you have
          been present all day, and you ought to know. You are a
          man of business, too."</para>

          <para>"And as such," quoth Mr. Lorry, whom the counsel
          learned in the law had now shouldered back into the
          group, just as he had previously shouldered him out of
          it--"as such I will appeal to Doctor Manette, to break up
          this conference and order us all to our homes. Miss Lucie
          looks ill, Mr. Darnay has had a terrible day, we are worn
          out."</para>

          <para>"Speak for yourself, Mr. Lorry," said Stryver; "I
          have a night's work to do yet. Speak for
          yourself."</para>

          <para>"I speak for myself," answered Mr. Lorry, "and for
          Mr. Darnay, and for Miss Lucie, and--Miss Lucie, do you
          not think I may speak for us all?" He asked her the
          question pointedly, and with a glance at her
          father.</para>

          <para>His face had become frozen, as it were, in a very
          curious look at Darnay: an intent look, deepening into a
          frown of dislike and distrust, not even unmixed with
          fear. With this strange expression on him his thoughts
          had wandered away.</para>

          <para>"My father," said Lucie, softly laying her hand on
          his.</para>

          <para>He slowly shook the shadow off, and turned to
          her.</para>

          <para>"Shall we go home, my father?"</para>

          <para>With a long breath, he answered "Yes."</para>

          <para>The friends of the acquitted prisoner had
          dispersed, under the impression--which he himself had
          originated--that he would not be released that night. The
          lights were nearly all extinguished in the passages, the
          iron gates were being closed with a jar and a rattle, and
          the dismal place was deserted until to-morrow morning's
          interest of gallows, pillory, whipping-post, and
          branding-iron, should repeople it. Walking between her
          father and Mr. Darnay, Lucie Manette passed into the open
          air. A hackney-coach was called, and the father and
          daughter departed in it.</para>

          <para>Mr. Stryver had left them in the passages, to
          shoulder his way back to the robing-room. Another person,
          who had not joined the group, or interchanged a word with
          any one of them, but who had been leaning against the
          wall where its shadow was darkest, had silently strolled
          out after the rest, and had looked on until the coach
          drove away. He now stepped up to where Mr. Lorry and Mr.
          Darnay stood upon the pavement.</para>

          <para>"So, Mr. Lorry! Men of business may speak to Mr.
          Darnay now?"</para>

          <para>Nobody had made any acknowledgment of Mr. Carton's
          part in the day's proceedings; nobody had known of it. He
          was unrobed, and was none the better for it in
          appearance.</para>

          <para>"If you knew what a conflict goes on in the
          business mind, when the business mind is divided between
          good-natured impulse and business appearances, you would
          be amused, Mr. Darnay."</para>

          <para>Mr. Lorry reddened, and said, warmly, "You have
          mentioned that before, sir. We men of business, who serve
          a House, are not our own masters. We have to think of the
          House more than ourselves."</para>

          <para>"_I_ know, _I_ know," rejoined Mr. Carton,
          carelessly. "Don't be nettled, Mr. Lorry. You are as good
          as another, I have no doubt: better, I dare say."</para>

          <para>"And indeed, sir," pursued Mr. Lorry, not minding
          him, "I really don't know what you have to do with the
          matter. If you'll excuse me, as very much your elder, for
          saying so, I really don't know that it is your
          business."</para>

          <para>"Business! Bless you, _I_ have no business," said
          Mr. Carton.</para>

          <para>"It is a pity you have not, sir."</para>

          <para>"I think so, too."</para>

          <para>"If you had," pursued Mr. Lorry, "perhaps you would
          attend to it."</para>

          <para>"Lord love you, no!--I shouldn't," said Mr.
          Carton.</para>

          <para>"Well, sir!" cried Mr. Lorry, thoroughly heated by
          his indifference, "business is a very good thing, and a
          very respectable thing. And, sir, if business imposes its
          restraints and its silences and impediments, Mr. Darnay
          as a young gentleman of generosity knows how to make
          allowance for that circumstance. Mr. Darnay, good night,
          God bless you, sir! I hope you have been this day
          preserved for a prosperous and happy life.--Chair
          there!"</para>

          <para>Perhaps a little angry with himself, as well as
          with the barrister, Mr. Lorry bustled into the chair, and
          was carried off to Tellson's. Carton, who smelt of port
          wine, and did not appear to be quite sober, laughed then,
          and turned to Darnay:</para>

          <para>"This is a strange chance that throws you and me
          together. This must be a strange night to you, standing
          alone here with your counterpart on these street
          stones?"</para>

          <para>"I hardly seem yet," returned Charles Darnay, "to
          belong to this world again."</para>

          <para>"I don't wonder at it; it's not so long since you
          were pretty far advanced on your way to another. You
          speak faintly."</para>

          <para>"I begin to think I AM faint."</para>

          <para>"Then why the devil don't you dine? I dined,
          myself, while those numskulls were deliberating which
          world you should belong to--this, or some other. Let me
          show you the nearest tavern to dine well at."</para>

          <para>Drawing his arm through his own, he took him down
          Ludgate-hill to Fleet-street, and so, up a covered way,
          into a tavern. Here, they were shown into a little room,
          where Charles Darnay was soon recruiting his strength
          with a good plain dinner and good wine: while Carton sat
          opposite to him at the same table, with his separate
          bottle of port before him, and his fully half-insolent
          manner upon him.</para>

          <para>"Do you feel, yet, that you belong to this
          terrestrial scheme again, Mr. Darnay?"</para>

          <para>"I am frightfully confused regarding time and
          place; but I am so far mended as to feel that."</para>

          <para>"It must be an immense satisfaction!"</para>

          <para>He said it bitterly, and filled up his glass again:
          which was a large one.</para>

          <para>"As to me, the greatest desire I have, is to forget
          that I belong to it. It has no good in it for me--except
          wine like this--nor I for it. So we are not much alike in
          that particular. Indeed, I begin to think we are not much
          alike in any particular, you and I."</para>

          <para>Confused by the emotion of the day, and feeling his
          being there with this Double of coarse deportment, to be
          like a dream, Charles Darnay was at a loss how to answer;
          finally, answered not at all.</para>

          <para>"Now your dinner is done," Carton presently said,
          "why don't you call a health, Mr. Darnay; why don't you
          give your toast?"</para>

          <para>"What health? What toast?"</para>

          <para>"Why, it's on the tip of your tongue. It ought to
          be, it must be, I'll swear it's there."</para>

          <para>"Miss Manette, then!"</para>

          <para>"Miss Manette, then!"</para>

          <para>Looking his companion full in the face while he
          drank the toast, Carton flung his glass over his shoulder
          against the wall, where it shivered to pieces; then, rang
          the bell, and ordered in another.</para>

          <para>"That's a fair young lady to hand to a coach in the
          dark, Mr. Darnay!" he said, ruing his new goblet.</para>

          <para>A slight frown and a laconic "Yes," were the
          answer.</para>

          <para>"That's a fair young lady to be pitied by and wept
          for by! How does it feel? Is it worth being tried for
          one's life, to be the object of such sympathy and
          compassion, Mr. Darnay?"</para>

          <para>Again Darnay answered not a word.</para>

          <para>"She was mightily pleased to have your message,
          when I gave it her. Not that she showed she was pleased,
          but I suppose she was."</para>

          <para>The allusion served as a timely reminder to Darnay
          that this disagreeable companion had, of his own free
          will, assisted him in the strait of the day. He turned
          the dialogue to that point, and thanked him for
          it.</para>

          <para>"I neither want any thanks, nor merit any," was the
          careless rejoinder. "It was nothing to do, in the first
          place; and I don't know why I did it, in the second. Mr.
          Darnay, let me ask you a question."</para>

          <para>"Willingly, and a small return for your good
          offices."</para>

          <para>"Do you think I particularly like you?"</para>

          <para>"Really, Mr. Carton," returned the other, oddly
          disconcerted, "I have not asked myself the
          question."</para>

          <para>"But ask yourself the question now."</para>

          <para>"You have acted as if you do; but I don't think you
          do."</para>

          <para>"_I_ don't think I do," said Carton. "I begin to
          have a very good opinion of your understanding."</para>

          <para>"Nevertheless," pursued Darnay, rising to ring the
          bell, "there is nothing in that, I hope, to prevent my
          calling the reckoning, and our parting without ill-blood
          on either side."</para>

          <para>Carton rejoining, "Nothing in life!" Darnay rang.
          "Do you call the whole reckoning?" said Carton. On his
          answering in the affirmative, "Then bring me another pint
          of this same wine, drawer, and come and wake me at
          ten."</para>

          <para>The bill being paid, Charles Darnay rose and wished
          him good night. Without returning the wish, Carton rose
          too, with something of a threat of defiance in his
          manner, and said, "A last word, Mr. Darnay: you think I
          am drunk?"</para>

          <para>"I think you have been drinking, Mr.
          Carton."</para>

          <para>"Think? You know I have been drinking."</para>

          <para>"Since I must say so, I know it."</para>

          <para>"Then you shall likewise know why. I am a
          disappointed drudge, sir. I care for no man on earth, and
          no man on earth cares for me."</para>

          <para>"Much to be regretted. You might have used your
          talents better."</para>

          <para>"May be so, Mr. Darnay; may be not. Don't let your
          sober face elate you, however; you don't know what it may
          come to. Good night!"</para>

          <para>When he was left alone, this strange being took up
          a candle, went to a glass that hung against the wall, and
          surveyed himself minutely in it.</para>

          <para>"Do you particularly like the man?" he muttered, at
          his own image; "why should you particularly like a man
          who resembles you? There is nothing in you to like; you
          know that. Ah, confound you! What a change you have made
          in yourself! A good reason for taking to a man, that he
          shows you what you have fallen away from, and what you
          might have been! Change places with him, and would you
          have been looked at by those blue eyes as he was, and
          commiserated by that agitated face as he was? Come on,
          and have it out in plain words! You hate the
          fellow."</para>

          <para>He resorted to his pint of wine for consolation,
          drank it all in a few minutes, and fell asleep on his
          arms, with his hair straggling over the table, and a long
          winding-sheet in the candle dripping down upon
          him.</para>
        </chapter>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>V</chapnum>

            <title>The Jackal</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>Those were drinking days, and most men drank hard.
          So very great is the improvement Time has brought about
          in such habits, that a moderate statement of the quantity
          of wine and punch which one man would swallow in the
          course of a night, without any detriment to his
          reputation as a perfect gentleman, would seem, in these
          days, a ridiculous exaggeration. The learned profession
          of the law was certainly not behind any other learned
          profession in its Bacchanalian propensities; neither was
          Mr. Stryver, already fast shouldering his way to a large
          and lucrative practice, behind his compeers in this
          particular, any more than in the drier parts of the legal
          race.</para>

          <para>A favourite at the Old Bailey, and eke at the
          Sessions, Mr. Stryver had begun cautiously to hew away
          the lower staves of the ladder on which he mounted.
          Sessions and Old Bailey had now to summon their
          favourite, specially, to their longing arms; and
          shouldering itself towards the visage of the Lord Chief
          Justice in the Court of King's Bench, the florid
          countenance of Mr. Stryver might be daily seen, bursting
          out of the bed of wigs, like a great sunflower pushing
          its way at the sun from among a rank garden-full of
          flaring companions.</para>

          <para>It had once been noted at the Bar, that while Mr.
          Stryver was a glib man, and an unscrupulous, and a ready,
          and a bold, he had not that faculty of extracting the
          essence from a heap of statements, which is among the
          most striking and necessary of the advocate's
          accomplishments. But, a remarkable improvement came upon
          him as to this. The more business he got, the greater his
          power seemed to grow of getting at its pith and marrow;
          and however late at night he sat carousing with Sydney
          Carton, he always had his points at his fingers' ends in
          the morning.</para>

          <para>Sydney Carton, idlest and most unpromising of men,
          was Stryver's great ally. What the two drank together,
          between Hilary Term and Michaelmas, might have floated a
          king's ship. Stryver never had a case in hand, anywhere,
          but Carton was there, with his hands in his pockets,
          staring at the ceiling of the court; they went the same
          Circuit, and even there they prolonged their usual orgies
          late into the night, and Carton was rumoured to be seen
          at broad day, going home stealthily and unsteadily to his
          lodgings, like a dissipated cat. At last, it began to get
          about, among such as were interested in the matter, that
          although Sydney Carton would never be a lion, he was an
          amazingly good jackal, and that he rendered suit and
          service to Stryver in that humble capacity.</para>

          <para>"Ten o'clock, sir," said the man at the tavern,
          whom he had charged to wake him--"ten o'clock,
          sir."</para>

          <para>"WHAT'S the matter?"</para>

          <para>"Ten o'clock, sir."</para>

          <para>"What do you mean? Ten o'clock at night?"</para>

          <para>"Yes, sir. Your honour told me to call you."</para>

          <para>"Oh! I remember. Very well, very well."</para>

          <para>After a few dull efforts to get to sleep again,
          which the man dexterously combated by stirring the fire
          continuously for five minutes, he got up, tossed his hat
          on, and walked out. He turned into the Temple, and,
          having revived himself by twice pacing the pavements of
          King's Bench-walk and Paper-buildings, turned into the
          Stryver chambers.</para>

          <para>The Stryver clerk, who never assisted at these
          conferences, had gone home, and the Stryver principal
          opened the door. He had his slippers on, and a loose
          bed-gown, and his throat was bare for his greater ease.
          He had that rather wild, strained, seared marking about
          the eyes, which may be observed in all free livers of his
          class, from the portrait of Jeffries downward, and which
          can be traced, under various disguises of Art, through
          the portraits of every Drinking Age.</para>

          <para>"You are a little late, Memory," said
          Stryver.</para>

          <para>"About the usual time; it may be a quarter of an
          hour later."</para>

          <para>They went into a dingy room lined with books and
          littered with papers, where there was a blazing fire. A
          kettle steamed upon the hob, and in the midst of the
          wreck of papers a table shone, with plenty of wine upon
          it, and brandy, and rum, and sugar, and lemons.</para>

          <para>"You have had your bottle, I perceive,
          Sydney."</para>

          <para>"Two to-night, I think. I have been dining with the
          day's client; or seeing him dine--it's all one!"</para>

          <para>"That was a rare point, Sydney, that you brought to
          bear upon the identification. How did you come by it?
          When did it strike you?"</para>

          <para>"I thought he was rather a handsome fellow, and I
          thought I should have been much the same sort of fellow,
          if I had had any luck."</para>

          <para>Mr. Stryver laughed till he shook his precocious
          paunch.</para>

          <para>"You and your luck, Sydney! Get to work, get to
          work."</para>

          <para>Sullenly enough, the jackal loosened his dress,
          went into an adjoining room, and came back with a large
          jug of cold water, a basin, and a towel or two. Steeping
          the towels in the water, and partially wringing them out,
          he folded them on his head in a manner hideous to behold,
          sat down at the table, and said, "Now I am ready!"</para>

          <para>"Not much boiling down to be done to-night,
          Memory," said Mr. Stryver, gaily, as he looked among his
          papers.</para>

          <para>"How much?"</para>

          <para>"Only two sets of them."</para>

          <para>"Give me the worst first."</para>

          <para>"There they are, Sydney. Fire away!"</para>

          <para>The lion then composed himself on his back on a
          sofa on one side of the drinking-table, while the jackal
          sat at his own paper-bestrewn table proper, on the other
          side of it, with the bottles and glasses ready to his
          hand. Both resorted to the drinking-table without stint,
          but each in a different way; the lion for the most part
          reclining with his hands in his waistband, looking at the
          fire, or occasionally flirting with some lighter
          document; the jackal, with knitted brows and intent face,
          so deep in his task, that his eyes did not even follow
          the hand he stretched out for his glass--which often
          groped about, for a minute or more, before it found the
          glass for his lips. Two or three times, the matter in
          hand became so knotty, that the jackal found it
          imperative on him to get up, and steep his towels anew.
          From these pilgrimages to the jug and basin, he returned
          with such eccentricities of damp headgear as no words can
          describe; which were made the more ludicrous by his
          anxious gravity.</para>

          <para>At length the jackal had got together a compact
          repast for the lion, and proceeded to offer it to him.
          The lion took it with care and caution, made his
          selections from it, and his remarks upon it, and the
          jackal assisted both. When the repast was fully
          discussed, the lion put his hands in his waistband again,
          and lay down to mediate. The jackal then invigorated
          himself with a bum for his throttle, and a fresh
          application to his head, and applied himself to the
          collection of a second meal; this was administered to the
          lion in the same manner, and was not disposed of until
          the clocks struck three in the morning.</para>

          <para>"And now we have done, Sydney, fill a bumper of
          punch," said Mr. Stryver.</para>

          <para>The jackal removed the towels from his head, which
          had been steaming again, shook himself, yawned, shivered,
          and complied.</para>

          <para>"You were very sound, Sydney, in the matter of
          those crown witnesses to-day. Every question
          told."</para>

          <para>"I always am sound; am I not?"</para>

          <para>"I don't gainsay it. What has roughened your
          temper? Put some punch to it and smooth it again."</para>

          <para>With a deprecatory grunt, the jackal again
          complied.</para>

          <para>"The old Sydney Carton of old Shrewsbury School,"
          said Stryver, nodding his head over him as he reviewed
          him in the present and the past, "the old seesaw Sydney.
          Up one minute and down the next; now in spirits and now
          in despondency!"</para>

          <para>"Ah!" returned the other, sighing: "yes! The same
          Sydney, with the same luck. Even then, I did exercises
          for other boys, and seldom did my own.</para>

          <para>"And why not?"</para>

          <para>"God knows. It was my way, I suppose."</para>

          <para>He sat, with his hands in his pockets and his legs
          stretched out before him, looking at the fire.</para>

          <para>"Carton," said his friend, squaring himself at him
          with a bullying air, as if the fire-grate had been the
          furnace in which sustained endeavour was forged, and the
          one delicate thing to be done for the old Sydney Carton
          of old Shrewsbury School was to shoulder him into it,
          "your way is, and always was, a lame way. You summon no
          energy and purpose. Look at me."</para>

          <para>"Oh, botheration!" returned Sydney, with a lighter
          and more good- humoured laugh, "don't YOU be
          moral!"</para>

          <para>"How have I done what I have done?" said Stryver;
          "how do I do what I do?"</para>

          <para>"Partly through paying me to help you, I suppose.
          But it's not worth your while to apostrophise me, or the
          air, about it; what you want to do, you do. You were
          always in the front rank, and I was always
          behind."</para>

          <para>"I had to get into the front rank; I was not born
          there, was I?"</para>

          <para>"I was not present at the ceremony; but my opinion
          is you were," said Carton. At this, he laughed again, and
          they both laughed.</para>

          <para>"Before Shrewsbury, and at Shrewsbury, and ever
          since Shrewsbury," pursued Carton, "you have fallen into
          your rank, and I have fallen into mine. Even when we were
          fellow-students in the Student-Quarter of Paris, picking
          up French, and French law, and other French crumbs that
          we didn't get much good of, you were always somewhere,
          and I was always nowhere."</para>

          <para>"And whose fault was that?"</para>

          <para>"Upon my soul, I am not sure that it was not yours.
          You were always driving and riving and shouldering and
          passing, to that restless degree that I had no chance for
          my life but in rust and repose. It's a gloomy thing,
          however, to talk about one's own past, with the day
          breaking. Turn me in some other direction before I
          go."</para>

          <para>"Well then! Pledge me to the pretty witness," said
          Stryver, holding up his glass. "Are you turned in a
          pleasant direction?"</para>

          <para>Apparently not, for he became gloomy again.</para>

          <para>"Pretty witness," he muttered, looking down into
          his glass. "I have had enough of witnesses to-day and
          to-night; who's your pretty witness?"</para>

          <para>"The picturesque doctor's daughter, Miss
          Manette."</para>

          <para>"SHE pretty?"</para>

          <para>"Is she not?"</para>

          <para>"No."</para>

          <para>"Why, man alive, she was the admiration of the
          whole Court!"</para>

          <para>"Rot the admiration of the whole Court! Who made
          the Old Bailey a judge of beauty? She was a golden-haired
          doll!"</para>

          <para>"Do you know, Sydney," said Mr. Stryver, looking at
          him with sharp eyes, and slowly drawing a hand across his
          florid face: "do you know, I rather thought, at the time,
          that you sympathised with the golden-haired doll, and
          were quick to see what happened to the golden-haired
          doll?"</para>

          <para>"Quick to see what happened! If a girl, doll or no
          doll, swoons within a yard or two of a man's nose, he can
          see it without a perspective-glass. I pledge you, but I
          deny the beauty. And now I'll have no more drink; I'll
          get to bed."</para>

          <para>When his host followed him out on the staircase
          with a candle, to light him down the stairs, the day was
          coldly looking in through its grimy windows. When he got
          out of the house, the air was cold and sad, the dull sky
          overcast, the river dark and dim, the whole scene like a
          lifeless desert. And wreaths of dust were spinning round
          and round before the morning blast, as if the desert-sand
          had risen far away, and the first spray of it in its
          advance had begun to overwhelm the city.</para>

          <para>Waste forces within him, and a desert all around,
          this man stood still on his way across a silent terrace,
          and saw for a moment, lying in the wilderness before him,
          a mirage of honourable ambition, self-denial, and
          perseverance. In the fair city of this vision, there were
          airy galleries from which the loves and graces looked
          upon him, gardens in which the fruits of life hung
          ripening, waters of Hope that sparkled in his sight. A
          moment, and it was gone. Climbing to a high chamber in a
          well of houses, he threw himself down in his clothes on a
          neglected bed, and its pillow was wet with wasted
          tears.</para>

          <para>Sadly, sadly, the sun rose; it rose upon no sadder
          sight than the man of good abilities and good emotions,
          incapable of their directed exercise, incapable of his
          own help and his own happiness, sensible of the blight on
          him, and resigning himself to let it eat him away.</para>
        </chapter>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>VI</chapnum>

            <title>Hundreds of People</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>The quiet lodgings of Doctor Manette were in a
          quiet street-corner not far from Soho-square. On the
          afternoon of a certain fine Sunday when the waves of four
          months had roiled over the trial for treason, and carried
          it, as to the public interest and memory, far out to sea,
          Mr. Jarvis Lorry walked along the sunny streets from
          Clerkenwell where he lived, on his way to dine with the
          Doctor. After several relapses into business-absorption,
          Mr. Lorry had become the Doctor's friend, and the quiet
          street-corner was the sunny part of his life.</para>

          <para>On this certain fine Sunday, Mr. Lorry walked
          towards Soho, early in the afternoon, for three reasons
          of habit. Firstly, because, on fine Sundays, he often
          walked out, before dinner, with the Doctor and Lucie;
          secondly, because, on unfavourable Sundays, he was
          accustomed to be with them as the family friend, talking,
          reading, looking out of window, and generally getting
          through the day; thirdly, because he happened to have his
          own little shrewd doubts to solve, and knew how the ways
          of the Doctor's household pointed to that time as a
          likely time for solving them.</para>

          <para>A quainter corner than the corner where the Doctor
          lived, was not to be found in London. There was no way
          through it, and the front windows of the Doctor's
          lodgings commanded a pleasant little vista of street that
          had a congenial air of retirement on it. There were few
          buildings then, north of the Oxford-road, and
          forest-trees flourished, and wild flowers grew, and the
          hawthorn blossomed, in the now vanished fields. As a
          consequence, country airs circulated in Soho with
          vigorous freedom, instead of languishing into the parish
          like stray paupers without a settlement; and there was
          many a good south wall, not far off, on which the peaches
          ripened in their season.</para>

          <para>The summer light struck into the corner brilliantly
          in the earlier part of the day; but, when the streets
          grew hot, the corner was in shadow, though not in shadow
          so remote but that you could see beyond it into a glare
          of brightness. It was a cool spot, staid but cheerful, a
          wonderful place for echoes, and a very harbour from the
          raging streets.</para>

          <para>There ought to have been a tranquil bark in such an
          anchorage, and there was. The Doctor occupied two floors
          of a large stiff house, where several callings purported
          to be pursued by day, but whereof little was audible any
          day, and which was shunned by all of them at night. In a
          building at the back, attainable by a courtyard where a
          plane-tree rustled its green leaves, church-organs
          claimed to be made, and silver to be chased, and likewise
          gold to be beaten by some mysterious giant who had a
          golden arm starting out of the wall of the front hall--as
          if he had beaten himself precious, and menaced a similar
          conversion of all visitors. Very little of these trades,
          or of a lonely lodger rumoured to live up-stairs, or of a
          dim coach-trimming maker asserted to have a
          counting-house below, was ever heard or seen.
          Occasionally, a stray workman putting his coat on,
          traversed the hall, or a stranger peered about there, or
          a distant clink was heard across the courtyard, or a
          thump from the golden giant. These, however, were only
          the exceptions required to prove the rule that the
          sparrows in the plane-tree behind the house, and the
          echoes in the corner before it, had their own way from
          Sunday morning unto Saturday night.</para>

          <para>Doctor Manette received such patients here as his
          old reputation, and its revival in the floating whispers
          of his story, brought him. His scientific knowledge, and
          his vigilance and skill in conducting ingenious
          experiments, brought him otherwise into moderate request,
          and he earned as much as he wanted.</para>

          <para>These things were within Mr. Jarvis Lorry's
          knowledge, thoughts, and notice, when he rang the
          door-bell of the tranquil house in the corner, on the
          fine Sunday afternoon.</para>

          <para>"Doctor Manette at home?"</para>

          <para>Expected home.</para>

          <para>"Miss Lucie at home?"</para>

          <para>Expected home.</para>

          <para>"Miss Pross at home?"</para>

          <para>Possibly at home, but of a certainty impossible for
          handmaid to anticipate intentions of Miss Pross, as to
          admission or denial of the fact.</para>

          <para>"As I am at home myself," said Mr. Lorry, "I'll go
          upstairs."</para>

          <para>Although the Doctor's daughter had known nothing of
          the country of her birth, she appeared to have innately
          derived from it that ability to make much of little
          means, which is one of its most useful and most agreeable
          characteristics. Simple as the furniture was, it was set
          off by so many little adornments, of no value but for
          their taste and fancy, that its effect was delightful.
          The disposition of everything in the rooms, from the
          largest object to the least; the arrangement of colours,
          the elegant variety and contrast obtained by thrift in
          trifles, by delicate hands, clear eyes, and good sense;
          were at once so pleasant in themselves, and so expressive
          of their originator, that, as Mr. Lorry stood looking
          about him, the very chairs and tables seemed to ask him,
          with something of that peculiar expression which he knew
          so well by this time, whether he approved?</para>

          <para>There were three rooms on a floor, and, the doors
          by which they communicated being put open that the air
          might pass freely through them all, Mr. Lorry, smilingly
          observant of that fanciful resemblance which he detected
          all around him, walked from one to another. The first was
          the best room, and in it were Lucie's birds, and flowers,
          and books, and desk, and work-table, and box of
          water-colours; the second was the Doctor's
          consulting-room, used also as the dining-room; the third,
          changingly speckled by the rustle of the plane-tree in
          the yard, was the Doctor's bedroom, and there, in a
          corner, stood the disused shoemaker's bench and tray of
          tools, much as it had stood on the fifth floor of the
          dismal house by the wine-shop, in the suburb of Saint
          Antoine in Paris.</para>

          <para>"I wonder," said Mr. Lorry, pausing in his looking
          about, "that he keeps that reminder of his sufferings
          about him!"</para>

          <para>"And why wonder at that?" was the abrupt inquiry
          that made him start.</para>

          <para>It proceeded from Miss Pross, the wild red woman,
          strong of hand, whose acquaintance he had first made at
          the Royal George Hotel at Dover, and had since
          improved.</para>

          <para>"I should have thought--" Mr. Lorry began.</para>

          <para>"Pooh! You'd have thought!" said Miss Pross; and
          Mr. Lorry left off.</para>

          <para>"How do you do?" inquired that lady then--sharply,
          and yet as if to express that she bore him no
          malice.</para>

          <para>"I am pretty well, I thank you," answered Mr.
          Lorry, with meekness; "how are you?"</para>

          <para>"Nothing to boast of," said Miss Pross.</para>

          <para>"Indeed?"</para>

          <para>"Ah! indeed!" said Miss Pross. "I am very much put
          out about my Ladybird."</para>

          <para>"Indeed?"</para>

          <para>"For gracious sake say something else besides
          `indeed,' or you'll fidget me to death," said Miss Pross:
          whose character (dissociated from stature) was
          shortness.</para>

          <para>"Really, then?" said Mr. Lorry, as an
          amendment.</para>

          <para>"Really, is bad enough," returned Miss Pross, "but
          better. Yes, I am very much put out."</para>

          <para>"May I ask the cause?"</para>

          <para>"I don't want dozens of people who are not at all
          worthy of Ladybird, to come here looking after her," said
          Miss Pross.</para>

          <para>"DO dozens come for that purpose?"</para>

          <para>"Hundreds," said Miss Pross.</para>

          <para>It was characteristic of this lady (as of some
          other people before her time and since) that whenever her
          original proposition was questioned, she exaggerated
          it.</para>

          <para>"Dear me!" said Mr. Lorry, as the safest remark he
          could think of.</para>

          <para>"I have lived with the darling--or the darling has
          lived with me, and paid me for it; which she certainly
          should never have done, you may take your affidavit, if I
          could have afforded to keep either myself or her for
          nothing--since she was ten years old. And it's really
          very hard," said Miss Pross.</para>

          <para>Not seeing with precision what was very hard, Mr.
          Lorry shook his head; using that important part of
          himself as a sort of fairy cloak that would fit
          anything.</para>

          <para>"All sorts of people who are not in the least
          degree worthy of the pet, are always turning up," said
          Miss Pross. "When you began it--"</para>

          <para>"_I_ began it, Miss Pross?"</para>

          <para>"Didn't you? Who brought her father to
          life?"</para>

          <para>"Oh! If THAT was beginning it--" said Mr.
          Lorry.</para>

          <para>"It wasn't ending it, I suppose? I say, when you
          began it, it was hard enough; not that I have any fault
          to find with Doctor Manette, except that he is not worthy
          of such a daughter, which is no imputation on him, for it
          was not to be expected that anybody should be, under any
          circumstances. But it ready is doubly and trebly hard to
          have crowds and multitudes of people turning up after him
          (I could have forgiven him), to take Ladybird's
          affections away from me."</para>

          <para>Mr. Lorry knew Miss Pross to be very jealous, but
          he also knew her by this time to be, beneath the service
          of her eccentricity, one of those unselfish
          creatures--found only among women--who will, for pure
          love and admiration, bind themselves willing slaves, to
          youth when they have lost it, to beauty that they never
          had, to accomplishments that they were never fortunate
          enough to gain, to bright hopes that never shone upon
          their own sombre lives. He knew enough of the world to
          know that there is nothing in it better than the faithful
          service of the heart; so rendered and so free from any
          mercenary taint, he had such an exalted respect for it,
          that in the retributive arrangements made by his own
          mind--we all make such arrangements, more or less-- he
          stationed Miss Pross much nearer to the lower Angels than
          many ladies immeasurably better got up both by Nature and
          Art, who had balances at Tellson's.</para>

          <para>"There never was, nor will be, but one man worthy
          of Ladybird," said Miss Pross; "and that was my brother
          Solomon, if he hadn't made a mistake in life."</para>

          <para>Here again: Mr. Lorry's inquiries into Miss Pross's
          personal history had established the fact that her
          brother Solomon was a heartless scoundrel who had
          stripped her of everything she possessed, as a stake to
          speculate with, and had abandoned her in her poverty for
          evermore, with no touch of compunction. Miss Pross's
          fidelity of belief in Solomon (deducting a mere trifle
          for this slight mistake) was quite a serious matter with
          Mr. Lorry, and had its weight in his good opinion of
          her.</para>

          <para>"As we happen to be alone for the moment, and are
          both people of business," he said, when they had got back
          to the drawing-room and had sat down there in friendly
          relations, "let me ask you--does the Doctor, in talking
          with Lucie, never refer to the shoemaking time,
          yet?"</para>

          <para>"Never."</para>

          <para>"And yet keeps that bench and those tools beside
          him?"</para>

          <para>"Ah!" returned Miss Pross, shaking her head. "But I
          don't say he don't refer to it within himself."</para>

          <para>"Do you believe that he thinks of it much?"</para>

          <para>"I do," said Miss Pross.</para>

          <para>"Do you imagine--" Mr. Lorry had begun, when Miss
          Pross took him up short with:</para>

          <para>"Never imagine anything. Have no imagination at
          all."</para>

          <para>"I stand corrected; do you suppose--you go so far
          as to suppose, sometimes?"</para>

          <para>"Now and then," said Miss Pross.</para>

          <para>"Do you suppose," Mr. Lorry went on, with a
          laughing twinkle in his bright eye, as it looked kindly
          at her, "that Doctor Manette has any theory of his own,
          preserved through all those years, relative to the cause
          of his being so oppressed; perhaps, even to the name of
          his oppressor?"</para>

          <para>"I don't suppose anything about it but what
          Ladybird tells me."</para>

          <para>"And that is--?"</para>

          <para>"That she thinks he has."</para>

          <para>"Now don't be angry at my asking all these
          questions; because I am a mere dull man of business, and
          you are a woman of business."</para>

          <para>"Dull?" Miss Pross inquired, with placidity.</para>

          <para>Rather wishing his modest adjective away, Mr. Lorry
          replied, "No, no, no. Surely not. To return to
          business:--Is it not remarkable that Doctor Manette,
          unquestionably innocent of any crane as we are all well
          assured he is, should never touch upon that question? I
          will not say with me, though he had business relations
          with me many years ago, and we are now intimate; I will
          say with the fair daughter to whom he is so devotedly
          attached, and who is so devotedly attached to him?
          Believe me, Miss Pross, I don't approach the topic with
          you, out of curiosity, but out of zealous
          interest."</para>

          <para>"Well! To the best of my understanding, and bad's
          the best, you'll tell me," said Miss Pross, softened by
          the tone of the apology, "he is afraid of the whole
          subject."</para>

          <para>"Afraid?"</para>

          <para>"It's plain enough, I should think, why he may be.
          It's a dreadful remembrance. Besides that, his loss of
          himself grew out of it. Not knowing how he lost himself,
          or how he recovered himself, he may never feel certain of
          not losing himself again. That alone wouldn't make the
          subject pleasant, I should think."</para>

          <para>It was a profounder remark than Mr. Lorry had
          looked for. "True," said he, "and fearful to reflect
          upon. Yet, a doubt lurks in my mind, Miss Pross, whether
          it is good for Doctor Manette to have that suppression
          always shut up within him. Indeed, it is this doubt and
          the uneasiness it sometimes causes me that has led me to
          our present confidence."</para>

          <para>"Can't be helped," said Miss Pross, shaking her
          head. "Touch that string, and he instantly changes for
          the worse. Better leave it alone. In short, must leave it
          alone, like or no like. Sometimes, he gets up in the dead
          of the night, and will be heard, by us overhead there,
          walking up and down, walking up and down, in his room.
          Ladybird has learnt to know then that his mind is walking
          up and down, walking up and down, in his old prison. She
          hurries to him, and they go on together, walking up and
          down, walking up and down, until he is composed. But he
          never says a word of the true reason of his restlessness,
          to her, and she finds it best not to hint at it to him.
          In silence they go walking up and down together, walking
          up and down together, till her love and company have
          brought him to himself."</para>

          <para>Notwithstanding Miss Pross's denial of her own
          imagination, there was a perception of the pain of being
          monotonously haunted by one sad idea, in her repetition
          of the phrase, walking up and down, which testified to
          her possessing such a thing.</para>

          <para>The corner has been mentioned as a wonderful corner
          for echoes; it had begun to echo so resoundingly to the
          tread of coming feet, that it seemed as though the very
          mention of that weary pacing to and fro had set it
          going.</para>

          <para>"Here they are!" said Miss Pross, rising to break
          up the conference; "and now we shall have hundreds of
          people pretty soon!"</para>

          <para>It was such a curious corner in its acoustical
          properties, such a peculiar Ear of a place, that as Mr.
          Lorry stood at the open window, looking for the father
          and daughter whose steps he heard, he fancied they would
          never approach. Not only would the echoes die away, as
          though the steps had gone; but, echoes of other steps
          that never came would be heard in their stead, and would
          die away for good when they seemed close at hand.
          However, father and daughter did at last appear, and Miss
          Pross was ready at the street door to receive
          them.</para>

          <para>Miss Pross was a pleasant sight, albeit wild, and
          red, and grim, taking off her darling's bonnet when she
          came up-stairs, and touching it up with the ends of her
          handkerchief, and blowing the dust off it, and folding
          her mantle ready for laying by, and smoothing her rich
          hair with as much pride as she could possibly have taken
          in her own hair if she had been the vainest and
          handsomest of women. Her darling was a pleasant sight
          too, embracing her and thanking her, and protesting
          against her taking so much trouble for her--which last
          she only dared to do playfully, or Miss Pross, sorely
          hurt, would have retired to her own chamber and cried.
          The Doctor was a pleasant sight too, looking on at them,
          and telling Miss Pross how she spoilt Lucie, in accents
          and with eyes that had as much spoiling in them as Miss
          Pross had, and would have had more if it were possible.
          Mr. Lorry was a pleasant sight too, beaming at all this
          in his little wig, and thanking his bachelor stars for
          having lighted him in his declining years to a Home. But,
          no Hundreds of people came to see the sights, and Mr.
          Lorry looked in vain for the fulfilment of Miss Pross's
          prediction.</para>

          <para>Dinner-time, and still no Hundreds of people. In
          the arrangements of the little household, Miss Pross took
          charge of the lower regions, and always acquitted herself
          marvellously. Her dinners, of a very modest quality, were
          so well cooked and so well served, and so neat in their
          contrivances, half English and half French, that nothing
          could be better. Miss Pross's friendship being of the
          thoroughly practical kind, she had ravaged Soho and the
          adjacent provinces, in search of impoverished French,
          who, tempted by shillings and half- crowns, would impart
          culinary mysteries to her. From these decayed sons and
          daughters of Gaul, she had acquired such wonderful arts,
          that the woman and girl who formed the staff of domestics
          regarded her as quite a Sorceress, or Cinderella's
          Godmother: who would send out for a fowl, a rabbit, a
          vegetable or two from the garden, and change them into
          anything she pleased.</para>

          <para>On Sundays, Miss Pross dined at the Doctor's table,
          but on other days persisted in taking her meals at
          unknown periods, either in the lower regions, or in her
          own room on the second floor--a blue chamber, to which no
          one but her Ladybird ever gained admittance. On this
          occasion, Miss Pross, responding to Ladybird's pleasant
          face and pleasant efforts to please her, unbent
          exceedingly; so the dinner was very pleasant, too.</para>

          <para>It was an oppressive day, and, after dinner, Lucie
          proposed that the wine should be carried out under the
          plane-tree, and they should sit there in the air. As
          everything turned upon her, and revolved about her, they
          went out under the plane-tree, and she carried the wine
          down for the special benefit of Mr. Lorry. She had
          installed herself, some time before, as Mr. Lorry's
          cup-bearer; and while they sat under the plane-tree,
          talking, she kept his glass replenished. Mysterious backs
          and ends of houses peeped at them as they talked, and the
          plane-tree whispered to them in its own way above their
          heads.</para>

          <para>Still, the Hundreds of people did not present
          themselves. Mr. Darnay presented himself while they were
          sitting under the plane-tree, but he was only One.</para>

          <para>Doctor Manette received him kindly, and so did
          Lucie. But, Miss Pross suddenly became afflicted with a
          twitching in the head and body, and retired into the
          house. She was not unfrequently the victim of this
          disorder, and she called it, in familiar conversation, "a
          fit of the jerks."</para>

          <para>The Doctor was in his best condition, and looked
          specially young. The resemblance between him and Lucie
          was very strong at such times, and as they sat side by
          side, she leaning on his shoulder, and he resting his arm
          on the back of her chair, it was very agreeable to trace
          the likeness.</para>

          <para>He had been talking all day, on many subjects, and
          with unusual vivacity. "Pray, Doctor Manette," said Mr.
          Darnay, as they sat under the plane-tree--and he said it
          in the natural pursuit of the topic in hand, which
          happened to be the old buildings of London--"have you
          seen much of the Tower?"</para>

          <para>"Lucie and I have been there; but only casually. We
          have seen enough of it, to know that it teems with
          interest; little more."</para>

          <para>"_I_ have been there, as you remember," said
          Darnay, with a smile, though reddening a little angrily,
          "in another character, and not in a character that gives
          facilities for seeing much of it. They told me a curious
          thing when I was there."</para>

          <para>"What was that?" Lucie asked.</para>

          <para>"In making some alterations, the workmen came upon
          an old dungeon, which had been, for many years, built up
          and forgotten. Every stone of its inner wall was covered
          by inscriptions which had been carved by
          prisoners--dates, names, complaints, and prayers. Upon a
          corner stone in an angle of the wall, one prisoner, who
          seemed to have gone to execution, had cut as his last
          work, three letters. They were done with some very poor
          instrument, and hurriedly, with an unsteady hand. At
          first, they were read as D. I. C.; but, on being more
          carefully examined, the last letter was found to be G.
          There was no record or legend of any prisoner with those
          initials, and many fruitless guesses were made what the
          name could have been. At length, it was suggested that
          the letters were not initials, but the complete word,
          DiG. The floor was examined very carefully under the
          inscription, and, in the earth beneath a stone, or tile,
          or some fragment of paving, were found the ashes of a
          paper, mingled with the ashes of a small leathern case or
          bag. What the unknown prisoner had written will never be
          read, but he had written something, and hidden it away to
          keep it from the gaoler."</para>

          <para>"My father," exclaimed Lucie, "you are ill!"</para>

          <para>He had suddenly started up, with his hand to his
          head. His manner and his look quite terrified them
          all.</para>

          <para>"No, my dear, not ill. There are large drops of
          rain falling, and they made me start. We had better go
          in."</para>

          <para>He recovered himself almost instantly. Rain was
          really falling in large drops, and he showed the back of
          his hand with rain-drops on it. But, he said not a single
          word in reference to the discovery that had been told of,
          and, as they went into the house, the business eye of Mr.
          Lorry either detected, or fancied it detected, on his
          face, as it turned towards Charles Darnay, the same
          singular look that had been upon it when it turned
          towards him in the passages of the Court House.</para>

          <para>He recovered himself so quickly, however, that Mr.
          Lorry had doubts of his business eye. The arm of the
          golden giant in the hall was not more steady than he was,
          when he stopped under it to remark to them that he was
          not yet proof against slight surprises (if he ever would
          be), and that the rain had startled him.</para>

          <para>Tea-time, and Miss Pross making tea, with another
          fit of the jerks upon her, and yet no Hundreds of people.
          Mr. Carton had lounged in, but he made only Two.</para>

          <para>The night was so very sultry, that although they
          sat with doors and windows open, they were overpowered by
          heat. When the tea-table was done with, they all moved to
          one of the windows, and looked out into the heavy
          twilight. Lucie sat by her father; Darnay sat beside her;
          Carton leaned against a window. The curtains were long
          and white, and some of the thunder-gusts that whirled
          into the corner, caught them up to the ceiling, and waved
          them like spectral wings.</para>

          <para>"The rain-drops are still falling, large, heavy,
          and few," said Doctor Manette. "It comes slowly."</para>

          <para>"It comes surely," said Carton.</para>

          <para>They spoke low, as people watching and waiting
          mostly do; as people in a dark room, watching and waiting
          for Lightning, always do.</para>

          <para>There was a great hurry in the streets of people
          speeding away to get shelter before the storm broke; the
          wonderful corner for echoes resounded with the echoes of
          footsteps coming and going, yet not a footstep was
          there.</para>

          <para>"A multitude of people, and yet a solitude!" said
          Darnay, when they had listened for a while.</para>

          <para>"Is it not impressive, Mr. Darnay?" asked Lucie.
          "Sometimes, I have sat here of an evening, until I have
          fancied--but even the shade of a foolish fancy makes me
          shudder to-night, when all is so black and
          solemn--"</para>

          <para>"Let us shudder too. We may know what it
          is."</para>

          <para>"It will seem nothing to you. Such whims are only
          impressive as we originate them, I think; they are not to
          be communicated. I have sometimes sat alone here of an
          evening, listening, until I have made the echoes out to
          be the echoes of all the footsteps that are coming
          by-and-bye into our lives."</para>

          <para>"There is a great crowd coming one day into our
          lives, if that be so," Sydney Carton struck in, in his
          moody way.</para>

          <para>The footsteps were incessant, and the hurry of them
          became more and more rapid. The corner echoed and
          re-echoed with the tread of feet; some, as it seemed,
          under the windows; some, as it seemed, in the room; some
          coming, some going, some breaking off, some stopping
          altogether; all in the distant streets, and not one
          within sight.</para>

          <para>"Are all these footsteps destined to come to all of
          us, Miss Manette, or are we to divide them among
          us?"</para>

          <para>"I don't know, Mr. Darnay; I told you it was a
          foolish fancy, but you asked for it. When I have yielded
          myself to it, I have been alone, and then I have imagined
          them the footsteps of the people who are to come into my
          life, and my father's."</para>

          <para>"I take them into mine!" said Carton. "_I_ ask no
          questions and make no stipulations. There is a great
          crowd bearing down upon us, Miss Manette, and I see
          them--by the Lightning." He added the last words, after
          there had been a vivid flash which had shown him lounging
          in the window.</para>

          <para>"And I hear them!" he added again, after a peal of
          thunder. "Here they come, fast, fierce, and
          furious!"</para>

          <para>It was the rush and roar of rain that he typified,
          and it stopped him, for no voice could be heard in it. A
          memorable storm of thunder and lightning broke with that
          sweep of water, and there was not a moment's interval in
          crash, and fire, and rain, until after the moon rose at
          midnight.</para>

          <para>The great bell of Saint Paul's was striking one in
          the cleared air, when Mr. Lorry, escorted by Jerry,
          high-booted and bearing a lantern, set forth on his
          return-passage to Clerkenwell. There were solitary
          patches of road on the way between Soho and Clerkenwell,
          and Mr. Lorry, mindful of foot-pads, always retained
          Jerry for this service: though it was usually performed a
          good two hours earlier.</para>

          <para>"What a night it has been! Almost a night, Jerry,"
          said Mr. Lorry, "to bring the dead out of their
          graves."</para>

          <para>"I never see the night myself, master--nor yet I
          don't expect to-- what would do that," answered
          Jerry.</para>

          <para>"Good night, Mr. Carton," said the man of business.
          "Good night, Mr. Darnay. Shall we ever see such a night
          again, together!"</para>

          <para>Perhaps. Perhaps, see the great crowd of people
          with its rush and roar, bearing down upon them,
          too.</para>
        </chapter>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>VII</chapnum>

            <title>Monseigneur in Town</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>Monseigneur, one of the great lords in power at the
          Court, held his fortnightly reception in his grand hotel
          in Paris. Monseigneur was in his inner room, his
          sanctuary of sanctuaries, the Holiest of Holiests to the
          crowd of worshippers in the suite of rooms without.
          Monseigneur was about to take his chocolate. Monseigneur
          could swallow a great many things with ease, and was by
          some few sullen minds supposed to be rather rapidly
          swallowing France; but, his morning's chocolate could not
          so much as get into the throat of Monseigneur, without
          the aid of four strong men besides the Cook.</para>

          <para>Yes. It took four men, all four ablaze with
          gorgeous decoration, and the Chief of them unable to
          exist with fewer than two gold watches in his pocket,
          emulative of the noble and chaste fashion set by
          Monseigneur, to conduct the happy chocolate to
          Monseigneur's lips. One lacquey carried the chocolate-pot
          into the sacred presence; a second, milled and frothed
          the chocolate with the little instrument he bore for that
          function; a third, presented the favoured napkin; a
          fourth (he of the two gold watches), poured the chocolate
          out. It was impossible for Monseigneur to dispense with
          one of these attendants on the chocolate and hold his
          high place under the admiring Heavens. Deep would have
          been the blot upon his escutcheon if his chocolate had
          been ignobly waited on by only three men; he must have
          died of two.</para>

          <para>Monseigneur had been out at a little supper last
          night, where the Comedy and the Grand Opera were
          charmingly represented. Monseigneur was out at a little
          supper most nights, with fascinating company. So polite
          and so impressible was Monseigneur, that the Comedy and
          the Grand Opera had far more influence with him in the
          tiresome articles of state affairs and state secrets,
          than the needs of all France. A happy circumstance for
          France, as the like always is for all countries similarly
          favoured!--always was for England (by way of example), in
          the regretted days of the merry Stuart who sold
          it.</para>

          <para>Monseigneur had one truly noble idea of general
          public business, which was, to let everything go on in
          its own way; of particular public business, Monseigneur
          had the other truly noble idea that it must all go his
          way--tend to his own power and pocket. Of his pleasures,
          general and particular, Monseigneur had the other truly
          noble idea, that the world was made for them. The text of
          his order (altered from the original by only a pronoun,
          which is not much) ran: "The earth and the fulness
          thereof are mine, saith Monseigneur."</para>

          <para>Yet, Monseigneur had slowly found that vulgar
          embarrassments crept into his affairs, both private and
          public; and he had, as to both classes of affairs, allied
          himself perforce with a Farmer-General. As to finances
          public, because Monseigneur could not make anything at
          all of them, and must consequently let them out to
          somebody who could; as to finances private, because
          Farmer-Generals were rich, and Monseigneur, after
          generations of great luxury and expense, was growing
          poor. Hence Monseigneur had taken his sister from a
          convent, while there was yet time to ward off the
          impending veil, the cheapest garment she could wear, and
          had bestowed her as a prize upon a very rich
          Farmer-General, poor in family. Which Farmer-General,
          carrying an appropriate cane with a golden apple on the
          top of it, was now among the company in the outer rooms,
          much prostrated before by mankind--always excepting
          superior mankind of the blood of Monseigneur, who, his
          own wife included, looked down upon him with the loftiest
          contempt.</para>

          <para>A sumptuous man was the Farmer-General. Thirty
          horses stood in his stables, twenty-four male domestics
          sat in his halls, six body-women waited on his wife. As
          one who pretended to do nothing but plunder and forage
          where he could, the Farmer-General--howsoever his
          matrimonial relations conduced to social morality--was at
          least the greatest reality among the personages who
          attended at the hotel of Monseigneur that day.</para>

          <para>For, the rooms, though a beautiful scene to look
          at, and adorned with every device of decoration that the
          taste and skill of the time could achieve, were, in
          truth, not a sound business; considered with any
          reference to the scarecrows in the rags and nightcaps
          elsewhere (and not so far off, either, but that the
          watching towers of Notre Dame, almost equidistant from
          the two extremes, could see them both), they would have
          been an exceedingly uncomfortable business--if that could
          have been anybody's business, at the house of
          Monseigneur. Military officers destitute of military
          knowledge; naval officers with no idea of a ship; civil
          officers without a notion of affairs; brazen
          ecclesiastics, of the worst world worldly, with sensual
          eyes, loose tongues, and looser lives; all totally unfit
          for their several callings, all lying horribly in
          pretending to belong to them, but all nearly or remotely
          of the order of Monseigneur, and therefore foisted on all
          public employments from which anything was to be got;
          these were to be told off by the score and the score.
          People not immediately connected with Monseigneur or the
          State, yet equally unconnected with anything that was
          real, or with lives passed in travelling by any straight
          road to any true earthly end, were no less abundant.
          Doctors who made great fortunes out of dainty remedies
          for imaginary disorders that never existed, smiled upon
          their courtly patients in the ante-chambers of
          Monseigneur. Projectors who had discovered every kind of
          remedy for the little evils with which the State was
          touched, except the remedy of setting to work in earnest
          to root out a single sin, poured their distracting babble
          into any ears they could lay hold of, at the reception of
          Monseigneur. Unbelieving Philosophers who were
          remodelling the world with words, and making card-towers
          of Babel to scale the skies with, talked with Unbelieving
          Chemists who had an eye on the transmutation of metals,
          at this wonderful gathering accumulated by Monseigneur.
          Exquisite gentlemen of the finest breeding, which was at
          that remarkable time--and has been since--to be known by
          its fruits of indifference to every natural subject of
          human interest, were in the most exemplary state of
          exhaustion, at the hotel of Monseigneur. Such homes had
          these various notabilities left behind them in the fine
          world of Paris, that the spies among the assembled
          devotees of Monseigneur--forming a goodly half of the
          polite company--would have found it hard to discover
          among the angels of that sphere one solitary wife, who,
          in her manners and appearance, owned to being a Mother.
          Indeed, except for the mere act of bringing a troublesome
          creature into this world-- which does not go far towards
          the realisation of the name of mother-- there was no such
          thing known to the fashion. Peasant women kept the
          unfashionable babies close, and brought them up, and
          charming grandmammas of sixty dressed and supped as at
          twenty.</para>

          <para>The leprosy of unreality disfigured every human
          creature in attendance upon Monseigneur. In the outermost
          room were half a dozen exceptional people who had had,
          for a few years, some vague misgiving in them that things
          in general were going rather wrong. As a promising way of
          setting them right, half of the half-dozen had become
          members of a fantastic sect of Convulsionists, and were
          even then considering within themselves whether they
          should foam, rage, roar, and turn cataleptic on the
          spot--thereby setting up a highly intelligible
          finger-post to the Future, for Monseigneur's guidance.
          Besides these Dervishes, were other three who had rushed
          into another sect, which mended matters with a jargon
          about "the Centre of Truth:" holding that Man had got out
          of the Centre of Truth--which did not need much
          demonstration--but had not got out of the Circumference,
          and that he was to be kept from flying out of the
          Circumference, and was even to be shoved back into the
          Centre, by fasting and seeing of spirits. Among these,
          accordingly, much discoursing with spirits went on--and
          it did a world of good which never became
          manifest.</para>

          <para>But, the comfort was, that all the company at the
          grand hotel of Monseigneur were perfectly dressed. If the
          Day of Judgment had only been ascertained to be a dress
          day, everybody there would have been eternally correct.
          Such frizzling and powdering and sticking up of hair,
          such delicate complexions artificially preserved and
          mended, such gallant swords to look at, and such delicate
          honour to the sense of smell, would surely keep anything
          going, for ever and ever. The exquisite gentlemen of the
          finest breeding wore little pendent trinkets that chinked
          as they languidly moved; these golden fetters rang like
          precious little bells; and what with that ringing, and
          with the rustle of silk and brocade and fine linen, there
          was a flutter in the air that fanned Saint Antoine and
          his devouring hunger far away.</para>

          <para>Dress was the one unfailing talisman and charm used
          for keeping all things in their places. Everybody was
          dressed for a Fancy Ball that was never to leave off.
          From the Palace of the Tuileries, through Monseigneur and
          the whole Court, through the Chambers, the Tribunals of
          Justice, and all society (except the scarecrows), the
          Fancy Ball descended to the Common Executioner: who, in
          pursuance of the charm, was required to officiate
          "frizzled, powdered, in a gold-laced coat, pumps, and
          white silk stockings." At the gallows and the wheel--the
          axe was a rarity--Monsieur Paris, as it was the episcopal
          mode among his brother Professors of the provinces,
          Monsieur Orleans, and the rest, to call him, presided in
          this dainty dress. And who among the company at
          Monseigneur's reception in that seventeen hundred and
          eightieth year of our Lord, could possibly doubt, that a
          system rooted in a frizzled hangman, powdered,
          gold-laced, pumped, and white-silk stockinged, would see
          the very stars out!</para>

          <para>Monseigneur having eased his four men of their
          burdens and taken his chocolate, caused the doors of the
          Holiest of Holiests to be thrown open, and issued forth.
          Then, what submission, what cringing and fawning, what
          servility, what abject humiliation! As to bowing down in
          body and spirit, nothing in that way was left for
          Heaven--which may have been one among other reasons why
          the worshippers of Monseigneur never troubled it.</para>

          <para>Bestowing a word of promise here and a smile there,
          a whisper on one happy slave and a wave of the hand on
          another, Monseigneur affably passed through his rooms to
          the remote region of the Circumference of Truth. There,
          Monseigneur turned, and came back again, and so in due
          course of time got himself shut up in his sanctuary by
          the chocolate sprites, and was seen no more.</para>

          <para>The show being over, the flutter in the air became
          quite a little storm, and the precious little bells went
          ringing downstairs. There was soon but one person left of
          all the crowd, and he, with his hat under his arm and his
          snuff-box in his hand, slowly passed among the mirrors on
          his way out.</para>

          <para>"I devote you," said this person, stopping at the
          last door on his way, and turning in the direction of the
          sanctuary, "to the Devil!"</para>

          <para>With that, he shook the snuff from his fingers as
          if he had shaken the dust from his feet, and quietly
          walked downstairs.</para>

          <para>He was a man of about sixty, handsomely dressed,
          haughty in manner, and with a face like a fine mask. A
          face of a transparent paleness; every feature in it
          clearly defined; one set expression on it. The nose,
          beautifully formed otherwise, was very slightly pinched
          at the top of each nostril. In those two compressions, or
          dints, the only little change that the face ever showed,
          resided. They persisted in changing colour sometimes, and
          they would be occasionally dilated and contracted by
          something like a faint pulsation; then, they gave a look
          of treachery, and cruelty, to the whole countenance.
          Examined with attention, its capacity of helping such a
          look was to be found in the line of the mouth, and the
          lines of the orbits of the eyes, being much too
          horizontal and thin; still, in the effect of the face
          made, it was a handsome face, and a remarkable
          one.</para>

          <para>Its owner went downstairs into the courtyard, got
          into his carriage, and drove away. Not many people had
          talked with him at the reception; he had stood in a
          little space apart, and Monseigneur might have been
          warmer in his manner. It appeared, under the
          circumstances, rather agreeable to him to see the common
          people dispersed before his horses, and often barely
          escaping from being run down. His man drove as if he were
          charging an enemy, and the furious recklessness of the
          man brought no check into the face, or to the lips, of
          the master. The complaint had sometimes made itself
          audible, even in that deaf city and dumb age, that, in
          the narrow streets without footways, the fierce patrician
          custom of hard driving endangered and maimed the mere
          vulgar in a barbarous manner. But, few cared enough for
          that to think of it a second time, and, in this matter,
          as in all others, the common wretches were left to get
          out of their difficulties as they could.</para>

          <para>With a wild rattle and clatter, and an inhuman
          abandonment of consideration not easy to be understood in
          these days, the carriage dashed through streets and swept
          round corners, with women screaming before it, and men
          clutching each other and clutching children out of its
          way. At last, swooping at a street corner by a fountain,
          one of its wheels came to a sickening little jolt, and
          there was a loud cry from a number of voices, and the
          horses reared and plunged.</para>

          <para>But for the latter inconvenience, the carriage
          probably would not have stopped; carriages were often
          known to drive on, and leave their wounded behind, and
          why not? But the frightened valet had got down in a
          hurry, and there were twenty hands at the horses'
          bridles.</para>

          <para>"What has gone wrong?" said Monsieur, calmly
          looking out.</para>

          <para>A tall man in a nightcap had caught up a bundle
          from among the feet of the horses, and had laid it on the
          basement of the fountain, and was down in the mud and
          wet, howling over it like a wild animal.</para>

          <para>"Pardon, Monsieur the Marquis!" said a ragged and
          submissive man, "it is a child."</para>

          <para>"Why does he make that abominable noise? Is it his
          child?"</para>

          <para>"Excuse me, Monsieur the Marquis--it is a
          pity--yes."</para>

          <para>The fountain was a little removed; for the street
          opened, where it was, into a space some ten or twelve
          yards square. As the tall man suddenly got up from the
          ground, and came running at the carriage, Monsieur the
          Marquis clapped his hand for an instant on his
          sword-hilt.</para>

          <para>"Killed!" shrieked the man, in wild desperation,
          extending both arms at their length above his head, and
          staring at him. "Dead!"</para>

          <para>The people closed round, and looked at Monsieur the
          Marquis. There was nothing revealed by the many eyes that
          looked at him but watchfulness and eagerness; there was
          no visible menacing or anger. Neither did the people say
          anything; after the first cry, they had been silent, and
          they remained so. The voice of the submissive man who had
          spoken, was flat and tame in its extreme submission.
          Monsieur the Marquis ran his eyes over them all, as if
          they had been mere rats come out of their holes.</para>

          <para>He took out his purse.</para>

          <para>"It is extraordinary to me," said he, "that you
          people cannot take care of yourselves and your children.
          One or the other of you is for ever in the, way. How do I
          know what injury you have done my horses. See! Give him
          that."</para>

          <para>He threw out a gold coin for the valet to pick up,
          and all the heads craned forward that all the eyes might
          look down at it as it fell. The tall man called out again
          with a most unearthly cry, "Dead!"</para>

          <para>He was arrested by the quick arrival of another
          man, for whom the rest made way. On seeing him, the
          miserable creature fell upon his shoulder, sobbing and
          crying, and pointing to the fountain, where some women
          were stooping over the motionless bundle, and moving
          gently about it. They were as silent, however, as the
          men.</para>

          <para>"I know all, I know all," said the last comer. "Be
          a brave man, my Gaspard! It is better for the poor little
          plaything to die so, than to live. It has died in a
          moment without pain. Could it have lived an hour as
          happily?"</para>

          <para>"You are a philosopher, you there," said the,
          Marquis, smiling. "How do they call you?"</para>

          <para>"They call me Defarge."</para>

          <para>"Of what trade?"</para>

          <para>"Monsieur the Marquis, vendor of wine."</para>

          <para>"Pick up that, philosopher and vendor of wine,"
          said the Marquis, throwing him another gold coin, "and
          spend it as you will. The horses there; are they
          right?"</para>

          <para>Without deigning to look at the assemblage a second
          time, Monsieur the Marquis leaned back in his seat, and
          was just being driven away with the air of a gentleman
          who had accidentally broke some common thing, and had
          paid for it, and could afford to pay for it; when his
          ease was suddenly disturbed by a coin flying into his
          carriage, and ringing on its floor.</para>

          <para>"Hold!" said Monsieur the Marquis. "Hold the
          horses! Who threw that?"</para>

          <para>He looked to the spot where Defarge the vendor of
          wine had stood, a moment before; but the wretched father
          was grovelling on his face on the pavement in that spot,
          and the figure that stood beside him was the figure of a
          dark stout woman, knitting.</para>

          <para>"You dogs!" said the Marquis, but smoothly, and
          with an unchanged front, except as to the spots on his
          nose: "I would ride over any of you very willingly, and
          exterminate you from the earth. If I knew which rascal
          threw at the carriage, and if that brigand were
          sufficiently near it, he should be crushed under the
          wheels."</para>

          <para>So cowed was their condition, and so long and hard
          their experience of what such a man could do to them,
          within the law and beyond it, that not a voice, or a
          hand, or even an eye was raised. Among the men, not one.
          But the woman who stood knitting looked up steadily, and
          looked the Marquis in the face. It was not for his
          dignity to notice it; his contemptuous eyes passed over
          her, and over all the other rats; and he leaned back in
          his seat again, and gave the word "Go on!"</para>

          <para>He was driven on, and other carriages came whirling
          by in quick succession; the Minister, the
          State-Projector, the Farmer-General, the Doctor, the
          Lawyer, the Ecclesiastic, the Grand Opera, the Comedy,
          the whole Fancy Ball in a bright continuous flow, came
          whirling by. The rats had crept out of their holes to
          look on, and they remained looking on for hours; soldiers
          and police often passing between them and the spectacle,
          and making a barrier behind which they slunk, and through
          which they peeped. The father had long ago taken up his
          bundle and bidden himself away with it, when the women
          who had tended the bundle while it lay on the base of the
          fountain, sat there watching the running of the water and
          the rolling of the Fancy Ball--when the one woman who had
          stood conspicuous, knitting, still knitted on with the
          steadfastness of Fate. The water of the fountain ran, the
          swift river ran, the day ran into evening, so much life
          in the city ran into death according to rule, time and
          tide waited for no man, the rats were sleeping close
          together in their dark holes again, the Fancy Ball was
          lighted up at supper, all things ran their course.</para>
        </chapter>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>VIII</chapnum>

            <title>Monseigneur in the Country</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>A beautiful landscape, with the corn bright in it,
          but not abundant. Patches of poor rye where com should
          have been, patches of poor peas and beans, patches of
          most coarse vegetable substitutes for wheat. On inanimate
          nature, as on the men and women who cultivated it, a
          prevalent tendency towards an appearance of vegetating
          unwillingly--a dejected disposition to give up, and
          wither away.</para>

          <para>Monsieur the Marquis in his travelling carriage
          (which might have been lighter), conducted by four
          post-horses and two postilions, fagged up a steep hill. A
          blush on the countenance of Monsieur the Marquis was no
          impeachment of his high breeding; it was not from within;
          it was occasioned by an external circumstance beyond his
          control--the setting sun.</para>

          <para>The sunset struck so brilliantly into the
          travelling carriage when it gained the hill-top, that its
          occupant was steeped in crimson. "It will die out," said
          Monsieur the Marquis, glancing at his hands,
          "directly."</para>

          <para>In effect, the sun was so low that it dipped at the
          moment. When the heavy drag had been adjusted to the
          wheel, and the carriage slid down hill, with a cinderous
          smell, in a cloud of dust, the red glow departed quickly;
          the sun and the Marquis going down together, there was no
          glow left when the drag was taken off.</para>

          <para>But, there remained a broken country, bold and
          open, a little village at the bottom of the hill, a broad
          sweep and rise beyond it, a church- tower, a windmill, a
          forest for the chase, and a crag with a fortress on it
          used as a prison. Round upon all these darkening objects
          as the night drew on, the Marquis looked, with the air of
          one who was coming near home.</para>

          <para>The village had its one poor street, with its poor
          brewery, poor tannery, poor tavern, poor stable-yard for
          relays of post-horses, poor fountain, all usual poor
          appointments. It had its poor people too. All its people
          were poor, and many of them were sitting at their doors,
          shredding spare onions and the like for supper, while
          many were at the fountain, washing leaves, and grasses,
          and any such small yieldings of the earth that could be
          eaten. Expressive sips of what made them poor, were not
          wanting; the tax for the state, the tax for the church,
          the tax for the lord, tax local and tax general, were to
          be paid here and to be paid there, according to solemn
          inscription in the little village, until the wonder was,
          that there was any village left unswallowed.</para>

          <para>Few children were to be seen, and no dogs. As to
          the men and women, their choice on earth was stated in
          the prospect--Life on the lowest terms that could sustain
          it, down in the little village under the mill; or
          captivity and Death in the dominant prison on the
          crag.</para>

          <para>Heralded by a courier in advance, and by the
          cracking of his postilions' whips, which twined
          snake-like about their heads in the evening air, as if he
          came attended by the Furies, Monsieur the Marquis drew up
          in his travelling carriage at the posting-house gate. It
          was hard by the fountain, and the peasants suspended
          their operations to look at him. He looked at them, and
          saw in them, without knowing it, the slow sure filing
          down of misery-worn face and figure, that was to make the
          meagreness of Frenchmen an English superstition which
          should survive the truth through the best part of a
          hundred years.</para>

          <para>Monsieur the Marquis cast his eyes over the
          submissive faces that drooped before him, as the like of
          himself had drooped before Monseigneur of the Court--only
          the difference was, that these faces drooped merely to
          suffer and not to propitiate--when a grizzled mender of
          the roads joined the group.</para>

          <para>"Bring me hither that fellow!" said the Marquis to
          the courier.</para>

          <para>The fellow was brought, cap in hand, and the other
          fellows closed round to look and listen, in the manner of
          the people at the Paris fountain.</para>

          <para>"I passed you on the road?"</para>

          <para>"Monseigneur, it is true. I had the honour of being
          passed on the road."</para>

          <para>"Coming up the hill, and at the top of the hill,
          both?"</para>

          <para>"Monseigneur, it is true."</para>

          <para>"What did you look at, so fixedly?"</para>

          <para>"Monseigneur, I looked at the man."</para>

          <para>He stooped a little, and with his tattered blue cap
          pointed under the carriage. All his fellows stooped to
          look under the carriage.</para>

          <para>"What man, pig? And why look there?"</para>

          <para>"Pardon, Monseigneur; he swung by the chain of the
          shoe--the drag."</para>

          <para>"Who?" demanded the traveller.</para>

          <para>"Monseigneur, the man."</para>

          <para>"May the Devil carry away these idiots! How do you
          can the man? You know all the men of this part of the
          country. Who was he?"</para>

          <para>"Your clemency, Monseigneur! He was not of this
          part of the country. Of all the days of my life, I never
          saw him."</para>

          <para>"Swinging by the chain? To be suffocated?"</para>

          <para>"With your gracious permission, that was the wonder
          of it, Monseigneur. His head hanging over--like
          this!"</para>

          <para>He turned himself sideways to the carriage, and
          leaned back, with his face thrown up to the sky, and his
          head hanging down; then recovered himself, fumbled with
          his cap, and made a bow.</para>

          <para>"What was he like?"</para>

          <para>"Monseigneur, he was whiter than the miller. All
          covered with dust, white as a spectre, tall as a
          spectre!"</para>

          <para>The picture produced an immense sensation in the
          little crowd; but all eyes, without comparing notes with
          other eyes, looked at Monsieur the Marquis. Perhaps, to
          observe whether he had any spectre on his
          conscience.</para>

          <para>"Truly, you did well," said the Marquis,
          felicitously sensible that such vermin were not to ruffle
          him, "to see a thief accompanying my carriage, and not
          open that great mouth of yours. Bah! Put him aside,
          Monsieur Gabelle!"</para>

          <para>Monsieur Gabelle was the Postmaster, and some other
          taxing functionary united; he had come out with great
          obsequiousness to assist at this examination, and had
          held the examined by the drapery of his arm in an
          official manner.</para>

          <para>"Bah! Go aside!" said Monsieur Gabelle.</para>

          <para>"Lay hands on this stranger if he seeks to lodge in
          your village to-night, and be sure that his business is
          honest, Gabelle."</para>

          <para>"Monseigneur, I am flattered to devote myself to
          your orders."</para>

          <para>"Did he run away, fellow?--where is that
          Accursed?"</para>

          <para>The accursed was already under the carriage with
          some half-dozen particular friends, pointing out the
          chain with his blue cap. Some half-dozen other particular
          friends promptly hauled him out, and presented him
          breathless to Monsieur the Marquis.</para>

          <para>"Did the man run away, Dolt, when we stopped for
          the drag?"</para>

          <para>"Monseigneur, he precipitated himself over the
          hill-side, head first, as a person plunges into the
          river."</para>

          <para>"See to it, Gabelle. Go on!"</para>

          <para>The half-dozen who were peering at the chain were
          still among the wheels, like sheep; the wheels turned so
          suddenly that they were lucky to save their skins and
          bones; they had very little else to save, or they might
          not have been so fortunate.</para>

          <para>The burst with which the carriage started out of
          the village and up the rise beyond, was soon checked by
          the steepness of the hill. Gradually, it subsided to a
          foot pace, swinging and lumbering upward among the many
          sweet scents of a summer night. The postilions, with a
          thousand gossamer gnats circling about them in lieu of
          the Furies, quietly mended the points to the lashes of
          their whips; the valet walked by the horses; the courier
          was audible, trotting on ahead into the dun
          distance.</para>

          <para>At the steepest point of the hill there was a
          little burial-ground, with a Cross and a new large figure
          of Our Saviour on it; it was a poor figure in wood, done
          by some inexperienced rustic carver, but he had studied
          the figure from the life--his own life, maybe--for it was
          dreadfully spare and thin.</para>

          <para>To this distressful emblem of a great distress that
          had long been growing worse, and was not at its worst, a
          woman was kneeling. She turned her head as the carriage
          came up to her, rose quickly, and presented herself at
          the carriage-door.</para>

          <para>"It is you, Monseigneur! Monseigneur, a
          petition."</para>

          <para>With an exclamation of impatience, but with his
          unchangeable face, Monseigneur looked out.</para>

          <para>"How, then! What is it? Always petitions!"</para>

          <para>"Monseigneur. For the love of the great God! My
          husband, the forester."</para>

          <para>"What of your husband, the forester? Always the
          same with you people. He cannot pay something?"</para>

          <para>"He has paid all, Monseigneur. He is dead."</para>

          <para>"Well! He is quiet. Can I restore him to
          you?"</para>

          <para>"Alas, no, Monseigneur! But he lies yonder, under a
          little heap of poor grass."</para>

          <para>"Well?"</para>

          <para>"Monseigneur, there are so many little heaps of
          poor grass?"</para>

          <para>"Again, well?"</para>

          <para>She looked an old woman, but was young. Her manner
          was one of passionate grief; by turns she clasped her
          veinous and knotted hands together with wild energy, and
          laid one of them on the carriage-door --tenderly,
          caressingly, as if it had been a human breast, and could
          be expected to feel the appealing touch.</para>

          <para>"Monseigneur, hear me! Monseigneur, hear my
          petition! My husband died of want; so many die of want;
          so many more will die of want."</para>

          <para>"Again, well? Can I feed them?"</para>

          <para>"Monseigneur, the good God knows; but I don't ask
          it. My petition is, that a morsel of stone or wood, with
          my husband's name, may be placed over him to show where
          he lies. Otherwise, the place will be quickly forgotten,
          it will never be found when I am dead of the same malady,
          I shall be laid under some other heap of poor grass.
          Monseigneur, they are so many, they increase so fast,
          there is so much want. Monseigneur! Monseigneur!"</para>

          <para>The valet had put her away from the door, the
          carriage had broken into a brisk trot, the postilions had
          quickened the pace, she was left far behind, and
          Monseigneur, again escorted by the Furies, was rapidly
          diminishing the league or two of distance that remained
          between him and his chateau.</para>

          <para>The sweet scents of the summer night rose all
          around him, and rose, as the rain falls, impartially, on
          the dusty, ragged, and toil-worn group at the fountain
          not far away; to whom the mender of roads, with the aid
          of the blue cap without which he was nothing, still
          enlarged upon his man like a spectre, as long as they
          could bear it. By degrees, as they could bear no more,
          they dropped off one by one, and lights twinkled in
          little casements; which lights, as the casements
          darkened, and more stars came out, seemed to have shot up
          into the sky instead of having been extinguished.</para>

          <para>The shadow of a large high-roofed house, and of
          many over-hanging trees, was upon Monsieur the Marquis by
          that time; and the shadow was exchanged for the light of
          a flambeau, as his carriage stopped, and the great door
          of his chateau was opened to him.</para>

          <para>"Monsieur Charles, whom I expect; is he arrived
          from England?"</para>

          <para>"Monseigneur, not yet."</para>
        </chapter>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>IX</chapnum>

            <title>The Gorgon's Head</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>It was a heavy mass of building, that chateau of
          Monsieur the Marquis, with a large stone courtyard before
          it, and two stone sweeps of staircase meeting in a stone
          terrace before the principal door. A stony business
          altogether, with heavy stone balustrades, and stone urns,
          and stone flowers, and stone faces of men, and stone
          heads of lions, in all directions. As if the Gorgon's
          head had surveyed it, when it was finished, two centuries
          ago.</para>

          <para>Up the broad flight of shallow steps, Monsieur the
          Marquis, flambeau preceded, went from his carriage,
          sufficiently disturbing the darkness to elicit loud
          remonstrance from an owl in the roof of the great pile of
          stable building away among the trees. All else was so
          quiet, that the flambeau carried up the steps, and the
          other flambeau held at the great door, burnt as if they
          were in a close room of state, instead of being in the
          open night-air. Other sound than the owl's voice there
          was none, save the failing of a fountain into its stone
          basin; for, it was one of those dark nights that hold
          their breath by the hour together, and then heave a long
          low sigh, and hold their breath again.</para>

          <para>The great door clanged behind him, and Monsieur the
          Marquis crossed a hall grim with certain old boar-spears,
          swords, and knives of the chase; grimmer with certain
          heavy riding-rods and riding-whips, of which many a
          peasant, gone to his benefactor Death, had felt the
          weight when his lord was angry.</para>

          <para>Avoiding the larger rooms, which were dark and made
          fast for the night, Monsieur the Marquis, with his
          flambeau-bearer going on before, went up the staircase to
          a door in a corridor. This thrown open, admitted him to
          his own private apartment of three rooms: his bed-chamber
          and two others. High vaulted rooms with cool uncarpeted
          floors, great dogs upon the hearths for the burning of
          wood in winter time, and all luxuries befitting the state
          of a marquis in a luxurious age and country. The fashion
          of the last Louis but one, of the line that was never to
          break --the fourteenth Louis--was conspicuous in their
          rich furniture; but, it was diversified by many objects
          that were illustrations of old pages in the history of
          France.</para>

          <para>A supper-table was laid for two, in the third of
          the rooms; a round room, in one of the chateau's four
          extinguisher-topped towers. A small lofty room, with its
          window wide open, and the wooden jalousie-blinds closed,
          so that the dark night only showed in slight horizontal
          lines of black, alternating with their broad lines of
          stone colour.</para>

          <para>"My nephew," said the Marquis, glancing at the
          supper preparation; "they said he was not
          arrived."</para>

          <para>Nor was he; but, he had been expected with
          Monseigneur.</para>

          <para>"Ah! It is not probable he will arrive to-night;
          nevertheless, leave the table as it is. I shall be ready
          in a quarter of an hour."</para>

          <para>In a quarter of an hour Monseigneur was ready, and
          sat down alone to his sumptuous and choice supper. His
          chair was opposite to the window, and he had taken his
          soup, and was raising his glass of Bordeaux to his lips,
          when he put it down.</para>

          <para>"What is that?" he calmly asked, looking with
          attention at the horizontal lines of black and stone
          colour.</para>

          <para>"Monseigneur? That?"</para>

          <para>"Outside the blinds. Open the blinds."</para>

          <para>It was done.</para>

          <para>"Well?"</para>

          <para>"Monseigneur, it is nothing. The trees and the
          night are all that are here."</para>

          <para>The servant who spoke, had thrown the blinds wide,
          had looked out into the vacant darkness, and stood with
          that blank behind him, looking round for
          instructions.</para>

          <para>"Good," said the imperturbable master. "Close them
          again."</para>

          <para>That was done too, and the Marquis went on with his
          supper. He was half way through it, when he again stopped
          with his glass in his hand, hearing the sound of wheels.
          It came on briskly, and came up to the front of the
          chateau.</para>

          <para>"Ask who is arrived."</para>

          <para>It was the nephew of Monseigneur. He had been some
          few leagues behind Monseigneur, early in the afternoon.
          He had diminished the distance rapidly, but not so
          rapidly as to come up with Monseigneur on the road. He
          had heard of Monseigneur, at the posting-houses, as being
          before him.</para>

          <para>He was to be told (said Monseigneur) that supper
          awaited him then and there, and that he was prayed to
          come to it. In a little while he came. He had been known
          in England as Charles Darnay.</para>

          <para>Monseigneur received him in a courtly manner, but
          they did not shake hands.</para>

          <para>"You left Paris yesterday, sir?" he said to
          Monseigneur, as he took his seat at table.</para>

          <para>"Yesterday. And you?"</para>

          <para>"I come direct."</para>

          <para>"From London?"</para>

          <para>"Yes."</para>

          <para>"You have been a long time coming," said the
          Marquis, with a smile.</para>

          <para>"On the contrary; I come direct."</para>

          <para>"Pardon me! I mean, not a long time on the journey;
          a long time intending the journey."</para>

          <para>"I have been detained by"--the nephew stopped a
          moment in his answer--"various business."</para>

          <para>"Without doubt," said the polished uncle.</para>

          <para>So long as a servant was present, no other words
          passed between them. When coffee had been served and they
          were alone together, the nephew, looking at the uncle and
          meeting the eyes of the face that was like a fine mask,
          opened a conversation.</para>

          <para>"I have come back, sir, as you anticipate, pursuing
          the object that took me away. It carried me into great
          and unexpected peril; but it is a sacred object, and if
          it had carried me to death I hope it would have sustained
          me."</para>

          <para>"Not to death," said the uncle; "it is not
          necessary to say, to death."</para>

          <para>"I doubt, sir," returned the nephew, "whether, if
          it had carried me to the utmost brink of death, you would
          have cared to stop me there."</para>

          <para>The deepened marks in the nose, and the lengthening
          of the fine straight lines in the cruel face, looked
          ominous as to that; the uncle made a graceful gesture of
          protest, which was so clearly a slight form of good
          breeding that it was not reassuring.</para>

          <para>"Indeed, sir," pursued the nephew, "for anything I
          know, you may have expressly worked to give a more
          suspicious appearance to the suspicious circumstances
          that surrounded me."</para>

          <para>"No, no, no," said the uncle, pleasantly.</para>

          <para>"But, however that may be," resumed the nephew,
          glancing at him with deep distrust, "I know that your
          diplomacy would stop me by any means, and would know no
          scruple as to means."</para>

          <para>"My friend, I told you so," said the uncle, with a
          fine pulsation in the two marks. "Do me the favour to
          recall that I told you so, long ago."</para>

          <para>"I recall it."</para>

          <para>"Thank you," said the Marquise--very sweetly
          indeed.</para>

          <para>His tone lingered in the air, almost like the tone
          of a musical instrument.</para>

          <para>"In effect, sir," pursued the nephew, "I believe it
          to be at once your bad fortune, and my good fortune, that
          has kept me out of a prison in France here."</para>

          <para>"I do not quite understand," returned the uncle,
          sipping his coffee. "Dare I ask you to explain?"</para>

          <para>"I believe that if you were not in disgrace with
          the Court, and had not been overshadowed by that cloud
          for years past, a letter de cachet would have sent me to
          some fortress indefinitely."</para>

          <para>"It is possible," said the uncle, with great
          calmness. "For the honour of the family, I could even
          resolve to incommode you to that extent. Pray excuse
          me!"</para>

          <para>"I perceive that, happily for me, the Reception of
          the day before yesterday was, as usual, a cold one,"
          observed the nephew.</para>

          <para>"I would not say happily, my friend," returned the
          uncle, with refined politeness; "I would not be sure of
          that. A good opportunity for consideration, surrounded by
          the advantages of solitude, might influence your destiny
          to far greater advantage than you influence it for
          yourself. But it is useless to discuss the question. I
          am, as you say, at a disadvantage. These little
          instruments of correction, these gentle aids to the power
          and honour of families, these slight favours that might
          so incommode you, are only to be obtained now by interest
          and importunity. They are sought by so many, and they are
          granted (comparatively) to so few! It used not to be so,
          but France in all such things is changed for the worse.
          Our not remote ancestors held the right of life and death
          over the surrounding vulgar. From this room, many such
          dogs have been taken out to be hanged; in the next room
          (my bedroom), one fellow, to our knowledge, was poniarded
          on the spot for professing some insolent delicacy
          respecting his daughter--HIS daughter? We have lost many
          privileges; a new philosophy has become the mode; and the
          assertion of our station, in these days, might (I do not
          go so far as to say would, but might) cause us real
          inconvenience. All very bad, very bad!"</para>

          <para>The Marquis took a gentle little pinch of snuff,
          and shook his head; as elegantly despondent as he could
          becomingly be of a country still containing himself, that
          great means of regeneration.</para>

          <para>"We have so asserted our station, both in the old
          time and in the modern time also," said the nephew,
          gloomily, "that I believe our name to be more detested
          than any name in France."</para>

          <para>"Let us hope so," said the uncle. "Detestation of
          the high is the involuntary homage of the low."</para>

          <para>"There is not," pursued the nephew, in his former
          tone, "a face I can look at, in all this country round
          about us, which looks at me with any deference on it but
          the dark deference of fear and slavery."</para>

          <para>"A compliment," said the Marquis, "to the grandeur
          of the family, merited by the manner in which the family
          has sustained its grandeur. Hah!" And he took another
          gentle little pinch of snuff, and lightly crossed his
          legs.</para>

          <para>But, when his nephew, leaning an elbow on the
          table, covered his eyes thoughtfully and dejectedly with
          his hand, the fine mask looked at him sideways with a
          stronger concentration of keenness, closeness, and
          dislike, than was comportable with its wearer's
          assumption of indifference.</para>

          <para>"Repression is the only lasting philosophy. The
          dark deference of fear and slavery, my friend," observed
          the Marquis, "will keep the dogs obedient to the whip, as
          long as this roof," looking up to it, "shuts out the
          sky."</para>

          <para>That might not be so long as the Marquis supposed.
          If a picture of the chateau as it was to be a very few
          years hence, and of fifty like it as they too were to be
          a very few years hence, could have been shown to him that
          night, he might have been at a loss to claim his own from
          the ghastly, fire-charred, plunder-wrecked rains. As for
          the roof he vaunted, he might have found THAT shutting
          out the sky in a new way--to wit, for ever, from the eyes
          of the bodies into which its lead was fired, out of the
          barrels of a hundred thousand muskets.</para>

          <para>"Meanwhile," said the Marquis, "I will preserve the
          honour and repose of the family, if you will not. But you
          must be fatigued. Shall we terminate our conference for
          the night?"</para>

          <para>"A moment more."</para>

          <para>"An hour, if you please."</para>

          <para>"Sir," said the nephew, "we have done wrong, and
          are reaping the fruits of wrong."</para>

          <para>"WE have done wrong?" repeated the Marquis, with an
          inquiring smile, and delicately pointing, first to his
          nephew, then to himself.</para>

          <para>"Our family; our honourable family, whose honour is
          of so much account to both of us, in such different ways.
          Even in my father's time, we did a world of wrong,
          injuring every human creature who came between us and our
          pleasure, whatever it was. Why need I speak of my
          father's time, when it is equally yours? Can I separate
          my father's twin-brother, joint inheritor, and next
          successor, from himself?"</para>

          <para>"Death has done that!" said the Marquis.</para>

          <para>"And has left me," answered the nephew, "bound to a
          system that is frightful to me, responsible for it, but
          powerless in it; seeking to execute the last request of
          my dear mother's lips, and obey the last look of my dear
          mother's eyes, which implored me to have mercy and to
          redress; and tortured by seeking assistance and power in
          vain."</para>

          <para>"Seeking them from me, my nephew," said the
          Marquis, touching him on the breast with his
          forefinger--they were now standing by the hearth--"you
          will for ever seek them in vain, be assured."</para>

          <para>Every fine straight line in the clear whiteness of
          his face, was cruelly, craftily, and closely compressed,
          while he stood looking quietly at his nephew, with his
          snuff-box in his hand. Once again he touched him on the
          breast, as though his finger were the fine point of a
          small sword, with which, in delicate finesse, he ran him
          through the body, and said,</para>

          <para>"My friend, I will die, perpetuating the system
          under which I have lived."</para>

          <para>When he had said it, he took a culminating pinch of
          snuff, and put his box in his pocket.</para>

          <para>"Better to be a rational creature," he added then,
          after ringing a small bell on the table, "and accept your
          natural destiny. But you are lost, Monsieur Charles, I
          see."</para>

          <para>"This property and France are lost to me," said the
          nephew, sadly; "I renounce them."</para>

          <para>"Are they both yours to renounce? France may be,
          but is the property? It is scarcely worth mentioning;
          but, is it yet?"</para>

          <para>"I had no intention, in the words I used, to claim
          it yet. If it passed to me from you, to-morrow--"</para>

          <para>"Which I have the vanity to hope is not
          probable."</para>

          <para>"--or twenty years hence--"</para>

          <para>"You do me too much honour," said the Marquis;
          "still, I prefer that supposition."</para>

          <para>"--I would abandon it, and live otherwise and
          elsewhere. It is little to relinquish. What is it but a
          wilderness of misery and ruin!"</para>

          <para>"Hah!" said the Marquis, glancing round the
          luxurious room.</para>

          <para>"To the eye it is fair enough, here; but seen in
          its integrity, under the sky, and by the daylight, it is
          a crumbling tower of waste, mismanagement, extortion,
          debt, mortgage, oppression, hunger, nakedness, and
          suffering."</para>

          <para>"Hah!" said the Marquis again, in a well-satisfied
          manner.</para>

          <para>"If it ever becomes mine, it shall be put into some
          hands better qualified to free it slowly (if such a thing
          is possible) from the weight that drags it down, so that
          the miserable people who cannot leave it and who have
          been long wrung to the last point of endurance, may, in
          another generation, suffer less; but it is not for me.
          There is a curse on it, and on all this land."</para>

          <para>"And you?" said the uncle. "Forgive my curiosity;
          do you, under your new philosophy, graciously intend to
          live?"</para>

          <para>"I must do, to live, what others of my countrymen,
          even with nobility at their backs, may have to do some
          day-work."</para>

          <para>"In England, for example?"</para>

          <para>"Yes. The family honour, sir, is safe from me in
          this country. The family name can suffer from me in no
          other, for I bear it in no other."</para>

          <para>The ringing of the bell had caused the adjoining
          bed-chamber to be lighted. It now shone brightly, through
          the door of communication. The Marquis looked that way,
          and listened for the retreating step of his valet.</para>

          <para>"England is very attractive to you, seeing how
          indifferently you have prospered there," he observed
          then, turning his calm face to his nephew with a
          smile.</para>

          <para>"I have already said, that for my prospering there,
          I am sensible I may be indebted to you, sir. For the
          rest, it is my Refuge."</para>

          <para>"They say, those boastful English, that it is the
          Refuge of many. You know a compatriot who has found a
          Refuge there? A Doctor?"</para>

          <para>"Yes."</para>

          <para>"With a daughter?"</para>

          <para>"Yes."</para>

          <para>"Yes," said the Marquis. "You are fatigued. Good
          night!"</para>

          <para>As he bent his head in his most courtly manner,
          there was a secrecy in his smiling face, and he conveyed
          an air of mystery to those words, which struck the eyes
          and ears of his nephew forcibly. At the same time, the
          thin straight lines of the setting of the eyes, and the
          thin straight lips, and the markings in the nose, curved
          with a sarcasm that looked handsomely diabolic.</para>

          <para>"Yes," repeated the Marquis. "A Doctor with a
          daughter. Yes. So commences the new philosophy! You are
          fatigued. Good night!"</para>

          <para>It would have been of as much avail to interrogate
          any stone face outside the chateau as to interrogate that
          face of his. The nephew looked at him, in vain, in
          passing on to the door.</para>

          <para>"Good night!" said the uncle. "I look to the
          pleasure of seeing you again in the morning. Good repose!
          Light Monsieur my nephew to his chamber there!--And burn
          Monsieur my nephew in his bed, if you will," he added to
          himself, before he rang his little ben again, and
          summoned his valet to his own bedroom.</para>

          <para>The valet come and gone, Monsieur the Marquis
          walked to and fro in his loose chamber-robe, to prepare
          himself gently for sleep, that hot still night. Rustling
          about the room, his softly-slippered feet making no noise
          on the floor, he moved like a refined tiger:--looked like
          some enchanted marquis of the impenitently wicked sort,
          in story, whose periodical change into tiger form was
          either just going off, or just coming on.</para>

          <para>He moved from end to end of his voluptuous bedroom,
          looking again at the scraps of the day's journey that
          came unbidden into his mind; the slow toil up the hill at
          sunset, the setting sun, the descent, the mill, the
          prison on the crag, the little village in the hollow, the
          peasants at the fountain, and the mender of roads with
          his blue cap pointing out the chain under the carriage.
          That fountain suggested the Paris fountain, the little
          bundle lying on the step, the women bending over it, and
          the tall man with his arms up, crying, "Dead!"</para>

          <para>"I am cool now," said Monsieur the Marquis, "and
          may go to bed."</para>

          <para>So, leaving only one light burning on the large
          hearth, he let his thin gauze curtains fa]J around him,
          and heard the night break its silence with a long sigh as
          he composed himself to sleep.</para>

          <para>The stone faces on the outer wails stared blindly
          at the black night for three heavy hours; for three heavy
          hours, the horses in the stables rattled at their racks,
          the dogs barked, and the owl made a noise with very
          little resemblance in it to the noise conventionally
          assigned to the owl by men-poets. But it is the obstinate
          custom of such creatures hardly ever to say what is set
          down for them.</para>

          <para>For three heavy hours, the stone faces of the
          chateau, lion and human, stared blindly at the night.
          Dead darkness lay on all the landscape, dead darkness
          added its own hush to the hushing dust on all the roads.
          The burial-place had got to the pass that its little
          heaps of poor grass were undistinguishable from one
          another; the figure on the Cross might have come down,
          for anything that could be seen of it. In the village,
          taxers and taxed were fast asleep. Dreaming, perhaps, of
          banquets, as the starved usually do, and of ease and
          rest, as the driven slave and the yoked ox may, its lean
          inhabitants slept soundly, and were fed and freed.</para>

          <para>The fountain in the village flowed unseen and
          unheard, and the fountain at the chateau dropped unseen
          and unheard--both melting away, like the minutes that
          were falling from the spring of Time-- through three dark
          hours. Then, the grey water of both began to be ghostly
          in the light, and the eyes of the stone faces of the
          chateau were opened.</para>

          <para>Lighter and lighter, until at last the sun touched
          the tops of the still trees, and poured its radiance over
          the hill. In the glow, the water of the chateau fountain
          seemed to turn to blood, and the stone faces crimsoned.
          The carol of the birds was loud and high, and, on the
          weather-beaten sill of the great window of the bed-
          chamber of Monsieur the Marquis, one little bird sang its
          sweetest song with all its might. At this, the nearest
          stone face seemed to stare amazed, and, with open mouth
          and dropped under-jaw, looked awe-stricken.</para>

          <para>Now, the sun was full up, and movement began in the
          village. Casement windows opened, crazy doors were
          unbarred, and people came forth shivering--chilled, as
          yet, by the new sweet air. Then began the rarely
          lightened toil of the day among the village population.
          Some, to the fountain; some, to the fields; men and women
          here, to dig and delve; men and women there, to see to
          the poor live stock, and lead the bony cows out, to such
          pasture as could be found by the roadside. In the church
          and at the Cross, a kneeling figure or two; attendant on
          the latter prayers, the led cow, trying for a breakfast
          among the weeds at its foot.</para>

          <para>The chateau awoke later, as became its quality, but
          awoke gradually and surely. First, the lonely boar-spears
          and knives of the chase had been reddened as of old;
          then, had gleamed trenchant in the morning sunshine; now,
          doors and windows were thrown open, horses in their
          stables looked round over their shoulders at the light
          and freshness pouring in at doorways, leaves sparkled and
          rustled at iron-grated windows, dogs pulled hard at their
          chains, and reared impatient to be loosed.</para>

          <para>All these trivial incidents belonged to the routine
          of life, and the return of morning. Surely, not so the
          ringing of the great bell of the chateau, nor the running
          up and down the stairs; nor the hurried figures on the
          terrace; nor the booting and tramping here and there and
          everywhere, nor the quick saddling of horses and riding
          away?</para>

          <para>What winds conveyed this hurry to the grizzled
          mender of roads, already at work on the hill-top beyond
          the village, with his day's dinner (not much to carry)
          lying in a bundle that it was worth no crow's while to
          peck at, on a heap of stones? Had the birds, carrying
          some grains of it to a distance, dropped one over him as
          they sow chance seeds? Whether or no, the mender of roads
          ran, on the sultry morning, as if for his life, down the
          hill, knee-high in dust, and never stopped till he got to
          the fountain.</para>

          <para>All the people of the village were at the fountain,
          standing about in their depressed manner, and whispering
          low, but showing no other emotions than grim curiosity
          and surprise. The led cows, hastily brought in and
          tethered to anything that would hold them, were looking
          stupidly on, or lying down chewing the cud of nothing
          particularly repaying their trouble, which they had
          picked up in their interrupted saunter. Some of the
          people of the chateau, and some of those of the
          posting-house, and all the taxing authorities, were armed
          more or less, and were crowded on the other side of the
          little street in a purposeless way, that was highly
          fraught with nothing. Already, the mender of roads had
          penetrated into the midst of a group of fifty particular
          friends, and was smiting himself in the breast with his
          blue cap. What did all this portend, and what portended
          the swift hoisting-up of Monsieur Gabelle behind a
          servant on horseback, and the conveying away of the said
          Gabelle (double-laden though the horse was), at a gallop,
          like a new version of the German ballad of
          Leonora?</para>

          <para>It portended that there was one stone face too
          many, up at the chateau.</para>

          <para>The Gorgon had surveyed the building again in the
          night, and had added the one stone face wanting; the
          stone face for which it had waited through about two
          hundred years.</para>

          <para>It lay back on the pillow of Monsieur the Marquis.
          It was like a fine mask, suddenly startled, made angry,
          and petrified. Driven home into the heart of the stone
          figure attached to it, was a knife. Round its hilt was a
          frill of paper, on which was scrawled:</para>

          <para>"Drive him fast to his tomb. This, from
          Jacques."</para>
        </chapter>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>X</chapnum>

            <title>Two Promises</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>More months, to the number of twelve, had come and
          gone, and Mr. Charles Darnay was established in England
          as a higher teacher of the French language who was
          conversant with French literature. In this age, he would
          have been a Professor; in that age, he was a Tutor. He
          read with young men who could find any leisure and
          interest for the study of a living tongue spoken all over
          the world, and he cultivated a taste for its stores of
          knowledge and fancy. He could write of them, besides, in
          sound English, and render them into sound English. Such
          masters were not at that time easily found; Princes that
          had been, and Kings that were to be, were not yet of the
          Teacher class, and no ruined nobility had dropped out of
          Tellson's ledgers, to turn cooks and carpenters. As a
          tutor, whose attainments made the student's way unusually
          pleasant and profitable, and as an elegant translator who
          brought something to his work besides mere dictionary
          knowledge, young Mr. Darnay soon became known and
          encouraged. He was well acquainted, more-over, with the
          circumstances of his country, and those were of
          ever-growing interest. So, with great perseverance and
          untiring industry, he prospered.</para>

          <para>In London, he had expected neither to walk on
          pavements of gold, nor to lie on beds of roses; if he had
          had any such exalted expectation, he would not have
          prospered. He had expected labour, and he found it, and
          did it and made the best of it. In this, his prosperity
          consisted.</para>

          <para>A certain portion of his time was passed at
          Cambridge, where he read with undergraduates as a sort of
          tolerated smuggler who drove a contraband trade in
          European languages, instead of conveying Greek and Latin
          through the Custom-house. The rest of his time he passed
          in London.</para>

          <para>Now, from the days when it was always summer in
          Eden, to these days when it is mostly winter in fallen
          latitudes, the world of a man has invariably gone one
          way--Charles Darnay's way--the way of the love of a
          woman.</para>

          <para>He had loved Lucie Manette from the hour of his
          danger. He had never heard a sound so sweet and dear as
          the sound of her compassionate voice; he had never seen a
          face so tenderly beautiful, as hers when it was
          confronted with his own on the edge of the grave that had
          been dug for him. But, he had not yet spoken to her on
          the subject; the assassination at the deserted chateau
          far away beyond the heaving water and the long, tong,
          dusty roads--the solid stone chateau which had itself
          become the mere mist of a dream--had been done a year,
          and he had never yet, by so much as a single spoken word,
          disclosed to her the state of his heart.</para>

          <para>That he had his reasons for this, he knew full
          well. It was again a summer day when, lately arrived in
          London from his college occupation, he turned into the
          quiet corner in Soho, bent on seeking an opportunity of
          opening his mind to Doctor Manette. It was the close of
          the summer day, and he knew Lucie to be out with Miss
          Pross.</para>

          <para>He found the Doctor reading in his arm-chair at a
          window. The energy which had at once supported him under
          his old sufferings and aggravated their sharpness, had
          been gradually restored to him. He was now a very
          energetic man indeed, with great firmness of purpose,
          strength of resolution, and vigour of action. In his
          recovered energy he was sometimes a little fitful and
          sudden, as he had at first been in the exercise of his
          other recovered faculties; but, this had never been
          frequently observable, and had grown more and more
          rare.</para>

          <para>He studied much, slept little, sustained a great
          deal of fatigue with ease, and was equably cheerful. To
          him, now entered Charles Darnay, at sight of whom he laid
          aside his book and held out his hand.</para>

          <para>"Charles Darnay! I rejoice to see you. We have been
          counting on your return these three or four days past.
          Mr. Stryver and Sydney Carton were both here yesterday,
          and both made you out to be more than due."</para>

          <para>"I am obliged to them for their interest in the
          matter," he answered, a little coldly as to them, though
          very warmly as to the Doctor. "Miss Manette--"</para>

          <para>"Is well," said the Doctor, as he stopped short,
          "and your return will delight us all. She has gone out on
          some household matters, but will soon be home."</para>

          <para>"Doctor Manette, I knew she was from home. I took
          the opportunity of her being from home, to beg to speak
          to you."</para>

          <para>There was a blank silence.</para>

          <para>"Yes?" said the Doctor, with evident constraint.
          "Bring your chair here, and speak on."</para>

          <para>He complied as to the chair, but appeared to find
          the speaking on less easy.</para>

          <para>"I have had the happiness, Doctor Manette, of being
          so intimate here," so he at length began, "for some year
          and a half, that I hope the topic on which I am about to
          touch may not--"</para>

          <para>He was stayed by the Doctor's putting out his hand
          to stop him. When he had kept it so a little while, he
          said, drawing it back:</para>

          <para>"Is Lucie the topic?"</para>

          <para>"She is."</para>

          <para>"It is hard for me to speak of her at any time. It
          is very hard for me to hear her spoken of in that tone of
          yours, Charles Darnay."</para>

          <para>"It is a tone of fervent admiration, true homage,
          and deep love, Doctor Manette!" he said
          deferentially.</para>

          <para>There was another blank silence before her father
          rejoined:</para>

          <para>"I believe it. I do you justice; I believe
          it."</para>

          <para>His constraint was so manifest, and it was so
          manifest, too, that it originated in an unwillingness to
          approach the subject, that Charles Darnay
          hesitated.</para>

          <para>"Shall I go on, sir?"</para>

          <para>Another blank.</para>

          <para>"Yes, go on."</para>

          <para>"You anticipate what I would say, though you cannot
          know how earnestly I say it, how earnestly I feel it,
          without knowing my secret heart, and the hopes and fears
          and anxieties with which it has long been laden. Dear
          Doctor Manette, I love your daughter fondly, dearly,
          disinterestedly, devotedly. If ever there were love in
          the world, I love her. You have loved yourself; let your
          old love speak for me!"</para>

          <para>The Doctor sat with his face turned away, and his
          eyes bent on the ground. At the last words, he stretched
          out his hand again, hurriedly, and cried:</para>

          <para>"Not that, sir! Let that be! I adjure you, do not
          recall that!"</para>

          <para>His cry was so like a cry of actual pain, that it
          rang in Charles Darnay's ears long after he had ceased.
          He motioned with the hand he had extended, and it seemed
          to be an appeal to Darnay to pause. The latter so
          received it, and remained silent.</para>

          <para>"I ask your pardon," said the Doctor, in a subdued
          tone, after some moments. "I do not doubt your loving
          Lucie; you may be satisfied of it."</para>

          <para>He turned towards him in his chair, but did not
          look at him, or raise his eyes. His chin dropped upon his
          hand, and his white hair overshadowed his face:</para>

          <para>"Have you spoken to Lucie?"</para>

          <para>"No."</para>

          <para>"Nor written?"</para>

          <para>"Never."</para>

          <para>"It would be ungenerous to affect not to know that
          your self-denial is to be referred to your consideration
          for her father. Her father thanks you.</para>

          <para>He offered his hand; but his eyes did not go with
          it.</para>

          <para>"I know," said Darnay, respectfully, "how can I
          fail to know, Doctor Manette, I who have seen you
          together from day to day, that between you and Miss
          Manette there is an affection so unusual, so touching, so
          belonging to the circumstances in which it has been
          nurtured, that it can have few parallels, even in the
          tenderness between a father and child. I know, Doctor
          Manette--how can I fail to know--that, mingled with the
          affection and duty of a daughter who has become a woman,
          there is, in her heart, towards you, all the love and
          reliance of infancy itself. I know that, as in her
          childhood she had no parent, so she is now devoted to you
          with all the constancy and fervour of her present years
          and character, united to the trustfulness and attachment
          of the early days in which you were lost to her. I know
          perfectly well that if you had been restored to her from
          the world beyond this life, you could hardly be invested,
          in her sight, with a more sacred character than that in
          which you are always with her. I know that when she is
          clinging to you, the hands of baby, girl, and woman, all
          in one, are round your neck. I know that in loving you
          she sees and loves her mother at her own age, sees and
          loves you at my age, loves her mother broken-hearted,
          loves you through your dreadful trial and in your blessed
          restoration. I have known this, night and day, since I
          have known you in your home."</para>

          <para>Her father sat silent, with his face bent down. His
          breathing was a little quickened; but he repressed all
          other signs of agitation.</para>

          <para>"Dear Doctor Manette, always knowing this, always
          seeing her and you with this hallowed light about you, I
          have forborne, and forborne, as long as it was in the
          nature of man to do it. I have felt, and do even now
          feel, that to bring my love--even mine--between you, is
          to touch your history with something not quite so good as
          itself. But I love her. Heaven is my witness that I love
          her!"</para>

          <para>"I believe it," answered her father, mournfully. "I
          have thought so before now. I believe it."</para>

          <para>"But, do not believe," said Darnay, upon whose ear
          the mournful voice struck with a reproachful sound, "that
          if my fortune were so cast as that, being one day so
          happy as to make her my wife, I must at any time put any
          separation between her and you, I could or would breathe
          a word of what I now say. Besides that I should know it
          to be hopeless, I should know it to be a baseness. If I
          had any such possibility, even at a remote distance of
          years, harboured in my thoughts, and hidden in my
          heart--if it ever had been there--if it ever could be
          there--I could not now touch this honoured hand."</para>

          <para>He laid his own upon it as he spoke.</para>

          <para>"No, dear Doctor Manette. Like you, a voluntary
          exile from France; like you, driven from it by its
          distractions, oppressions, and miseries; like you,
          striving to live away from it by my own exertions, and
          trusting in a happier future; I look only to sharing your
          fortunes, sharing your life and home, and being faithful
          to you to the death. Not to divide with Lucie her
          privilege as your child, companion, and friend; but to
          come in aid of it, and bind her closer to you, if such a
          thing can be."</para>

          <para>His touch still lingered on her father's hand.
          Answering the touch for a moment, but not coldly, her
          father rested his hands upon the arms of his chair, and
          looked up for the first time since the beginning of the
          conference. A struggle was evidently in his face; a
          struggle with that occasional look which had a tendency
          in it to dark doubt and dread.</para>

          <para>"You speak so feelingly and so manfully, Charles
          Darnay, that I thank you with all my heart, and will open
          all my heart--or nearly so. Have you any reason to
          believe that Lucie loves you?"</para>

          <para>"None. As yet, none."</para>

          <para>"Is it the immediate object of this confidence,
          that you may at once ascertain that, with my
          knowledge?"</para>

          <para>"Not even so. I might not have the hopefulness to
          do it for weeks; I might (mistaken or not mistaken) have
          that hopefulness to-morrow."</para>

          <para>"Do you seek any guidance from me?"</para>

          <para>"I ask none, sir. But I have thought it possible
          that you might have it in your power, if you should deem
          it right, to give me some."</para>

          <para>"Do you seek any promise from me?"</para>

          <para>"I do seek that."</para>

          <para>"What is it?"</para>

          <para>"I well understand that, without you, I could have
          no hope. I well understand that, even if Miss Manette
          held me at this moment in her innocent heart-do not think
          I have the presumption to assume so much-- I could retain
          no place in it against her love for her father."</para>

          <para>"If that be so, do you see what, on the other hand,
          is involved in it?"</para>

          <para>"I understand equally well, that a word from her
          father in any suitor's favour, would outweigh herself and
          all the world. For which reason, Doctor Manette," said
          Darnay, modestly but firmly, "I would not ask that word,
          to save my life."</para>

          <para>"I am sure of it. Charles Darnay, mysteries arise
          out of close love, as well as out of wide division; in
          the former case, they are subtle and delicate, and
          difficult to penetrate. My daughter Lucie is, in this one
          respect, such a mystery to me; I can make no guess at the
          state of her heart."</para>

          <para>"May I ask, sir, if you think she is--" As he
          hesitated, her father supplied the rest.</para>

          <para>"Is sought by any other suitor?"</para>

          <para>"It is what I meant to say."</para>

          <para>Her father considered a little before he
          answered:</para>

          <para>"You have seen Mr. Carton here, yourself. Mr.
          Stryver is here too, occasionally. If it be at all, it
          can only be by one of these."</para>

          <para>"Or both," said Darnay.</para>

          <para>"I had not thought of both; I should not think
          either, likely. You want a promise from me. Tell me what
          it is."</para>

          <para>"It is, that if Miss Manette should bring to you at
          any time, on her own part, such a confidence as I have
          ventured to lay before you, you will bear testimony to
          what I have said, and to your belief in it. I hope you
          may be able to think so well of me, as to urge no
          influence against me. I say nothing more of my stake in
          this; this is what I ask. The condition on which I ask
          it, and which you have an undoubted right to require, I
          will observe immediately."</para>

          <para>"I give the promise," said the Doctor, "without any
          condition. I believe your object to be, purely and
          truthfully, as you have stated it. I believe your
          intention is to perpetuate, and not to weaken, the ties
          between me and my other and far dearer self. If she
          should ever tell me that you are essential to her perfect
          happiness, I will give her to you. If there were--Charles
          Darnay, if there were--"</para>

          <para>The young man had taken his hand gratefully; their
          hands were joined as the Doctor spoke:</para>

          <para>"--any fancies, any reasons, any apprehensions,
          anything whatsoever, new or old, against the man she
          really loved--the direct responsibility thereof not lying
          on his head--they should all be obliterated for her sake.
          She is everything to me; more to me than suffering, more
          to me than wrong, more to me--Well! This is idle
          talk."</para>

          <para>So strange was the way in which he faded into
          silence, and so strange his fixed look when he had ceased
          to speak, that Darnay felt his own hand turn cold in the
          hand that slowly released and dropped it.</para>

          <para>"You said something to me," said Doctor Manette,
          breaking into a smile. "What was it you said to
          me?"</para>

          <para>He was at a loss how to answer, until he remembered
          having spoken of a condition. Relieved as his mind
          reverted to that, he answered:</para>

          <para>"Your confidence in me ought to be returned with
          full confidence on my part. My present name, though but
          slightly changed from my mother's, is not, as you will
          remember, my own. I wish to tell you what that is, and
          why I am in England."</para>

          <para>"Stop!" said the Doctor of Beauvais.</para>

          <para>"I wish it, that I may the better deserve your
          confidence, and have no secret from you."</para>

          <para>"Stop!"</para>

          <para>For an instant, the Doctor even had his two hands
          at his ears; for another instant, even had his two hands
          laid on Darnay's lips.</para>

          <para>"Tell me when I ask you, not now. If your suit
          should prosper, if Lucie should love you, you shall tell
          me on your marriage morning. Do you promise?"</para>

          <para>"Willingly.</para>

          <para>"Give me your hand. She will be home directly, and
          it is better she should not see us together to-night. Go!
          God bless you!"</para>

          <para>It was dark when Charles Darnay left him, and it
          was an hour later and darker when Lucie came home; she
          hurried into the room alone-- for Miss Pross had gone
          straight up-stairs--and was surprised to find his
          reading-chair empty.</para>

          <para>"My father!" she called to him. "Father
          dear!"</para>

          <para>Nothing was said in answer, but she heard a low
          hammering sound in his bedroom. Passing lightly across
          the intermediate room, she looked in at his door and came
          running back frightened, crying to herself, with her
          blood all chilled, "What shall I do! What shall I
          do!"</para>

          <para>Her uncertainty lasted but a moment; she hurried
          back, and tapped at his door, and softly called to him.
          The noise ceased at the sound of her voice, and he
          presently came out to her, and they walked up and down
          together for a long time.</para>

          <para>She came down from her bed, to look at him in his
          sleep that night. He slept heavily, and his tray of
          shoemaking tools, and his old unfinished work, were all
          as usual.</para>
        </chapter>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>XI</chapnum>

            <title>A Companion Picture</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>"Sydney," said Mr. Stryver, on that self-same
          night, or morning, to his jackal; "mix another bowl of
          punch; I have something to say to you."</para>

          <para>Sydney had been working double tides that night,
          and the night before, and the night before that, and a
          good many nights in succession, making a grand clearance
          among Mr. Stryver's papers before the setting in of the
          long vacation. The clearance was effected at last; the
          Stryver arrears were handsomely fetched up; everything
          was got rid of until November should come with its fogs
          atmospheric, and fogs legal, and bring grist to the mill
          again.</para>

          <para>Sydney was none the livelier and none the soberer
          for so much application. It had taken a deal of extra
          wet-towelling to pull him through the night; a
          correspondingly extra quantity of wine had preceded the
          towelling; and he was in a very damaged condition, as he
          now pulled his turban off and threw it into the basin in
          which he had steeped it at intervals for the last six
          hours.</para>

          <para>"Are you mixing that other bowl of punch?" said
          Stryver the portly, with his hands in his waistband,
          glancing round from the sofa where he lay on his
          back.</para>

          <para>"I am."</para>

          <para>"Now, look here! I am going to tell you something
          that will rather surprise you, and that perhaps will make
          you think me not quite as shrewd as you usually do think
          me. I intend to marry."</para>

          <para>"DO you?"</para>

          <para>"Yes. And not for money. What do you say
          now?"</para>

          <para>"I don't feel disposed to say much. Who is
          she?"</para>

          <para>"Guess."</para>

          <para>"Do I know her?"</para>

          <para>"Guess."</para>

          <para>"I am not going to guess, at five o'clock in the
          morning, with my brains frying and sputtering in my head.
          if you want me to guess, you must ask me to
          dinner."</para>

          <para>"Well then, I'll tell you, said Stryver, coming
          slowly into a sitting posture. "Sydney, I rather despair
          of making myself intelligible to you, because you are
          such an insensible dog.</para>

          <para>"And you," returned Sydney, busy concocting the
          punch, "are such a sensitive and poetical
          spirit--"</para>

          <para>"Come!" rejoined Stryver, laughing boastfully,
          "though I don't prefer any claim to being the soul of
          Romance (for I hope I know better), still I am a tenderer
          sort of fellow than YOU."</para>

          <para>"You are a luckier, if you mean that."</para>

          <para>"I don't mean that. I mean I am a man of
          more--more--"</para>

          <para>"Say gallantry, while you are about it," suggested
          Carton.</para>

          <para>"Well! I'll say gallantry. My meaning is that I am
          a man," said Stryver, inflating himself at his friend as
          he made the punch, "who cares more to be agreeable, who
          takes more pains to be agreeable, who knows better how to
          be agreeable, in a woman's society, than you do."</para>

          <para>"Go on," said Sydney Carton.</para>

          <para>"No; but before I go on," said Stryver, shaking his
          head in his bullying way, I'll have this out with you.
          You've been at Doctor Manette's house as much as I have,
          or more than I have. Why, I have been ashamed of your
          moroseness there! Your manners have been of that silent
          and sullen and hangdog kind, that, upon my life and soul,
          I have been ashamed of you, Sydney!"</para>

          <para>"It should be very beneficial to a man in your
          practice at the bar, to be ashamed of anything," returned
          Sydney; "you ought to be much obliged to me."</para>

          <para>"You shall not get off in that way," rejoined
          Stryver, shouldering the rejoinder at him; "no, Sydney,
          it's my duty to tell you--and I tell you to your face to
          do you good--that you are a devilish ill-conditioned
          fellow in that sort of society. You are a disagreeable
          fellow."</para>

          <para>Sydney drank a bumper of the punch he had made, and
          laughed.</para>

          <para>"Look at me!" said Stryver, squaring himself; "I
          have less need to make myself agreeable than you have,
          being more independent in circumstances. Why do I do
          it?"</para>

          <para>"I never saw you do it yet," muttered
          Carton.</para>

          <para>"I do it because it's politic; I do it on
          principle. And look at me! I get on."</para>

          <para>"You don't get on with your account of your
          matrimonial intentions," answered Carton, with a careless
          air; "I wish you would keep to that. As to me--will you
          never understand that I am incorrigible?"</para>

          <para>He asked the question with some appearance of
          scorn.</para>

          <para>"You have no business to be incorrigible," was his
          friend's answer, delivered in no very soothing
          tone.</para>

          <para>"I have no business to be, at all, that I know of,"
          said Sydney Carton. "Who is the lady?"</para>

          <para>"Now, don't let my announcement of the name make
          you uncomfortable, Sydney," said Mr. Stryver, preparing
          him with ostentatious friendliness for the disclosure he
          was about to make, "because I know you don't mean half
          you say; and if you meant it all, it would be of no
          importance. I make this little preface, because you once
          mentioned the young lady to me in slighting
          terms."</para>

          <para>"I did?"</para>

          <para>"Certainly; and in these chambers."</para>

          <para>Sydney Carton looked at his punch and looked at his
          complacent friend; drank his punch and looked at his
          complacent friend.</para>

          <para>"You made mention of the young lady as a
          golden-haired doll. The young lady is Miss Manette. If
          you had been a fellow of any sensitiveness or delicacy of
          feeling in that kind of way, Sydney, I might have been a
          little resentful of your employing such a designation;
          but you are not. You want that sense altogether;
          therefore I am no more annoyed when I think of the
          expression, than I should be annoyed by a man's opinion
          of a picture of mine, who had no eye for pictures: or of
          a piece of music of mine, who had no ear for
          music."</para>

          <para>Sydney Carton drank the punch at a great rate;
          drank it by bumpers, looking at his friend.</para>

          <para>"Now you know all about it, Syd," said Mr. Stryver.
          "I don't care about fortune: she is a charming creature,
          and I have made up my mind to please myself: on the
          whole, I think I can afford to please myself. She will
          have in me a man already pretty well off, and a rapidly
          rising man, and a man of some distinction: it is a piece
          of good fortune for her, but she is worthy of good
          fortune. Are you astonished?"</para>

          <para>Carton, still drinking the punch, rejoined, "Why
          should I be astonished?"</para>

          <para>"You approve?"</para>

          <para>Carton, still drinking the punch, rejoined, "Why
          should I not approve?"</para>

          <para>"Well!" said his friend Stryver, "you take it more
          easily than I fancied you would, and are less mercenary
          on my behalf than I thought you would be; though, to be
          sure, you know well enough by this time that your ancient
          chum is a man of a pretty strong will. Yes, Sydney, I
          have had enough of this style of life, with no other as a
          change from it; I feel that it is a pleasant thing for a
          man to have a home when he feels inclined to go to it
          (when he doesn't, he can stay away), and I feel that Miss
          Manette will tell well in any station, and will always do
          me credit. So I have made up my mind. And now, Sydney,
          old boy, I want to say a word to YOU about YOUR
          prospects. You are in a bad way, you know; you really are
          in a bad way. You don't know the value of money, you Eve
          hard, you'll knock up one of these days, and be ill and
          poor; you really ought to think about a nurse."</para>

          <para>The prosperous patronage with which he said it,
          made him look twice as big as he was, and four times as
          offensive.</para>

          <para>"Now, let me recommend you," pursued Stryver, "to
          look it in the face. I have looked it in the face, in my
          different way; look it in the face, you, in your
          different way. Marry. Provide somebody to take care of
          you. Never mind your having no enjoyment of women's
          society, nor understanding of it, nor tact for it. Find
          out somebody. Find out some respectable woman with a
          little property--somebody in the landlady way, or
          lodging-letting way--and marry her, against a rainy day.
          That's the kind of thing for YOU. Now think of it,
          Sydney."</para>

          <para>"I'll think of it," said Sydney.</para>
        </chapter>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>XII</chapnum>

            <title>The Fellow of Delicacy</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>Mr. Stryver having made up his mind to that
          magnanimous bestowal of good fortune on the Doctor's
          daughter, resolved to make her happiness known to her
          before he left town for the Long Vacation. After some
          mental debating of the point, he came to the conclusion
          that it would be as well to get all the preliminaries
          done with, and they could then arrange at their leisure
          whether he should give her his hand a week or two before
          Michaelmas Term, or in the little Christmas vacation
          between it and Hilary.</para>

          <para>As to the strength of his case, he had not a doubt
          about it, but clearly saw his way to the verdict. Argued
          with the jury on substantial worldly grounds--the only
          grounds ever worth taking into account-- it was a plain
          case, and had not a weak spot in it. He called himself
          for the plaintiff, there was no getting over his
          evidence, the counsel for the defendant threw up his
          brief, and the jury did not even turn to consider. After
          trying it, Stryver, C. J., was satisfied that no plainer
          case could be.</para>

          <para>Accordingly, Mr. Stryver inaugurated the Long
          Vacation with a formal proposal to take Miss Manette to
          Vauxhall Gardens; that failing, to Ranelagh; that
          unaccountably failing too, it behoved him to present
          himself in Soho, and there declare his noble mind.</para>

          <para>Towards Soho, therefore, Mr. Stryver shouldered his
          way from the Temple, while the bloom of the Long
          Vacation's infancy was still upon it. Anybody who had
          seen him projecting himself into Soho while he was yet on
          Saint Dunstan's side of Temple Bar, bursting in his
          full-blown way along the pavement, to the jostlement of
          all weaker people, might have seen how safe and strong he
          was.</para>

          <para>His way taking him past Tellson's, and he both
          banking at Tellson's and knowing Mr. Lorry as the
          intimate friend of the Manettes, it entered Mr. Stryver's
          mind to enter the bank, and reveal to Mr. Lorry the
          brightness of the Soho horizon. So, he pushed open the
          door with the weak rattle in its throat, stumbled down
          the two steps, got past the two ancient cashiers, and
          shouldered himself into the musty back closet where Mr.
          Lorry sat at great books ruled for figures, with
          perpendicular iron bars to his window as if that were
          ruled for figures too, and everything under the clouds
          were a sum.</para>

          <para>"Halloa!" said Mr. Stryver. "How do you do? I hope
          you are well!"</para>

          <para>It was Stryver's grand peculiarity that he always
          seemed too big for any place, or space. He was so much
          too big for Tellson's, that old clerks in distant corners
          looked up with looks of remonstrance, as though he
          squeezed them against the wall. The House itself,
          magnificently reading the paper quite in the far-off
          perspective, lowered displeased, as if the Stryver head
          had been butted into its responsible waistcoat.</para>

          <para>The discreet Mr. Lorry said, in a sample tone of
          the voice he would recommend under the circumstances,
          "How do you do, Mr. Stryver? How do you do, sir?" and
          shook hands. There was a peculiarity in his manner of
          shaking hands, always to be seen in any clerk at
          Tellson's who shook hands with a customer when the House
          pervaded the air. He shook in a self-abnegating way, as
          one who shook for Tellson and Co.</para>

          <para>"Can I do anything for you, Mr. Stryver?" asked Mr.
          Lorry, in his business character.</para>

          <para>"Why, no, thank you; this is a private visit to
          yourself, Mr. Lorry; I have come for a private
          word."</para>

          <para>"Oh indeed!" said Mr. Lorry, bending down his ear,
          while his eye strayed to the House afar off.</para>

          <para>"I am going," said Mr. Stryver, leaning his arms
          confidentially on the desk: whereupon, although it was a
          large double one, there appeared to be not half desk
          enough for him: "I am going to make an offer of myself in
          marriage to your agreeable little friend, Miss Manette,
          Mr. Lorry."</para>

          <para>"Oh dear me!" cried Mr. Lorry, rubbing his chin,
          and looking at his visitor dubiously.</para>

          <para>"Oh dear me, sir?" repeated Stryver, drawing back.
          "Oh dear you, sir? What may your meaning be, Mr.
          Lorry?"</para>

          <para>"My meaning," answered the man of business, "is, of
          course, friendly and appreciative, and that it does you
          the greatest credit, and-- in short, my meaning is
          everything you could desire. But--really, you know, Mr.
          Stryver--" Mr. Lorry paused, and shook his head at him in
          the oddest manner, as if he were compelled against his
          will to add, internally, "you know there really is so
          much too much of you!"</para>

          <para>"Well!" said Stryver, slapping the desk with his
          contentious hand, opening his eyes wider, and taking a
          long breath, "if I understand you, Mr. Lorry, I'll be
          hanged!"</para>

          <para>Mr. Lorry adjusted his little wig at both ears as a
          means towards that end, and bit the feather of a
          pen.</para>

          <para>"D--n it all, sir!" said Stryver, staring at him,
          "am I not eligible?"</para>

          <para>"Oh dear yes! Yes. Oh yes, you're eligible!" said
          Mr. Lorry. "If you say eligible, you are
          eligible."</para>

          <para>"Am I not prosperous?" asked Stryver.</para>

          <para>"Oh! if you come to prosperous, you are
          prosperous," said Mr. Lorry.</para>

          <para>"And advancing?"</para>

          <para>"If you come to advancing you know," said Mr.
          Lorry, delighted to be able to make another admission,
          "nobody can doubt that."</para>

          <para>"Then what on earth is your meaning, Mr. Lorry?"
          demanded Stryver, perceptibly crestfallen.</para>

          <para>"Well! I--Were you going there now?" asked Mr.
          Lorry.</para>

          <para>"Straight!" said Stryver, with a plump of his fist
          on the desk.</para>

          <para>"Then I think I wouldn't, if I was you."</para>

          <para>"Why?" said Stryver. "Now, I'll put you in a
          corner," forensically shaking a forefinger at him. "You
          are a man of business and bound to have a reason. State
          your reason. Why wouldn't you go?"</para>

          <para>"Because," said Mr. Lorry, "I wouldn't go on such
          an object without having some cause to believe that I
          should succeed."</para>

          <para>"D--n ME!" cried Stryver, "but this beats
          everything."</para>

          <para>Mr. Lorry glanced at the distant House, and glanced
          at the angry Stryver.</para>

          <para>"Here's a man of business--a man of years--a man of
          experience-- IN a Bank," said Stryver; "and having summed
          up three leading reasons for complete success, he says
          there's no reason at all! Says it with his head on!" Mr.
          Stryver remarked upon the peculiarity as if it would have
          been infinitely less remarkable if he had said it with
          his head off.</para>

          <para>"When I speak of success, I speak of success with
          the young lady; and when I speak of causes and reasons to
          make success probable, I speak of causes and reasons that
          will tell as such with the young lady. The young lady, my
          good sir," said Mr. Lorry, mildly tapping the Stryver
          arm, "the young lady. The young lady goes before
          all."</para>

          <para>"Then you mean to tell me, Mr. Lorry," said
          Stryver, squaring his elbows, "that it is your deliberate
          opinion that the young lady at present in question is a
          mincing Fool?"</para>

          <para>"Not exactly so. I mean to tell you, Mr. Stryver,"
          said Mr. Lorry, reddening, "that I will hear no
          disrespectful word of that young lady from any lips; and
          that if I knew any man--which I hope I do not-- whose
          taste was so coarse, and whose temper was so overbearing,
          that he could not restrain himself from speaking
          disrespectfully of that young lady at this desk, not even
          Tellson's should prevent my giving him a piece of my
          mind."</para>

          <para>The necessity of being angry in a suppressed tone
          had put Mr. Stryver's blood-vessels into a dangerous
          state when it was his turn to be angry; Mr. Lorry's
          veins, methodical as their courses could usually be, were
          in no better state now it was his turn.</para>

          <para>"That is what I mean to tell you, sir," said Mr.
          Lorry. "Pray let there be no mistake about it."</para>

          <para>Mr. Stryver sucked the end of a ruler for a little
          while, and then stood hitting a tune out of his teeth
          with it, which probably gave him the toothache. He broke
          the awkward silence by saying:</para>

          <para>"This is something new to me, Mr. Lorry. You
          deliberately advise me not to go up to Soho and offer
          myself--MYself, Stryver of the King's Bench bar?"</para>

          <para>"Do you ask me for my advice, Mr. Stryver?"</para>

          <para>"Yes, I do."</para>

          <para>"Very good. Then I give it, and you have repeated
          it correctly."</para>

          <para>"And all I can say of it is," laughed Stryver with
          a vexed laugh, "that this--ha, ha!--beats everything
          past, present, and to come."</para>

          <para>"Now understand me," pursued Mr. Lorry. "As a man
          of business, I am not justified in saying anything about
          this matter, for, as a man of business, I know nothing of
          it. But, as an old fellow, who has carried Miss Manette
          in his arms, who is the trusted friend of Miss Manette
          and of her father too, and who has a great affection for
          them both, I have spoken. The confidence is not of my
          seeking, recollect. Now, you think I may not be
          right?"</para>

          <para>"Not I!" said Stryver, whistling. "I can't
          undertake to find third parties in common sense; I can
          only find it for myself. I suppose sense in certain
          quarters; you suppose mincing bread-and-butter nonsense.
          It's new to me, but you are right, I dare say."</para>

          <para>"What I suppose, Mr. Stryver, I claim to
          characterise for myself--And understand me, sir," said
          Mr. Lorry, quickly flushing again, "I will not--not even
          at Tellson's--have it characterised for me by any
          gentleman breathing."</para>

          <para>"There! I beg your pardon!" said Stryver.</para>

          <para>"Granted. Thank you. Well, Mr. Stryver, I was about
          to say:--it might be painful to you to find yourself
          mistaken, it might be painful to Doctor Manette to have
          the task of being explicit with you, it might be very
          painful to Miss Manette to have the task of being
          explicit with you. You know the terms upon which I have
          the honour and happiness to stand with the family. If you
          please, committing you in no way, representing you in no
          way, I will undertake to correct my advice by the
          exercise of a little new observation and judgment
          expressly brought to bear upon it. If you should then be
          dissatisfied with it, you can but test its soundness for
          yourself; if, on the other hand, you should be satisfied
          with it, and it should be what it now is, it may spare
          all sides what is best spared. What do you say?"</para>

          <para>"How long would you keep me in town?"</para>

          <para>"Oh! It is only a question of a few hours. I could
          go to Soho in the evening, and come to your chambers
          afterwards."</para>

          <para>"Then I say yes," said Stryver: "I won't go up
          there now, I am not so hot upon it as that comes to; I
          say yes, and I shall expect you to look in to-night. Good
          morning."</para>

          <para>Then Mr. Stryver turned and burst out of the Bank,
          causing such a concussion of air on his passage through,
          that to stand up against it bowing behind the two
          counters, required the utmost remaining strength of the
          two ancient clerks. Those venerable and feeble persons
          were always seen by the public in the act of bowing, and
          were popularly believed, when they had bowed a customer
          out, still to keep on bowing in the empty office until
          they bowed another customer in.</para>

          <para>The barrister was keen enough to divine that the
          banker would not have gone so far in his expression of
          opinion on any less solid ground than moral certainty.
          Unprepared as he was for the large pill he had to
          swallow, he got it down. "And now," said Mr. Stryver,
          shaking his forensic forefinger at the Temple in general,
          when it was down, "my way out of this, is, to put you all
          in the wrong."</para>

          <para>It was a bit of the art of an Old Bailey tactician,
          in which he found great relief. "You shall not put me in
          the wrong, young lady," said Mr. Stryver; "I'll do that
          for you."</para>

          <para>Accordingly, when Mr. Lorry called that night as
          late as ten o'clock, Mr. Stryver, among a quantity of
          books and papers littered out for the purpose, seemed to
          have nothing less on his mind than the subject of the
          morning. He even showed surprise when he saw Mr. Lorry,
          and was altogether in an absent and preoccupied
          state.</para>

          <para>"Well!" said that good-natured emissary, after a
          full half-hour of bootless attempts to bring him round to
          the question. "I have been to Soho."</para>

          <para>"To Soho?" repeated Mr. Stryver, coldly. "Oh, to be
          sure! What am I thinking of!"</para>

          <para>"And I have no doubt," said Mr. Lorry, "that I was
          right in the conversation we had. My opinion is
          confirmed, and I reiterate my advice."</para>

          <para>"I assure you," returned Mr. Stryver, in the
          friendliest way, "that I am sorry for it on your account,
          and sorry for it on the poor father's account. I know
          this must always be a sore subject with the family; let
          us say no more about it."</para>

          <para>"I don't understand you," said Mr. Lorry.</para>

          <para>"I dare say not," rejoined Stryver, nodding his
          head in a smoothing and final way; "no matter, no
          matter."</para>

          <para>"But it does matter," Mr. Lorry urged.</para>

          <para>"No it doesn't; I assure you it doesn't. Having
          supposed that there was sense where there is no sense,
          and a laudable ambition where there is not a laudable
          ambition, I am well out of my mistake, and no harm is
          done. Young women have committed similar follies often
          before, and have repented them in poverty and obscurity
          often before. In an unselfish aspect, I am sorry that the
          thing is dropped, because it would have been a bad thing
          for me in a worldly point of view; in a selfish aspect, I
          am glad that the thing has dropped, because it would have
          been a bad thing for me in a worldly point of view-- it
          is hardly necessary to say I could have gained nothing by
          it. There is no harm at all done. I have not proposed to
          the young lady, and, between ourselves, I am by no means
          certain, on reflection, that I ever should have committed
          myself to that extent. Mr. Lorry, you cannot control the
          mincing vanities and giddinesses of empty-headed girls;
          you must not expect to do it, or you will always be
          disappointed. Now, pray say no more about it. I tell you,
          I regret it on account of others, but I am satisfied on
          my own account. And I am really very much obliged to you
          for allowing me to sound you, and for giving me your
          advice; you know the young lady better than I do; you
          were right, it never would have done."</para>

          <para>Mr. Lorry was so taken aback, that he looked quite
          stupidly at Mr. Stryver shouldering him towards the door,
          with an appearance of showering generosity, forbearance,
          and goodwill, on his erring head. "Make the best of it,
          my dear sir," said Stryver; "say no more about it; thank
          you again for allowing me to sound you; good
          night!"</para>

          <para>Mr. Lorry was out in the night, before he knew
          where he was. Mr. Stryver was lying back on his sofa,
          winking at his ceiling.</para>
        </chapter>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>XIII</chapnum>

            <title>The Fellow of No Delicacy</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>If Sydney Carton ever shone anywhere, he certainly
          never shone in the house of Doctor Manette. He had been
          there often, during a whole year, and had always been the
          same moody and morose lounger there. When he cared to
          talk, he talked well; but, the cloud of caring for
          nothing, which overshadowed him with such a fatal
          darkness, was very rarely pierced by the light within
          him.</para>

          <para>And yet he did care something for the streets that
          environed that house, and for the senseless stones that
          made their pavements. Many a night he vaguely and
          unhappily wandered there, when wine had brought no
          transitory gladness to him; many a dreary daybreak
          revealed his solitary figure lingering there, and still
          lingering there when the first beams of the sun brought
          into strong relief, removed beauties of architecture in
          spires of churches and lofty buildings, as perhaps the
          quiet time brought some sense of better things, else
          forgotten and unattainable, into his mind. Of late, the
          neglected bed in the Temple Court had known him more
          scantily than ever; and often when he had thrown himself
          upon it no longer than a few minutes, he had got up
          again, and haunted that neighbourhood.</para>

          <para>On a day in August, when Mr. Stryver (after
          notifying to his jackal that "he had thought better of
          that marrying matter") had carried his delicacy into
          Devonshire, and when the sight and scent of flowers in
          the City streets had some waifs of goodness in them for
          the worst, of health for the sickliest, and of youth for
          the oldest, Sydney's feet still trod those stones. From
          being irresolute and purposeless, his feet became
          animated by an intention, and, in the working out of that
          intention, they took him to the Doctor's door.</para>

          <para>He was shown up-stairs, and found Lucie at her
          work, alone. She had never been quite at her ease with
          him, and received him with some little embarrassment as
          he seated himself near her table. But, looking up at his
          face in the interchange of the first few common-places,
          she observed a change in it.</para>

          <para>"I fear you are not well, Mr. Carton!"</para>

          <para>"No. But the life I lead, Miss Manette, is not
          conducive to health. What is to be expected of, or by,
          such profligates?"</para>

          <para>"Is it not--forgive me; I have begun the question
          on my lips--a pity to live no better life?"</para>

          <para>"God knows it is a shame!"</para>

          <para>"Then why not change it?"</para>

          <para>Looking gently at him again, she was surprised and
          saddened to see that there were tears in his eyes. There
          were tears in his voice too, as he answered:</para>

          <para>"It is too late for that. I shall never be better
          than I am. I shall sink lower, and be worse."</para>

          <para>He leaned an elbow on her table, and covered his
          eyes with his hand. The table trembled in the silence
          that followed.</para>

          <para>She had never seen him softened, and was much
          distressed. He knew her to be so, without looking at her,
          and said:</para>

          <para>"Pray forgive me, Miss Manette. I break down before
          the knowledge of what I want to say to you. Will you hear
          me?"</para>

          <para>"If it will do you any good, Mr. Carton, if it
          would make you happier, it would make me very
          glad!"</para>

          <para>"God bless you for your sweet compassion!"</para>

          <para>He unshaded his face after a little while, and
          spoke steadily.</para>

          <para>"Don't be afraid to hear me. Don't shrink from
          anything I say. I am like one who died young. All my life
          might have been."</para>

          <para>"No, Mr. Carton. I am sure that the best part of it
          might still be; I am sure that you might be much, much
          worthier of yourself."</para>

          <para>"Say of you, Miss Manette, and although I know
          better--although in the mystery of my own wretched heart
          I know better--I shall never forget it!"</para>

          <para>She was pale and trembling. He came to her relief
          with a fixed despair of himself which made the interview
          unlike any other that could have been holden.</para>

          <para>"If it had been possible, Miss Manette, that you
          could have returned the love of the man you see before
          yourself--flung away, wasted, drunken, poor creature of
          misuse as you know him to be--he would have been
          conscious this day and hour, in spite of his happiness,
          that he would bring you to misery, bring you to sorrow
          and repentance, blight you, disgrace you, pull you down
          with him. I know very well that you can have no
          tenderness for me; I ask for none; I am even thankful
          that it cannot be."</para>

          <para>"Without it, can I not save you, Mr. Carton? Can I
          not recall you-- forgive me again!--to a better course?
          Can I in no way repay your confidence? I know this is a
          confidence," she modestly said, after a little
          hesitation, and in earnest tears, "I know you would say
          this to no one else. Can I turn it to no good account for
          yourself, Mr. Carton?"</para>

          <para>He shook his head.</para>

          <para>"To none. No, Miss Manette, to none. If you will
          hear me through a very little more, all you can ever do
          for me is done. I wish you to know that you have been the
          last dream of my soul. In my degradation I have not been
          so degraded but that the sight of you with your father,
          and of this home made such a home by you, has stirred old
          shadows that I thought had died out of me. Since I knew
          you, I have been troubled by a remorse that I thought
          would never reproach me again, and have heard whispers
          from old voices impelling me upward, that I thought were
          silent for ever. I have had unformed ideas of striving
          afresh, beginning anew, shaking off sloth and sensuality,
          and fighting out the abandoned fight. A dream, all a
          dream, that ends in nothing, and leaves the sleeper where
          he lay down, but I wish you to know that you inspired
          it."</para>

          <para>"Will nothing of it remain? O Mr. Carton, think
          again! Try again!"</para>

          <para>"No, Miss Manette; all through it, I have known
          myself to be quite undeserving. And yet I have had the
          weakness, and have still the weakness, to wish you to
          know with what a sudden mastery you kindled me, heap of
          ashes that I am, into fire--a fire, however, inseparable
          in its nature from myself, quickening nothing, lighting
          nothing, doing no service, idly burning away."</para>

          <para>"Since it is my misfortune, Mr. Carton, to have
          made you more unhappy than you were before you knew
          me--"</para>

          <para>"Don't say that, Miss Manette, for you would have
          reclaimed me, if anything could. you will not be the
          cause of my becoming worse."</para>

          <para>"Since the state of your mind that you describe,
          is, at all events, attributable to some influence of
          mine--this is what I mean, if I can make it plain--can I
          use no influence to serve you? Have I no power for good,
          with you, at all?"</para>

          <para>"The utmost good that I am capable of now, Miss
          Manette, I have come here to realise. Let me carry
          through the rest of my misdirected life, the remembrance
          that I opened my heart to you, last of all the world; and
          that there was something left in me at this time which
          you could deplore and pity."</para>

          <para>"Which I entreated you to believe, again and again,
          most fervently, with all my heart, was capable of better
          things, Mr. Carton!"</para>

          <para>"Entreat me to believe it no more, Miss Manette. I
          have proved myself, and I know better. I distress you; I
          draw fast to an end. Will you let me believe, when I
          recall this day, that the last confidence of my life was
          reposed in your pure and innocent breast, and that it
          lies there alone, and will be shared by no one?"</para>

          <para>"If that will be a consolation to you, yes."</para>

          <para>"Not even by the dearest one ever to be known to
          you?"</para>

          <para>"Mr. Carton," she answered, after an agitated
          pause, "the secret is yours, not mine; and I promise to
          respect it."</para>

          <para>"Thank you. And again, God bless you."</para>

          <para>He put her hand to his lips, and moved towards the
          door.</para>

          <para>"Be under no apprehension, Miss Manette, of my ever
          resuming this conversation by so much as a passing word.
          I will never refer to it again. If I were dead, that
          could not be surer than it is henceforth. In the hour of
          my death, I shall hold sacred the one good remembrance--
          and shall thank and bless you for it--that my last avowal
          of myself was made to you, and that my name, and faults,
          and miseries were gently carried in your heart. May it
          otherwise be light and happy!"</para>

          <para>He was so unlike what he had ever shown himself to
          be, and it was so sad to think how much he had thrown
          away, and how much he every day kept down and perverted,
          that Lucie Manette wept mournfully for him as he stood
          looking back at her.</para>

          <para>"Be comforted!" he said, "I am not worth such
          feeling, Miss Manette. An hour or two hence, and the low
          companions and low habits that I scorn but yield to, will
          render me less worth such tears as those, than any wretch
          who creeps along the streets. Be comforted! But, within
          myself, I shall always be, towards you, what I am now,
          though outwardly I shall be what you have heretofore seen
          me. The last supplication but one I make to you, is, that
          you will believe this of me."</para>

          <para>"I will, Mr. Carton."</para>

          <para>"My last supplication of all, is this; and with it,
          I will relieve you of a visitor with whom I well know you
          have nothing in unison, and between whom and you there is
          an impassable space. It is useless to say it, I know, but
          it rises out of my soul. For you, and for any dear to
          you, I would do anything. If my career were of that
          better kind that there was any opportunity or capacity of
          sacrifice in it, I would embrace any sacrifice for you
          and for those dear to you. Try to hold me in your mind,
          at some quiet times, as ardent and sincere in this one
          thing. The time will come, the time will not be long in
          coming, when new ties will be formed about you--ties that
          will bind you yet more tenderly and strongly to the home
          you so adorn--the dearest ties that will ever grace and
          gladden you. O Miss Manette, when the little picture of a
          happy father's face looks up in yours, when you see your
          own bright beauty springing up anew at your feet, think
          now and then that there is a man who would give his life,
          to keep a life you love beside you!"</para>

          <para>He said, "Farewell!" said a last "God bless you!"
          and left her.</para>
        </chapter>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>XIV</chapnum>

            <title>The Honest Tradesman</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>To the eyes of Mr. Jeremiah Cruncher, sitting on
          his stool in Fleet-street with his grisly urchin beside
          him, a vast number and variety of objects in movement
          were every day presented. Who could sit upon anything in
          Fleet-street during the busy hours of the day, and not be
          dazed and deafened by two immense processions, one ever
          tending westward with the sun, the other ever tending
          eastward from the sun, both ever tending to the plains
          beyond the range of red and purple where the sun goes
          down!</para>

          <para>With his straw in his mouth, Mr. Cruncher sat
          watching the two streams, like the heathen rustic who has
          for several centuries been on duty watching one
          stream--saving that Jerry had no expectation of their
          ever running dry. Nor would it have been an expectation
          of a hopeful kind, since a small part of his income was
          derived from the pilotage of timid women (mostly of a
          full habit and past the middle term of life) from
          Tellson's side of the tides to the opposite shore. Brief
          as such companionship was in every separate instance, Mr.
          Cruncher never failed to become so interested in the lady
          as to express a strong desire to have the honour of
          drinking her very good health. And it was from the gifts
          bestowed upon him towards the execution of this
          benevolent purpose, that he recruited his finances, as
          just now observed.</para>

          <para>Time was, when a poet sat upon a stool in a public
          place, and mused in the sight of men. Mr. Cruncher,
          sitting on a stool in a public place, but not being a
          poet, mused as little as possible, and looked about
          him.</para>

          <para>It fell out that he was thus engaged in a season
          when crowds were few, and belated women few, and when his
          affairs in general were so unprosperous as to awaken a
          strong suspicion in his breast that Mrs. Cruncher must
          have been "flopping" in some pointed manner, when an
          unusual concourse pouring down Fleet-street westward,
          attracted his attention. Looking that way, Mr. Cruncher
          made out that some kind of funeral was coming along, and
          that there was popular objection to this funeral, which
          engendered uproar.</para>

          <para>"Young Jerry," said Mr. Cruncher, turning to his
          offspring, "it's a buryin'."</para>

          <para>"Hooroar, father!" cried Young Jerry.</para>

          <para>The young gentleman uttered this exultant sound
          with mysterious significance. The elder gentleman took
          the cry so ill, that he watched his opportunity, and
          smote the young gentleman on the ear.</para>

          <para>"What d'ye mean? What are you hooroaring at? What
          do you want to conwey to your own father, you young Rip?
          This boy is a getting too many for ME!" said Mr.
          Cruncher, surveying him. "Him and his hooroars! Don't let
          me hear no more of you, or you shall feel some more of
          me. D'ye hear?"</para>

          <para>"I warn't doing no harm," Young Jerry protested,
          rubbing his cheek.</para>

          <para>"Drop it then," said Mr. Cruncher; "I won't have
          none of YOUR no harms. Get a top of that there seat, and
          look at the crowd."</para>

          <para>His son obeyed, and the crowd approached; they were
          bawling and hissing round a dingy hearse and dingy
          mourning coach, in which mourning coach there was only
          one mourner, dressed in the dingy trappings that were
          considered essential to the dignity of the position. The
          position appeared by no means to please him, however,
          with an increasing rabble surrounding the coach, deriding
          him, making grimaces at him, and incessantly groaning and
          calling out: "Yah! Spies! Tst! Yaha! Spies!" with many
          compliments too numerous and forcible to repeat.</para>

          <para>Funerals had at all times a remarkable attraction
          for Mr. Cruncher; he always pricked up his senses, and
          became excited, when a funeral passed Tellson's.
          Naturally, therefore, a funeral with this uncommon
          attendance excited him greatly, and he asked of the first
          man who ran against him:</para>

          <para>"What is it, brother? What's it about?"</para>

          <para>"_I_ don't know," said the man. "Spies! Yaha! Tst!
          Spies!"</para>

          <para>He asked another man. "Who is it?"</para>

          <para>"_I_ don't know," returned the man, clapping his
          hands to his mouth nevertheless, and vociferating in a
          surprising heat and with the greatest ardour, "Spies!
          Yaha! Tst, tst! Spi--ies!"</para>

          <para>At length, a person better informed on the merits
          of the case, tumbled against him, and from this person he
          learned that the funeral was the funeral of one Roger
          Cly.</para>

          <para>"Was He a spy?" asked Mr. Cruncher.</para>

          <para>"Old Bailey spy," returned his informant. "Yaha!
          Tst! Yah! Old Bailey Spi--i--ies!"</para>

          <para>"Why, to be sure!" exclaimed Jerry, recalling the
          Trial at which he had assisted. "I've seen him. Dead, is
          he?"</para>

          <para>"Dead as mutton," returned the other, "and can't be
          too dead. Have 'em out, there! Spies! Pull 'em out,
          there! Spies!"</para>

          <para>The idea was so acceptable in the prevalent absence
          of any idea, that the crowd caught it up with eagerness,
          and loudly repeating the suggestion to have 'em out, and
          to pull 'em out, mobbed the two vehicles so closely that
          they came to a stop. On the crowd's opening the coach
          doors, the one mourner scuffled out of himself and was in
          their hands for a moment; but he was so alert, and made
          such good use of his time, that in another moment he was
          scouring away up a bye-street, after shedding his cloak,
          hat, long hatband, white pocket-handkerchief, and other
          symbolical tears.</para>

          <para>These, the people tore to pieces and scattered far
          and wide with great enjoyment, while the tradesmen
          hurriedly shut up their shops; for a crowd in those times
          stopped at nothing, and was a monster much dreaded. They
          had already got the length of opening the hearse to take
          the coffin out, when some brighter genius proposed
          instead, its being escorted to its destination amidst
          general rejoicing. Practical suggestions being much
          needed, this suggestion, too, was received with
          acclamation, and the coach was immediately filled with
          eight inside and a dozen out, while as many people got on
          the roof of the hearse as could by any exercise of
          ingenuity stick upon it. Among the first of these
          volunteers was Jerry Cruncher himself, who modestly
          concealed his spiky head from the observation of
          Tellson's, in the further corner of the mourning
          coach.</para>

          <para>The officiating undertakers made some protest
          against these changes in the ceremonies; but, the river
          being alarmingly near, and several voices remarking on
          the efficacy of cold immersion in bringing refractory
          members of the profession to reason, the protest was
          faint and brief. The remodelled procession started, with
          a chimney-sweep driving the hearse--advised by the
          regular driver, who was perched beside him, under close
          inspection, for the purpose--and with a pieman, also
          attended by his cabinet minister, driving the mourning
          coach. A bear-leader, a popular street character of the
          time, was impressed as an additional ornament, before the
          cavalcade had gone far down the Strand; and his bear, who
          was black and very mangy, gave quite an Undertaking air
          to that part of the procession in which he walked.</para>

          <para>Thus, with beer-drinking, pipe-smoking,
          song-roaring, and infinite caricaturing of woe, the
          disorderly procession went its way, recruiting at every
          step, and all the shops shutting up before it. Its
          destination was the old church of Saint Pancras, far off
          in the fields. It got there in course of time; insisted
          on pouring into the burial-ground; finally, accomplished
          the interment of the deceased Roger Cly in its own way,
          and highly to its own satisfaction.</para>

          <para>The dead man disposed of, and the crowd being under
          the necessity of providing some other entertainment for
          itself, another brighter genius (or perhaps the same)
          conceived the humour of impeaching casual passers-by, as
          Old Bailey spies, and wreaking vengeance on them. Chase
          was given to some scores of inoffensive persons who had
          never been near the Old Bailey in their lives, in the
          realisation of this fancy, and they were roughly hustled
          and maltreated. The transition to the sport of
          window-breaking, and thence to the plundering of
          public-houses, was easy and natural. At last, after
          several hours, when sundry summer-houses had been pulled
          down, and some area-railings had been torn up, to arm the
          more belligerent spirits, a rumour got about that the
          Guards were coming. Before this rumour, the crowd
          gradually melted away, and perhaps the Guards came, and
          perhaps they never came, and this was the usual progress
          of a mob.</para>

          <para>Mr. Cruncher did not assist at the closing sports,
          but had remained behind in the churchyard, to confer and
          condole with the undertakers. The place had a soothing
          influence on him. He procured a pipe from a neighbouring
          public-house, and smoked it, looking in at the railings
          and maturely considering the spot.</para>

          <para>"Jerry," said Mr. Cruncher, apostrophising himself
          in his usual way, "you see that there Cly that day, and
          you see with your own eyes that he was a young 'un and a
          straight made 'un."</para>

          <para>Having smoked his pipe out, and ruminated a little
          longer, he turned himself about, that he might appear,
          before the hour of closing, on his station at Tellson's.
          Whether his meditations on mortality had touched his
          liver, or whether his general health had been previously
          at all amiss, or whether he desired to show a little
          attention to an eminent man, is not so much to the
          purpose, as that he made a short call upon his medical
          adviser--a distinguished surgeon--on his way back.</para>

          <para>Young Jerry relieved his father with dutiful
          interest, and reported No job in his absence. The bank
          closed, the ancient clerks came out, the usual watch was
          set, and Mr. Cruncher and his son went home to
          tea.</para>

          <para>"Now, I tell you where it is!" said Mr. Cruncher to
          his wife, on entering. "If, as a honest tradesman, my
          wenturs goes wrong to-night, I shall make sure that
          you've been praying again me, and I shall work you for it
          just the same as if I seen you do it."</para>

          <para>The dejected Mrs. Cruncher shook her head.</para>

          <para>"Why, you're at it afore my face!" said Mr.
          Cruncher, with signs of angry apprehension.</para>

          <para>"I am saying nothing."</para>

          <para>"Well, then; don't meditate nothing. You might as
          well flop as meditate. You may as well go again me one
          way as another. Drop it altogether."</para>

          <para>"Yes, Jerry."</para>

          <para>"Yes, Jerry," repeated Mr. Cruncher sitting down to
          tea. "Ah! It IS yes, Jerry. That's about it. You may say
          yes, Jerry."</para>

          <para>Mr. Cruncher had no particular meaning in these
          sulky corroborations, but made use of them, as people not
          unfrequently do, to express general ironical
          dissatisfaction.</para>

          <para>"You and your yes, Jerry," said Mr. Cruncher,
          taking a bite out of his bread-and-butter, and seeming to
          help it down with a large invisible oyster out of his
          saucer. "Ah! I think so. I believe you."</para>

          <para>"You are going out to-night?" asked his decent
          wife, when he took another bite.</para>

          <para>"Yes, I am."</para>

          <para>"May I go with you, father?" asked his son,
          briskly.</para>

          <para>"No, you mayn't. I'm a going--as your mother
          knows--a fishing. That's where I'm going to. Going a
          fishing."</para>

          <para>"Your fishing-rod gets rayther rusty; don't it,
          father?"</para>

          <para>"Never you mind."</para>

          <para>"Shall you bring any fish home, father?"</para>

          <para>"If I don't, you'll have short commons, to-morrow,"
          returned that gentleman, shaking his head; "that's
          questions enough for you; I ain't a going out, till
          you've been long abed."</para>

          <para>He devoted himself during the remainder of the
          evening to keeping a most vigilant watch on Mrs.
          Cruncher, and sullenly holding her in conversation that
          she might be prevented from meditating any petitions to
          his disadvantage. With this view, he urged his son to
          hold her in conversation also, and led the unfortunate
          woman a hard life by dwelling on any causes of complaint
          he could bring against her, rather than he would leave
          her for a moment to her own reflections. The devoutest
          person could have rendered no greater homage to the
          efficacy of an honest prayer than he did in this distrust
          of his wife. It was as if a professed unbeliever in
          ghosts should be frightened by a ghost story.</para>

          <para>"And mind you!" said Mr. Cruncher. "No games
          to-morrow! If I, as a honest tradesman, succeed in
          providing a jinte of meat or two, none of your not
          touching of it, and sticking to bread. If I, as a honest
          tradesman, am able to provide a little beer, none of your
          declaring on water. When you go to Rome, do as Rome does.
          Rome will be a ugly customer to you, if you don't. _I_'m
          your Rome, you know."</para>

          <para>Then he began grumbling again:</para>

          <para>"With your flying into the face of your own wittles
          and drink! I don't know how scarce you mayn't make the
          wittles and drink here, by your flopping tricks and your
          unfeeling conduct. Look at your boy: he IS your'n, ain't
          he? He's as thin as a lath. Do you call yourself a
          mother, and not know that a mother's first duty is to
          blow her boy out?"</para>

          <para>This touched Young Jerry on a tender place; who
          adjured his mother to perform her first duty, and,
          whatever else she did or neglected, above all things to
          lay especial stress on the discharge of that maternal
          function so affectingly and delicately indicated by his
          other parent.</para>

          <para>Thus the evening wore away with the Cruncher
          family, until Young Jerry was ordered to bed, and his
          mother, laid under similar injunctions, obeyed them. Mr.
          Cruncher beguiled the earlier watches of the night with
          solitary pipes, and did not start upon his excursion
          until nearly one o'clock. Towards that small and ghostly
          hour, he rose up from his chair, took a key out of his
          pocket, opened a locked cupboard, and brought forth a
          sack, a crowbar of convenient size, a rope and chain, and
          other fishing tackle of that nature. Disposing these
          articles about him in skilful manner, he bestowed a
          parting defiance on Mrs. Cruncher, extinguished the
          light, and went out.</para>

          <para>Young Jerry, who had only made a feint of
          undressing when he went to bed, was not long after his
          father. Under cover of the darkness he followed out of
          the room, followed down the stairs, followed down the
          court, followed out into the streets. He was in no
          uneasiness concerning his getting into the house again,
          for it was full of lodgers, and the door stood ajar all
          night.</para>

          <para>Impelled by a laudable ambition to study the art
          and mystery of his father's honest calling, Young Jerry,
          keeping as close to house fronts, walls, and doorways, as
          his eyes were close to one another, held his honoured
          parent in view. The honoured parent steering Northward,
          had not gone far, when he was joined by another disciple
          of Izaak Walton, and the two trudged on together.</para>

          <para>Within half an hour from the first starting, they
          were beyond the winking lamps, and the more than winking
          watchmen, and were out upon a lonely road. Another
          fisherman was picked up here--and that so silently, that
          if Young Jerry had been superstitious, he might have
          supposed the second follower of the gentle craft to have,
          all of a sudden, split himself into two.</para>

          <para>The three went on, and Young Jerry went on, until
          the three stopped under a bank overhanging the road. Upon
          the top of the bank was a low brick wall, surmounted by
          an iron railing. In the shadow of bank and wall the three
          turned out of the road, and up a blind lane, of which the
          wall--there, risen to some eight or ten feet high--formed
          one side. Crouching down in a corner, peeping up the
          lane, the next object that Young Jerry saw, was the form
          of his honoured parent, pretty well defined against a
          watery and clouded moon, nimbly scaling an iron gate. He
          was soon over, and then the second fisherman got over,
          and then the third. They all dropped softly on the ground
          within the gate, and lay there a little--listening
          perhaps. Then, they moved away on their hands and
          knees.</para>

          <para>It was now Young Jerry's turn to approach the gate:
          which he did, holding his breath. Crouching down again in
          a corner there, and looking in, he made out the three
          fishermen creeping through some rank grass! and all the
          gravestones in the churchyard--it was a large churchyard
          that they were in--looking on like ghosts in white, while
          the church tower itself looked on Eke the ghost of a
          monstrous giant. They did not creep far, before they
          stopped and stood upright. And then they began to
          fish.</para>

          <para>They fished with a spade, at first. Presently the
          honoured parent appeared to be adjusting some instrument
          like a great corkscrew. Whatever tools they worked with,
          they worked hard, until the awful striking of the church
          clock so terrified Young Jerry, that he made off, with
          his hair as stiff as his father's.</para>

          <para>But, his long-cherished desire to know more about
          these matters, not only stopped him in his running away,
          but lured him back again. They were still fishing
          perseveringly, when he peeped in at the gate for the
          second time; but, now they seemed to have got a bite.
          There was a screwing and complaining sound down below,
          and their bent figures were strained, as if by a weight.
          By slow degrees the weight broke away the earth upon it,
          and came to the surface. Young Jerry very well knew what
          it would be; but, when he saw it, and saw his honoured
          parent about to wrench it open, he was so frightened,
          being new to the sight, that he made off again, and never
          stopped until he had run a mile or more.</para>

          <para>He would not have stopped then, for anything less
          necessary than breath, it being a spectral sort of race
          that he ran, and one highly desirable to get to the end
          of. He had a strong idea that the coffin he had seen was
          running after him; and, pictured as hopping on behind
          him, bolt upright, upon its narrow end, always on the
          point of overtaking him and hopping on at his
          side--perhaps taking his arm-- it was a pursuer to shun.
          It was an inconsistent and ubiquitous fiend too, for,
          while it was making the whole night behind him dreadful,
          he darted out into the roadway to avoid dark alleys,
          fearful of its coming hopping out of them like a
          dropsical boy's-Kite without tail and wings. It hid in
          doorways too, rubbing its horrible shoulders against
          doors, and drawing them up to its ears, as if it were
          laughing. It got into shadows on the road, and lay
          cunningly on its back to trip him up. All this time it
          was incessantly hopping on behind and gaining on him, so
          that when the boy got to his own door he had reason for
          being half dead. And even then it would not leave him,
          but followed him upstairs with a bump on every stair,
          scrambled into bed with him, and bumped down, dead and
          heavy, on his breast when he fell asleep.</para>

          <para>&gt;From his oppressed slumber, Young Jerry in his
          closet was awakened after daybreak and before sunrise, by
          the presence of his father in the family room. Something
          had gone wrong with him; at least, so Young Jerry
          inferred, from the circumstance of his holding Mrs.
          Cruncher by the ears, and knocking the back of her head
          against the head-board of the bed.</para>

          <para>"I told you I would," said Mr. Cruncher, "and I
          did."</para>

          <para>"Jerry, Jerry, Jerry!" his wife implored.</para>

          <para>"You oppose yourself to the profit of the
          business," said Jerry, "and me and my partners suffer.
          You was to honour and obey; why the devil don't
          you?"</para>

          <para>"I try to be a good wife, Jerry," the poor woman
          protested, with tears.</para>

          <para>"Is it being a good wife to oppose your husband's
          business? Is it honouring your husband to dishonour his
          business? Is it obeying your husband to disobey him on
          the wital subject of his business?"</para>

          <para>"You hadn't taken to the dreadful business then,
          Jerry."</para>

          <para>"It's enough for you," retorted Mr. Cruncher, "to
          be the wife of a honest tradesman, and not to occupy your
          female mind with calculations when he took to his trade
          or when he didn't. A honouring and obeying wife would let
          his trade alone altogether. Call yourself a religious
          woman? If you're a religious woman, give me a irreligious
          one! You have no more nat'ral sense of duty than the bed
          of this here Thames river has of a pile, and similarly it
          must be knocked into you."</para>

          <para>The altercation was conducted in a low tone of
          voice, and terminated in the honest tradesman's kicking
          off his clay-soiled boots, and lying down at his length
          on the floor. After taking a timid peep at him lying on
          his back, with his rusty hands under his head for a
          pillow, his son lay down too, and fell asleep
          again.</para>

          <para>There was no fish for breakfast, and not much of
          anything else. Mr. Cruncher was out of spirits, and out
          of temper, and kept an iron pot-lid by him as a
          projectile for the correction of Mrs. Cruncher, in case
          he should observe any symptoms of her saying Grace. He
          was brushed and washed at the usual hour, and set off
          with his son to pursue his ostensible calling.</para>

          <para>Young Jerry, walking with the stool under his arm
          at his father's side along sunny and crowded
          Fleet-street, was a very different Young Jerry from him
          of the previous night, running home through darkness and
          solitude from his grim pursuer. His cunning was fresh
          with the day, and his qualms were gone with the night--in
          which particulars it is not improbable that he had
          compeers in Fleet-street and the City of London, that
          fine morning.</para>

          <para>"Father," said Young Jerry, as they walked along:
          taking care to keep at arm's length and to have the stool
          well between them: "what's a Resurrection-Man?"</para>

          <para>Mr. Cruncher came to a stop on the pavement before
          he answered, "How should I know?"</para>

          <para>"I thought you knowed everything, father," said the
          artless boy.</para>

          <para>"Hem! Well," returned Mr. Cruncher, going on again,
          and lifting off his hat to give his spikes free play,
          "he's a tradesman."</para>

          <para>"What's his goods, father?" asked the brisk Young
          Jerry.</para>

          <para>"His goods," said Mr. Cruncher, after turning it
          over in his mind, "is a branch of Scientific
          goods."</para>

          <para>"Persons' bodies, ain't it, father?" asked the
          lively boy.</para>

          <para>"I believe it is something of that sort," said Mr.
          Cruncher.</para>

          <para>"Oh, father, I should so like to be a
          Resurrection-Man when I'm quite growed up!"</para>

          <para>Mr. Cruncher was soothed, but shook his head in a
          dubious and moral way. "It depends upon how you dewelop
          your talents. Be careful to dewelop your talents, and
          never to say no more than you can help to nobody, and
          there's no telling at the present time what you may not
          come to be fit for." As Young Jerry, thus encouraged,
          went on a few yards in advance, to plant the stool in the
          shadow of the Bar, Mr. Cruncher added to himself: "Jerry,
          you honest tradesman, there's hopes wot that boy will yet
          be a blessing to you, and a recompense to you for his
          mother!"</para>
        </chapter>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>XV</chapnum>

            <title>Knitting</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>There had been earlier drinking than usual in the
          wine-shop of Monsieur Defarge. As early as six o'clock in
          the morning, sallow faces peeping through its barred
          windows had descried other faces within, bending over
          measures of wine. Monsieur Defarge sold a very thin wine
          at the best of times, but it would seem to have been an
          unusually thin wine that he sold at this time. A sour
          wine, moreover, or a souring, for its influence on the
          mood of those who drank it was to make them gloomy. No
          vivacious Bacchanalian flame leaped out of the pressed
          grape of Monsieur Defarge: but, a smouldering fire that
          burnt in the dark, lay hidden in the dregs of it.</para>

          <para>This had been the third morning in succession, on
          which there had been early drinking at the wine-shop of
          Monsieur Defarge. It had begun on Monday, and here was
          Wednesday come. There had been more of early brooding
          than drinking; for, many men had listened and whispered
          and slunk about there from the time of the opening of the
          door, who could not have laid a piece of money on the
          counter to save their souls. These were to the full as
          interested in the place, however, as if they could have
          commanded whole barrels of wine; and they glided from
          seat to seat, and from corner to corner, swallowing talk
          in lieu of drink, with greedy looks.</para>

          <para>Notwithstanding an unusual flow of company, the
          master of the wine-shop was not visible. He was not
          missed; for, nobody who crossed the threshold looked for
          him, nobody asked for him, nobody wondered to see only
          Madame Defarge in her seat, presiding over the
          distribution of wine, with a bowl of battered small coins
          before her, as much defaced and beaten out of their
          original impress as the small coinage of humanity from
          whose ragged pockets they had come.</para>

          <para>A suspended interest and a prevalent absence of
          mind, were perhaps observed by the spies who looked in at
          the wine-shop, as they looked in at every place, high and
          low, from the kings palace to the criminal's gaol. Games
          at cards languished, players at dominoes musingly built
          towers with them, drinkers drew figures on the tables
          with spilt drops of wine, Madame Defarge herself picked
          out the pattern on her sleeve with her toothpick, and saw
          and heard something inaudible and invisible a long way
          off.</para>

          <para>Thus, Saint Antoine in this vinous feature of his,
          until midday. It was high noontide, when two dusty men
          passed through his streets and under his swinging lamps:
          of whom, one was Monsieur Defarge: the other a mender of
          roads in a blue cap. All adust and athirst, the two
          entered the wine-shop. Their arrival had lighted a kind
          of fire in the breast of Saint Antoine, fast spreading as
          they came along, which stirred and flickered in flames of
          faces at most doors and windows. Yet, no one had followed
          them, and no man spoke when they entered the wine-shop,
          though the eyes of every man there were turned upon
          them.</para>

          <para>"Good day, gentlemen!" said Monsieur
          Defarge.</para>

          <para>It may have been a signal for loosening the general
          tongue. It elicited an answering chorus of "Good
          day!"</para>

          <para>"It is bad weather, gentlemen," said Defarge,
          shaking his head.</para>

          <para>Upon which, every man looked at his neighbour, and
          then an cast down their eyes and sat silent. Except one
          man, who got up and went out.</para>

          <para>"My wife," said Defarge aloud, addressing Madame
          Defarge: "I have travelled certain leagues with this good
          mender of roads, called Jacques. I met him--by
          accident--a day and half's journey out of Paris. He is a
          good child, this mender of roads, called Jacques. Give
          him to drink, my wife!"</para>

          <para>A second man got up and went out. Madame Defarge
          set wine before the mender of roads called Jacques, who
          doffed his blue cap to the company, and drank. In the
          breast of his blouse he carried some coarse dark bread;
          he ate of this between whiles, and sat munching and
          drinking near Madame Defarge's counter. A third man got
          up and went out.</para>

          <para>Defarge refreshed himself with a draught of
          wine--but, he took less than was given to the stranger,
          as being himself a man to whom it was no rarity--and
          stood waiting until the countryman had made his
          breakfast. He looked at no one present, and no one now
          looked at him; not even Madame Defarge, who had taken up
          her knitting, and was at work.</para>

          <para>"Have you finished your repast, friend?" he asked,
          in due season.</para>

          <para>"Yes, thank you."</para>

          <para>"Come, then! You shall see the apartment that I
          told you you could occupy. It will suit you to a
          marvel."</para>

          <para>Out of the wine-shop into the street, out of the
          street into a courtyard, out of the courtyard up a steep
          staircase, out of the staircase into a garret,--formerly
          the garret where a white-haired man sat on a low bench,
          stooping forward and very busy, making shoes.</para>

          <para>No white-haired man was there now; but, the three
          men were there who had gone out of the wine-shop singly.
          And between them and the white-haired man afar off, was
          the one small link, that they had once looked in at him
          through the chinks in the wall.</para>

          <para>Defarge closed the door carefully, and spoke in a
          subdued voice:</para>

          <para>"Jacques One, Jacques Two, Jacques Three! This is
          the witness encountered by appointment, by me, Jacques
          Four. He will tell you all. Speak, Jacques Five!"</para>

          <para>The mender of roads, blue cap in hand, wiped his
          swarthy forehead with it, and said, "Where shall I
          commence, monsieur?"</para>

          <para>"Commence," was Monsieur Defarge's not unreasonable
          reply, "at the commencement."</para>

          <para>"I saw him then, messieurs," began the mender of
          roads, "a year ago this running summer, underneath the
          carriage of the Marquis, hanging by the chain. Behold the
          manner of it. I leaving my work on the road, the sun
          going to bed, the carriage of the Marquis slowly
          ascending the hill, he hanging by the chain--like
          this."</para>

          <para>Again the mender of roads went through the whole
          performance; in which he ought to have been perfect by
          that time, seeing that it had been the infallible
          resource and indispensable entertainment of his village
          during a whole year.</para>

          <para>Jacques One struck in, and asked if he had ever
          seen the man before?</para>

          <para>"Never," answered the mender of roads, recovering
          his perpendicular.</para>

          <para>Jacques Three demanded how he afterwards recognised
          him then?</para>

          <para>"By his tall figure," said the mender of roads,
          softly, and with his finger at his nose. "When Monsieur
          the Marquis demands that evening, 'Say, what is he like?'
          I make response, `Tall as a spectre.'"</para>

          <para>"You should have said, short as a dwarf," returned
          Jacques Two.</para>

          <para>"But what did I know? The deed was not then
          accomplished, neither did he confide in me. Observe!
          Under those circumstances even, I do not offer my
          testimony. Monsieur the Marquis indicates me with his
          finger, standing near our little fountain, and says, `To
          me! Bring that rascal!' My faith, messieurs, I offer
          nothing."</para>

          <para>"He is right there, Jacques," murmured Defarge, to
          him who had interrupted. "Go on!"</para>

          <para>"Good!" said the mender of roads, with an air of
          mystery. "The tall man is lost, and he is sought--how
          many months? Nine, ten, eleven?"</para>

          <para>"No matter, the number," said Defarge. "He is well
          hidden, but at last he is unluckily found. Go on!"</para>

          <para>"I am again at work upon the hill-side, and the sun
          is again about to go to bed. I am collecting my tools to
          descend to my cottage down in the village below, where it
          is already dark, when I raise my eyes, and see coming
          over the hill six soldiers. In the midst of them is a
          tall man with his arms bound--tied to his sides--like
          this!"</para>

          <para>With the aid of his indispensable cap, he
          represented a man with his elbows bound fast at his hips,
          with cords that were knotted behind him.</para>

          <para>"I stand aside, messieurs, by my heap of stones, to
          see the soldiers and their prisoner pass (for it is a
          solitary road, that, where any spectacle is well worth
          looking at), and at first, as they approach, I see no
          more than that they are six soldiers with a tall man
          bound, and that they are almost black to my sight--except
          on the side of the sun going to bed, where they have a
          red edge, messieurs. Also, I see that their long shadows
          are on the hollow ridge on the opposite side of the road,
          and are on the hill above it, and are like the shadows of
          giants. Also, I see that they are covered with dust, and
          that the dust moves with them as they come, tramp, tramp!
          But when they advance quite near to me, I recognise the
          tall man, and he recognises me. Ah, but he would be well
          content to precipitate himself over the hill-side once
          again, as on the evening when he and I first encountered,
          close to the same spot!"</para>

          <para>He described it as if he were there, and it was
          evident that he saw it vividly; perhaps he had not seen
          much in his life.</para>

          <para>"I do not show the soldiers that I recognise the
          tall man; he does not show the soldiers that he
          recognises me; we do it, and we know it, with our eyes.
          `Come on!' says the chief of that company, pointing to
          the village, `bring him fast to his tomb!' and they bring
          him faster. I follow. His arms are swelled because of
          being bound so tight, his wooden shoes are large and
          clumsy, and he is lame. Because he is lame, and
          consequently slow, they drive him with their guns--like
          this!"</para>

          <para>He imitated the action of a man's being impelled
          forward by the butt-ends of muskets.</para>

          <para>"As they descend the hill like madmen running a
          race, he falls. They laugh and pick him up again. His
          face is bleeding and covered with dust, but he cannot
          touch it; thereupon they laugh again. They bring him into
          the village; all the village runs to look; they take him
          past the mill, and up to the prison; all the village sees
          the prison gate open in the darkness of the night, and
          swallow him--like this!"</para>

          <para>He opened his mouth as wide as he could, and shut
          it with a sounding snap of his teeth. Observant of his
          unwillingness to mar the effect by opening it again,
          Defarge said, "Go on, Jacques."</para>

          <para>"All the village," pursued the mender of roads, on
          tiptoe and in a low voice, "withdraws; all the village
          whispers by the fountain; all the village sleeps; all the
          village dreams of that unhappy one, within the locks and
          bars of the prison on the crag, and never to come out of
          it, except to perish. In the morning, with my tools upon
          my shoulder, eating my morsel of black bread as I go, I
          make a circuit by the prison, on my way to my work. There
          I see him, high up, behind the bars of a lofty iron cage,
          bloody and dusty as last night, looking through. He has
          no hand free, to wave to me; I dare not call to him; he
          regards me like a dead man."</para>

          <para>Defarge and the three glanced darkly at one
          another. The looks of all of them were dark, repressed,
          and revengeful, as they listened to the countryman's
          story; the manner of all of them, while it was secret,
          was authoritative too. They had the air of a rough
          tribunal; Jacques One and Two sitting on the old
          pallet-bed, each with his chin resting on his hand, and
          his eyes intent on the road-mender; Jacques Three,
          equally intent, on one knee behind them, with his
          agitated hand always gliding over the network of fine
          nerves about his mouth and nose; Defarge standing between
          them and the narrator, whom he had stationed in the light
          of the window, by turns looking from him to them, and
          from them to him.</para>

          <para>"Go on, Jacques," said Defarge.</para>

          <para>"He remains up there in his iron cage some days.
          The village looks at him by stealth, for it is afraid.
          But it always looks up, from a distance, at the prison on
          the crag; and in the evening, when the work of the day is
          achieved and it assembles to gossip at the fountain, all
          faces are turned towards the prison. Formerly, they were
          turned towards the posting-house; now, they are turned
          towards the prison. They whisper at the fountain, that
          although condemned to death he will not be executed; they
          say that petitions have been presented in Paris, showing
          that he was enraged and made mad by the death of his
          child; they say that a petition has been presented to the
          King himself. What do I know? It is possible. Perhaps
          yes, perhaps no."</para>

          <para>"Listen then, Jacques," Number One of that name
          sternly interposed. "Know that a petition was presented
          to the King and Queen. All here, yourself excepted, saw
          the King take it, in his carriage in the street, sitting
          beside the Queen. It is Defarge whom you see here, who,
          at the hazard of his life, darted out before the horses,
          with the petition in his hand."</para>

          <para>"And once again listen, Jacques!" said the kneeling
          Number Three: his fingers ever wandering over and over
          those fine nerves, with a strikingly greedy air, as if he
          hungered for something--that was neither food nor drink;
          "the guard, horse and foot, surrounded the petitioner,
          and struck him blows. You hear?"</para>

          <para>"I hear, messieurs."</para>

          <para>"Go on then," said Defarge.</para>

          <para>"Again; on the other hand, they whisper at the
          fountain," resumed the countryman, "that he is brought
          down into our country to be executed on the spot, and
          that he will very certainly be executed. They even
          whisper that because he has slain Monseigneur, and
          because Monseigneur was the father of his
          tenants--serfs--what you will--he will be executed as a
          parricide. One old man says at the fountain, that his
          right hand, armed with the knife, will be burnt off
          before his face; that, into wounds which will be made in
          his arms, his breast, and his legs, there will be poured
          boiling oil, melted lead, hot resin, wax, and sulphur;
          finally, that he will be torn limb from limb by four
          strong horses. That old man says, all this was actually
          done to a prisoner who made an attempt on the life of the
          late King, Louis Fifteen. But how do I know if he lies? I
          am not a scholar."</para>

          <para>"Listen once again then, Jacques!" said the man
          with the restless hand and the craving air. "The name of
          that prisoner was Damiens, and it was all done in open
          day, in the open streets of this city of Paris; and
          nothing was more noticed in the vast concourse that saw
          it done, than the crowd of ladies of quality and fashion,
          who were full of eager attention to the last--to the
          last, Jacques, prolonged until nightfall, when he had
          lost two legs and an arm, and still breathed! And it was
          done--why, how old are you?"</para>

          <para>"Thirty-five," said the mender of roads, who looked
          sixty.</para>

          <para>"It was done when you were more than ten years old;
          you might have seen it."</para>

          <para>"Enough!" said Defarge, with grim impatience. "Long
          live the Devil! Go on."</para>

          <para>"Well! Some whisper this, some whisper that; they
          speak of nothing else; even the fountain appears to fall
          to that tune. At length, on Sunday night when all the
          village is asleep, come soldiers, winding down from the
          prison, and their guns ring on the stones of the little
          street. Workmen dig, workmen hammer, soldiers laugh and
          sing; in the morning, by the fountain, there is raised a
          gallows forty feet high, poisoning the water."</para>

          <para>The mender of roads looked THROUGH rather than AT
          the low ceiling, and pointed as if he saw the gallows
          somewhere in the sky.</para>

          <para>"All work is stopped, all assemble there, nobody
          leads the cows out, the cows are there with the rest. At
          midday, the roll of drums. Soldiers have marched into the
          prison in the night, and he is in the midst of many
          soldiers. He is bound as before, and in his mouth there
          is a gag--tied so, with a tight string, making him look
          almost as if he laughed." He suggested it, by creasing
          his face with his two thumbs, from the corners of his
          mouth to his ears. "On the top of the gallows is fixed
          the knife, blade upwards, with its point in the air. He
          is hanged there forty feet high--and is left hanging,
          poisoning the water."</para>

          <para>They looked at one another, as he used his blue cap
          to wipe his face, on which the perspiration had started
          afresh while he recalled the spectacle.</para>

          <para>"It is frightful, messieurs. How can the women and
          the children draw water! Who can gossip of an evening,
          under that shadow! Under it, have I said? When I left the
          village, Monday evening as the sun was going to bed, and
          looked back from the hill, the shadow struck across the
          church, across the mill, across the prison--seemed to
          strike across the earth, messieurs, to where the sky
          rests upon it!"</para>

          <para>The hungry man gnawed one of his fingers as he
          looked at the other three, and his finger quivered with
          the craving that was on him.</para>

          <para>"That's all, messieurs. I left at sunset (as I had
          been warned to do), and I walked on, that night and half
          next day, until I met (as I was warned I should) this
          comrade. With him, I came on, now riding and now walking,
          through the rest of yesterday and through last night. And
          here you see me!"</para>

          <para>After a gloomy silence, the first Jacques said,
          "Good! You have acted and recounted faithfully. Will you
          wait for us a little, outside the door?"</para>

          <para>"Very willingly," said the mender of roads. Whom
          Defarge escorted to the top of the stairs, and, leaving
          seated there, returned.</para>

          <para>The three had risen, and their heads were together
          when he came back to the garret.</para>

          <para>"How say you, Jacques?" demanded Number One. "To be
          registered?"</para>

          <para>"To be registered, as doomed to destruction,"
          returned Defarge.</para>

          <para>"Magnificent!" croaked the man with the
          craving.</para>

          <para>"The chateau, and all the race?" inquired the
          first.</para>

          <para>"The chateau and all the race," returned Defarge.
          "Extermination."</para>

          <para>The hungry man repeated, in a rapturous croak,
          "Magnificent!" and began gnawing another finger.</para>

          <para>"Are you sure," asked Jacques Two, of Defarge,
          "that no embarrassment can arise from our manner of
          keeping the register? Without doubt it is safe, for no
          one beyond ourselves can decipher it; but shall we always
          be able to decipher it--or, I ought to say, will
          she?"</para>

          <para>"Jacques," returned Defarge, drawing himself up,
          "if madame my wife undertook to keep the register in her
          memory alone, she would not lose a word of it--not a
          syllable of it. Knitted, in her own stitches and her own
          symbols, it will always be as plain to her as the sun.
          Confide in Madame Defarge. It would be easier for the
          weakest poltroon that lives, to erase himself from
          existence, than to erase one letter of his name or crimes
          from the knitted register of Madame Defarge."</para>

          <para>There was a murmur of confidence and approval, and
          then the man who hungered, asked: "Is this rustic to be
          sent back soon? I hope so. He is very simple; is he not a
          little dangerous?"</para>

          <para>"He knows nothing," said Defarge; "at least nothing
          more than would easily elevate himself to a gallows of
          the same height. I charge myself with him; let him remain
          with me; I will take care of him, and set him on his
          road. He wishes to see the fine world--the King, the
          Queen, and Court; let him see them on Sunday."</para>

          <para>"What?" exclaimed the hungry man, staring. "Is it a
          good sign, that he wishes to see Royalty and
          Nobility?"</para>

          <para>"Jacques," said Defarge; "judiciously show a cat
          milk, if you wish her to thirst for it. Judiciously show
          a dog his natural prey, if you wish him to bring it down
          one day."</para>

          <para>Nothing more was said, and the mender of roads,
          being found already dozing on the topmost stair, was
          advised to lay himself down on the pallet-bed and take
          some rest. He needed no persuasion, and was soon
          asleep.</para>

          <para>Worse quarters than Defarge's wine-shop, could
          easily have been found in Paris for a provincial slave of
          that degree. Saving for a mysterious dread of madame by
          which he was constantly haunted, his life was very new
          and agreeable. But, madame sat all day at her counter, so
          expressly unconscious of him, and so particularly
          determined not to perceive that his being there had any
          connection with anything below the surface, that he shook
          in his wooden shoes whenever his eye lighted on her. For,
          he contended with himself that it was impossible to
          foresee what that lady might pretend next; and he felt
          assured that if she should take it into her brightly
          ornamented head to pretend that she had seen him do a
          murder and afterwards flay the victim, she would
          infallibly go through with it until the play was played
          out.</para>

          <para>Therefore, when Sunday came, the mender of roads
          was not enchanted (though he said he was) to find that
          madame was to accompany monsieur and himself to
          Versailles. It was additionally disconcerting to have
          madame knitting all the way there, in a public
          conveyance; it was additionally disconcerting yet, to
          have madame in the crowd in the afternoon, still with her
          knitting in her hands as the crowd waited to see the
          carriage of the King and Queen.</para>

          <para>"You work hard, madame," said a man near
          her.</para>

          <para>"Yes," answered Madame Defarge; "I have a good deal
          to do."</para>

          <para>"What do you make, madame?"</para>

          <para>"Many things."</para>

          <para>"For instance--"</para>

          <para>"For instance," returned Madame Defarge,
          composedly, "shrouds."</para>

          <para>The man moved a little further away, as soon as he
          could, and the mender of roads fanned himself with his
          blue cap: feeling it mightily close and oppressive. If he
          needed a King and Queen to restore him, he was fortunate
          in having his remedy at hand; for, soon the large-faced
          King and the fair-faced Queen came in their golden coach,
          attended by the shining Bull's Eye of their Court, a
          glittering multitude of laughing ladies and fine lords;
          and in jewels and silks and powder and splendour and
          elegantly spurning figures and handsomely disdainful
          faces of both sexes, the mender of roads bathed himself,
          so much to his temporary intoxication, that he cried Long
          live the King, Long live the Queen, Long live everybody
          and everything! as if he had never heard of ubiquitous
          Jacques in his time. Then, there were gardens,
          courtyards, terraces, fountains, green banks, more King
          and Queen, more Bull's Eye,more lords and ladies, more
          Long live they all! until he absolutely wept with
          sentiment. During the whole of this scene, which lasted
          some three hours, he had plenty of shouting and weeping
          and sentimental company, and throughout Defarge held him
          by the collar, as if to restrain him from flying at the
          objects of his brief devotion and tearing them to
          pieces.</para>

          <para>"Bravo!" said Defarge, clapping him on the back
          when it was over, like a patron; "you are a good
          boy!"</para>

          <para>The mender of roads was now coming to himself, and
          was mistrustful of having made a mistake in his late
          demonstrations; but no.</para>

          <para>"You are the fellow we want," said Defarge, in his
          ear; "you make these fools believe that it will last for
          ever. Then, they are the more insolent, and it is the
          nearer ended."</para>

          <para>"Hey!" cried the mender of roads, reflectively;
          "that's true."</para>

          <para>"These fools know nothing. While they despise your
          breath, and would stop it for ever and ever, in you or in
          a hundred like you rather than in one of their own horses
          or dogs, they only know what your breath tells them. Let
          it deceive them, then, a little longer; it cannot deceive
          them too much."</para>

          <para>Madame Defarge looked superciliously at the client,
          and nodded in confirmation.</para>

          <para>"As to you," said she, "you would shout and shed
          tears for anything, if it made a show and a noise. Say!
          Would you not?"</para>

          <para>"Truly, madame, I think so. For the moment."</para>

          <para>"If you were shown a great heap of dolls, and were
          set upon them to pluck them to pieces and despoil them
          for your own advantage, you would pick out the richest
          and gayest. Say! Would you not?"</para>

          <para>"Truly yes, madame."</para>

          <para>"Yes. And if you were shown a flock of birds,
          unable to fly, and were set upon them to strip them of
          their feathers for your own advantage, you would set upon
          the birds of the finest feathers; would you not?"</para>

          <para>"It is true, madame."</para>

          <para>"You have seen both dolls and birds to-day," said
          Madame Defarge, with a wave of her hand towards the place
          where they had last been apparent; "now, go home!"</para>
        </chapter>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>XVI</chapnum>

            <title>Still Knitting</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>Madame Defarge and monsieur her husband returned
          amicably to the bosom of Saint Antoine, while a speck in
          a blue cap toiled through the darkness, and through the
          dust, and down the weary miles of avenue by the wayside,
          slowly tending towards that point of the compass where
          the chateau of Monsieur the Marquis, now in his grave,
          listened to the whispering trees. Such ample leisure had
          the stone faces, now, for listening to the trees and to
          the fountain, that the few village scarecrows who, in
          their quest for herbs to eat and fragments of dead stick
          to burn, strayed within sight of the great stone
          courtyard and terrace staircase, had it borne in upon
          their starved fancy that the expression of the faces was
          altered. A rumour just lived in the village--had a faint
          and bare existence there, as its people had--that when
          the knife struck home, the faces changed, from faces of
          pride to faces of anger and pain; also, that when that
          dangling figure was hauled up forty feet above the
          fountain, they changed again, and bore a cruel look of
          being avenged, which they would henceforth bear for ever.
          In the stone face over the great window of the
          bed-chamber where the murder was done, two fine dints
          were pointed out in the sculptured nose, which everybody
          recognised, and which nobody had seen of old; and on the
          scarce occasions when two or three ragged peasants
          emerged from the crowd to take a hurried peep at Monsieur
          the Marquis petrified, a skinny finger would not have
          pointed to it for a minute, before they all started away
          among the moss and leaves, like the more fortunate hares
          who could find a living there.</para>

          <para>Chateau and hut, stone face and dangling figure,
          the red stain on the stone floor, and the pure water in
          the village well--thousands of acres of land--a whole
          province of France--all France itself--lay under the
          night sky, concentrated into a faint hair-breadth line.
          So does a whole world, with all its greatnesses and
          littlenesses, lie in a twinkling star. And as mere human
          knowledge can split a ray of light and analyse the manner
          of its composition, so, sublimer intelligences may read
          in the feeble shining of this earth of ours, every
          thought and act, every vice and virtue, of every
          responsible creature on it.</para>

          <para>The Defarges, husband and wife, came lumbering
          under the starlight, in their public vehicle, to that
          gate of Paris whereunto their journey naturally tended.
          There was the usual stoppage at the barrier guardhouse,
          and the usual lanterns came glancing forth for the usual
          examination and inquiry. Monsieur Defarge alighted;
          knowing one or two of the soldiery there, and one of the
          police. The latter he was intimate with, and
          affectionately embraced.</para>

          <para>When Saint Antoine had again enfolded the Defarges
          in his dusky wings, and they, having finally alighted
          near the Saint's boundaries, were picking their way on
          foot through the black mud and offal of his streets,
          Madame Defarge spoke to her husband:</para>

          <para>"Say then, my friend; what did Jacques of the
          police tell thee?"</para>

          <para>"Very little to-night, but all he knows. There is
          another spy commissioned for our quarter. There may be
          many more, for all that he can say, but he knows of
          one."</para>

          <para>"Eh well!" said Madame Defarge, raising her
          eyebrows with a cool business air. "It is necessary to
          register him. How do they call that man?"</para>

          <para>"He is English."</para>

          <para>"So much the better. His name?"</para>

          <para>"Barsad," said Defarge, making it French by
          pronunciation. But, he had been so careful to get it
          accurately, that he then spelt it with perfect
          correctness.</para>

          <para>"Barsad," repeated madame. "Good. Christian
          name?"</para>

          <para>"John."</para>

          <para>"John Barsad," repeated madame, after murmuring it
          once to herself. "Good. His appearance; is it
          known?"</para>

          <para>"Age, about forty years; height, about five feet
          nine; black hair; complexion dark; generally, rather
          handsome visage; eyes dark, face thin, long, and sallow;
          nose aquiline, but not straight, having a peculiar
          inclination towards the left cheek; expression,
          therefore, sinister."</para>

          <para>"Eh my faith. It is a portrait!" said madame,
          laughing. "He shall be registered to-morrow."</para>

          <para>They turned into the wine-shop, which was closed
          (for it was midnight), and where Madame Defarge
          immediately took her post at her desk, counted the small
          moneys that had been taken during her absence, examined
          the stock, went through the entries in the book, made
          other entries of her own, checked the serving man in
          every possible way, and finally dismissed him to bed.
          Then she turned out the contents of the bowl of money for
          the second time, and began knotting them up in her
          handkerchief, in a chain of separate knots, for safe
          keeping through the night. All this while, Defarge, with
          his pipe in his mouth, walked up and down, complacently
          admiring, but never interfering; in which condition,
          indeed, as to the business and his domestic affairs, he
          walked up and down through life.</para>

          <para>The night was hot, and the shop, close shut and
          surrounded by so foul a neighbourhood, was ill-smelling.
          Monsieur Defarge's olfactory sense was by no means
          delicate, but the stock of wine smelt much stronger than
          it ever tasted, and so did the stock of rum and brandy
          and aniseed. He whiffed the compound of scents away, as
          he put down his smoked-out pipe.</para>

          <para>"You are fatigued," said madame, raising her glance
          as she knotted the money. "There are only the usual
          odours."</para>

          <para>"I am a little tired," her husband
          acknowledged.</para>

          <para>"You are a little depressed, too," said madame,
          whose quick eyes had never been so intent on the
          accounts, but they had had a ray or two for him. "Oh, the
          men, the men!"</para>

          <para>"But my dear!" began Defarge.</para>

          <para>"But my dear!" repeated madame, nodding firmly;
          "but my dear! You are faint of heart to-night, my
          dear!"</para>

          <para>"Well, then," said Defarge, as if a thought were
          wrung out of his breast, "it IS a long time."</para>

          <para>"It is a long time," repeated his wife; "and when
          is it not a long time? Vengeance and retribution require
          a long time; it is the rule."</para>

          <para>"It does not take a long time to strike a man with
          Lightning," said Defarge.</para>

          <para>"How long," demanded madame, composedly, "does it
          take to make and store the lightning? Tell me."</para>

          <para>Defarge raised his head thoughtfully, as if there
          were something in that too.</para>

          <para>"It does not take a long time," said madame, "for
          an earthquake to swallow a town. Eh well! Tell me how
          long it takes to prepare the earthquake?"</para>

          <para>"A long time, I suppose," said Defarge.</para>

          <para>"But when it is ready, it takes place, and grinds
          to pieces everything before it. In the meantime, it is
          always preparing, though it is not seen or heard. That is
          your consolation. Keep it."</para>

          <para>She tied a knot with flashing eyes, as if it
          throttled a foe.</para>

          <para>"I tell thee," said madame, extending her right
          hand, for emphasis, "that although it is a long time on
          the road, it is on the road and coming. I tell thee it
          never retreats, and never stops. I tell thee it is always
          advancing. Look around and consider the Eves of all the
          world that we know, consider the faces of all the world
          that we know, consider the rage and discontent to which
          the Jacquerie addresses itself with more and more of
          certainty every hour. Can such things last? Bah! I mock
          you."</para>

          <para>"My brave wife," returned Defarge, standing before
          her with his head a little bent, and his hands clasped at
          his back, like a docile and attentive pupil before his
          catechist, "I do not question all this. But it has lasted
          a long time, and it is possible--you know well, my wife,
          it is possible--that it may not come, during our
          lives."</para>

          <para>"Eh well! How then?" demanded madame, tying another
          knot, as if there were another enemy strangled.</para>

          <para>"Well!" said Defarge, with a half complaining and
          half apologetic shrug. "We shall not see the
          triumph."</para>

          <para>"We shall have helped it," returned madame, with
          her extended hand in strong action. "Nothing that we do,
          is done in vain. I believe, with all my soul, that we
          shall see the triumph. But even if not, even if I knew
          certainly not, show me the neck of an aristocrat and
          tyrant, and still I would--"</para>

          <para>Then madame, with her teeth set, tied a very
          terrible knot indeed.</para>

          <para>"Hold!" cried Defarge, reddening a little as if he
          felt charged with cowardice; "I too, my dear, will stop
          at nothing."</para>

          <para>"Yes! But it is your weakness that you sometimes
          need to see your victim and your opportunity, to sustain
          you. Sustain yourself without that. When the time comes,
          let loose a tiger and a devil; but wait for the time with
          the tiger and the devil chained--not shown--yet always
          ready."</para>

          <para>Madame enforced the conclusion of this piece of
          advice by striking her little counter with her chain of
          money as if she knocked its brains out, and then
          gathering the heavy handkerchief under her arm in a
          serene manner, and observing that it was time to go to
          bed.</para>

          <para>Next noontide saw the admirable woman in her usual
          place in the wine-shop, knitting away assiduously. A rose
          lay beside her, and if she now and then glanced at the
          flower, it was with no infraction of her usual
          preoccupied air. There were a few customers, drinking or
          not drinking, standing or seated, sprinkled about. The
          day was very hot, and heaps of flies, who were extending
          their inquisitive and adventurous perquisitions into all
          the glutinous little glasses near madame, fell dead at
          the bottom. Their decease made no impression on the other
          flies out promenading, who looked at them in the coolest
          manner (as if they themselves were elephants, or
          something as far removed), until they met the same fate.
          Curious to consider how heedless flies are!--perhaps they
          thought as much at Court that sunny summer day.</para>

          <para>A figure entering at the door threw a shadow on
          Madame Defarge which she felt to be a new one. She laid
          down her knitting, and began to pin her rose in her
          head-dress, before she looked at the figure.</para>

          <para>It was curious. The moment Madame Defarge took up
          the rose, the customers ceased talking, and began
          gradually to drop out of the wine-shop.</para>

          <para>"Good day, madame," said the new-comer.</para>

          <para>"Good day, monsieur."</para>

          <para>She said it aloud, but added to herself, as she
          resumed her knitting: "Hah! Good day, age about forty,
          height about five feet nine, black hair, generally rather
          handsome visage, complexion dark, eyes dark, thin, long
          and sallow face, aquiline nose but not straight, having a
          peculiar inclination towards the left cheek which imparts
          a sinister expression! Good day, one and all!"</para>

          <para>"Have the goodness to give me a little glass of old
          cognac, and a mouthful of cool fresh water,
          madame."</para>

          <para>Madame complied with a polite air.</para>

          <para>"Marvellous cognac this, madame!"</para>

          <para>It was the first time it had ever been so
          complemented, and Madame Defarge knew enough of its
          antecedents to know better. She said, however, that the
          cognac was flattered, and took up her knitting. The
          visitor watched her fingers for a few moments, and took
          the opportunity of observing the place in general.</para>

          <para>"You knit with great skill, madame."</para>

          <para>"I am accustomed to it."</para>

          <para>"A pretty pattern too!"</para>

          <para>"YOU think so?" said madame, looking at him with a
          smile.</para>

          <para>"Decidedly. May one ask what it is for?"</para>

          <para>"Pastime," said madame, still looking at him with a
          smile while her fingers moved nimbly.</para>

          <para>"Not for use?"</para>

          <para>"That depends. I may find a use for it one day. If
          I do--Well," said madame, drawing a breath and nodding
          her head with a stem kind of coquetry, "I'll use
          it!"</para>

          <para>It was remarkable; but, the taste of Saint Antoine
          seemed to be decidedly opposed to a rose on the
          head-dress of Madame Defarge. Two men had entered
          separately, and had been about to order drink, when,
          catching sight of that novelty, they faltered, made a
          pretence of looking about as if for some friend who was
          not there, and went away. Nor, of those who had been
          there when this visitor entered, was there one left. They
          had all dropped off. The spy had kept his eyes open, but
          had been able to detect no sign. They had lounged away in
          a poverty-stricken, purposeless, accidental manner, quite
          natural and unimpeachable.</para>

          <para>"JOHN," thought madame, checking off her work as
          her fingers knitted, and her eyes looked at the stranger.
          "Stay long enough, and I shall knit `BARSAD' before you
          go."</para>

          <para>"You have a husband, madame?"</para>

          <para>"I have."</para>

          <para>"Children?"</para>

          <para>"No children."</para>

          <para>"Business seems bad?"</para>

          <para>"Business is very bad; the people are so
          poor."</para>

          <para>"Ah, the unfortunate, miserable people! So
          oppressed, too--as you say."</para>

          <para>"As YOU say," madame retorted, correcting him, and
          deftly knitting an extra something into his name that
          boded him no good.</para>

          <para>"Pardon me; certainly it was I who said so, but you
          naturally think so. Of course."</para>

          <para>"_I_ think?" returned madame, in a high voice. "I
          and my husband have enough to do to keep this wine-shop
          open, without thinking. All we think, here, is how to
          live. That is the subject WE think of, and it gives us,
          from morning to night, enough to think about, without
          embarrassing our heads concerning others. _I_ think for
          others? No, no."</para>

          <para>The spy, who was there to pick up any crumbs he
          could find or make, did not allow his baffled state to
          express itself in his sinister face; but, stood with an
          air of gossiping gallantry, leaning his elbow on Madame
          Defarge's little counter, and occasionally sipping his
          cognac.</para>

          <para>"A bad business this, madame, of Gaspard's
          execution. Ah! the poor Gaspard!" With a sigh of great
          compassion.</para>

          <para>"My faith!" returned madame, coolly and lightly,
          "if people use knives for such purposes, they have to pay
          for it. He knew beforehand what the price of his luxury
          was; he has paid the price."</para>

          <para>"I believe," said the spy, dropping his soft voice
          to a tone that invited confidence, and expressing an
          injured revolutionary susceptibility in every muscle of
          his wicked face: "I believe there is much compassion and
          anger in this neighbourhood, touching the poor fellow?
          Between ourselves."</para>

          <para>"Is there?" asked madame, vacantly.</para>

          <para>"Is there not?"</para>

          <para>"--Here is my husband!" said Madame Defarge.</para>

          <para>As the keeper of the wine-shop entered at the door,
          the spy saluted him by touching his hat, and saying, with
          an engaging smile, "Good day, Jacques!" Defarge stopped
          short, and stared at him.</para>

          <para>"Good day, Jacques!" the spy repeated; with not
          quite so much confidence, or quite so easy a smile under
          the stare.</para>

          <para>"You deceive yourself, monsieur," returned the
          keeper of the wine-shop. "You mistake me for another.
          That is not my name. I am Ernest Defarge."</para>

          <para>"It is all the same," said the spy, airily, but
          discomfited too: "good day!"</para>

          <para>"Good day!" answered Defarge, drily.</para>

          <para>"I was saying to madame, with whom I had the
          pleasure of chatting when you entered, that they tell me
          there is--and no wonder!--much sympathy and anger in
          Saint Antoine, touching the unhappy fate of poor
          Gaspard."</para>

          <para>"No one has told me so," said Defarge, shaking his
          head. "I know nothing of it."</para>

          <para>Having said it, he passed behind the little
          counter, and stood with his hand on the back of his
          wife's chair, looking over that barrier at the person to
          whom they were both opposed, and whom either of them
          would have shot with the greatest satisfaction.</para>

          <para>The spy, well used to his business, did not change
          his unconscious attitude, but drained his little glass of
          cognac, took a sip of fresh water, and asked for another
          glass of cognac. Madame Defarge poured it out for him,
          took to her knitting again, and hummed a little song over
          it.</para>

          <para>"You seem to know this quarter well; that is to
          say, better than I do?" observed Defarge.</para>

          <para>"Not at all, but I hope to know it better. I am so
          profoundly interested in its miserable
          inhabitants."</para>

          <para>"Hah!" muttered Defarge.</para>

          <para>"The pleasure of conversing with you, Monsieur
          Defarge, recalls to me," pursued the spy, "that I have
          the honour of cherishing some interesting associations
          with your name."</para>

          <para>"Indeed!" said Defarge, with much
          indifference.</para>

          <para>"Yes, indeed. When Doctor Manette was released,
          you, his old domestic, had the charge of him, I know. He
          was delivered to you. You see I am informed of the
          circumstances?"</para>

          <para>"Such is the fact, certainly," said Defarge. He had
          had it conveyed to him, in an accidental touch of his
          wife's elbow as she knitted and warbled, that he would do
          best to answer, but always with brevity.</para>

          <para>"It was to you," said the spy, "that his daughter
          came; and it was from your care that his daughter took
          him, accompanied by a neat brown monsieur; how is he
          called?--in a little wig--Lorry--of the bank of Tellson
          and Company--over to England."</para>

          <para>"Such is the fact," repeated Defarge.</para>

          <para>"Very interesting remembrances!" said the spy. "I
          have known Doctor Manette and his daughter, in
          England."</para>

          <para>"Yes?" said Defarge.</para>

          <para>"You don't hear much about them now?" said the
          spy.</para>

          <para>"No," said Defarge.</para>

          <para>"In effect," madame struck in, looking up from her
          work and her little song, "we never hear about them. We
          received the news of their safe arrival, and perhaps
          another letter, or perhaps two; but, since then, they
          have gradually taken their road in life--we, ours--and we
          have held no correspondence."</para>

          <para>"Perfectly so, madame," replied the spy. "She is
          going to be married."</para>

          <para>"Going?" echoed madame. "She was pretty enough to
          have been married long ago. You English are cold, it
          seems to me."</para>

          <para>"Oh! You know I am English."</para>

          <para>"I perceive your tongue is," returned madame; "and
          what the tongue is, I suppose the man is."</para>

          <para>He did not take the identification as a compliment;
          but he made the best of it, and turned it off with a
          laugh. After sipping his cognac to the end, he
          added:</para>

          <para>"Yes, Miss Manette is going to be married. But not
          to an Englishman; to one who, like herself, is French by
          birth. And speaking of Gaspard (ah, poor Gaspard! It was
          cruel, cruel!), it is a curious thing that she is going
          to marry the nephew of Monsieur the Marquis, for whom
          Gaspard was exalted to that height of so many feet; in
          other words, the present Marquis. But he lives unknown in
          England, he is no Marquis there; he is Mr. Charles
          Darnay. D'Aulnais is the name of his mother's
          family."</para>

          <para>Madame Defarge knitted steadily, but the
          intelligence had a palpable effect upon her husband. Do
          what he would, behind the little counter, as to the
          striking of a light and the lighting of his pipe, he was
          troubled, and his hand was not trustworthy. The spy would
          have been no spy if he had failed to see it, or to record
          it in his mind.</para>

          <para>Having made, at least, this one hit, whatever it
          might prove to be worth, and no customers coming in to
          help him to any other, Mr. Barsad paid for what he had
          drunk, and took his leave: taking occasion to say, in a
          genteel manner, before he departed, that he looked
          forward to the pleasure of seeing Monsieur and Madame
          Defarge again. For some minutes after he had emerged into
          the outer presence of Saint Antoine, the husband and wife
          remained exactly as he had left them, lest he should come
          back.</para>

          <para>"Can it be true," said Defarge, in a low voice,
          looking down at his wife as he stood smoking with his
          hand on the back of her chair: "what he has said of
          Ma'amselle Manette?"</para>

          <para>"As he has said it," returned madame, lifting her
          eyebrows a little, "it is probably false. But it may be
          true."</para>

          <para>"If it is--" Defarge began, and stopped.</para>

          <para>"If it is?" repeated his wife.</para>

          <para>"--And if it does come, while we live to see it
          triumph--I hope, for her sake, Destiny will keep her
          husband out of France."</para>

          <para>"Her husband's destiny," said Madame Defarge, with
          her usual composure, "will take him where he is to go,
          and will lead him to the end that is to end him. That is
          all I know."</para>

          <para>"But it is very strange--now, at least, is it not
          very strange"--said Defarge, rather pleading with his
          wife to induce her to admit it, "that, after all our
          sympathy for Monsieur her father, and herself, her
          husband's name should be proscribed under your hand at
          this moment, by the side of that infernal dog's who has
          just left us?"</para>

          <para>"Stranger things than that will happen when it does
          come," answered madame. "I have them both here, of a
          certainty; and they are both here for their merits; that
          is enough."</para>

          <para>She roiled up her knitting when she had said those
          words, and presently took the rose out of the
          handkerchief that was wound about her head. Either Saint
          Antoine had an instinctive sense that the objectionable
          decoration was gone, or Saint Antoine was on the watch
          for its disappearance; howbeit, the Saint took courage to
          lounge in, very shortly afterwards, and the wine-shop
          recovered its habitual aspect.</para>

          <para>In the evening, at which season of all others Saint
          Antoine turned himself inside out, and sat on door-steps
          and window-ledges, and came to the corners of vile
          streets and courts, for a breath of air, Madame Defarge
          with her work in her hand was accustomed to pass from
          place to place and from group to group: a
          Missionary--there were many like her--such as the world
          will do well never to breed again. All the women knitted.
          They knitted worthless things; but, the mechanical work
          was a mechanical substitute for eating and drinking; the
          hands moved for the jaws and the digestive apparatus: if
          the bony fingers had been still, the stomachs would have
          been more famine-pinched.</para>

          <para>But, as the fingers went, the eyes went, and the
          thoughts. And as Madame Defarge moved on from group to
          group, all three went quicker and fiercer among every
          little knot of women that she had spoken with, and left
          behind.</para>

          <para>Her husband smoked at his door, looking after her
          with admiration. "A great woman," said he, "a strong
          woman, a grand woman, a frightfully grand woman!"</para>

          <para>Darkness closed around, and then came the ringing
          of church bells and the distant beating of the military
          drums in the Palace Courtyard, as the women sat knitting,
          knitting. Darkness encompassed them. Another darkness was
          closing in as surely, when the church bells, then ringing
          pleasantly in many an airy steeple over France, should be
          melted into thundering cannon; when the military drums
          should be beating to drown a wretched voice, that night
          all potent as the voice of Power and Plenty, Freedom and
          Life. So much was closing in about the women who sat
          knitting, knitting, that they their very selves were
          closing in around a structure yet unbuilt, where they
          were to sit knitting, knitting, counting dropping
          heads.</para>
        </chapter>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>XVII</chapnum>

            <title>One Night</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>Never did the sun go down with a brighter glory on
          the quiet corner in Soho, than one memorable evening when
          the Doctor and his daughter sat under the plane-tree
          together. Never did the moon rise with a milder radiance
          over great London, than on that night when it found them
          still seated under the tree, and shone upon their faces
          through its leaves.</para>

          <para>Lucie was to be married to-morrow. She had reserved
          this last evening for her father, and they sat alone
          under the plane-tree.</para>

          <para>"You are happy, my dear father?"</para>

          <para>"Quite, my child."</para>

          <para>They had said little, though they had been there a
          long time. When it was yet light enough to work and read,
          she had neither engaged herself in her usual work, nor
          had she read to him. She had employed herself in both
          ways, at his side under the tree, many and many a time;
          but, this time was not quite like any other, and nothing
          could make it so.</para>

          <para>"And I am very happy to-night, dear father. I am
          deeply happy in the love that Heaven has so blessed--my
          love for Charles, and Charles's love for me. But, if my
          life were not to be still consecrated to you, or if my
          marriage were so arranged as that it would part us, even
          by the length of a few of these streets, I should be more
          unhappy and self-reproachful now than I can tell you.
          Even as it is--"</para>

          <para>Even as it was, she could not command her
          voice.</para>

          <para>In the sad moonlight, she clasped him by the neck,
          and laid her face upon his breast. In the moonlight which
          is always sad, as the light of the sun itself is--as the
          light called human life is--at its coming and its
          going.</para>

          <para>"Dearest dear! Can you tell me, this last time,
          that you feel quite, quite sure, no new affections of
          mine, and no new duties of mine, will ever interpose
          between us? _I_ know it well, but do you know it? In your
          own heart, do you feel quite certain?"</para>

          <para>Her father answered, with a cheerful firmness of
          conviction he could scarcely have assumed, "Quite sure,
          my darling! More than that," he added, as he tenderly
          kissed her: "my future is far brighter, Lucie, seen
          through your marriage, than it could have been--nay, than
          it ever was--without it."</para>

          <para>"If I could hope THAT, my father!--"</para>

          <para>"Believe it, love! Indeed it is so. Consider how
          natural and how plain it is, my dear, that it should be
          so. You, devoted and young, cannot fully appreciate the
          anxiety I have felt that your life should not be
          wasted--"</para>

          <para>She moved her hand towards his lips, but he took it
          in his, and repeated the word.</para>

          <para>"--wasted, my child--should not be wasted, struck
          aside from the natural order of things--for my sake. Your
          unselfishness cannot entirely comprehend how much my mind
          has gone on this; but, only ask yourself, how could my
          happiness be perfect, while yours was incomplete?"</para>

          <para>"If I had never seen Charles, my father, I should
          have been quite happy with you."</para>

          <para>He smiled at her unconscious admission that she
          would have been unhappy without Charles, having seen him;
          and replied:</para>

          <para>"My child, you did see him, and it is Charles. If
          it had not been Charles, it would have been another. Or,
          if it had been no other, I should have been the cause,
          and then the dark part of my life would have cast its
          shadow beyond myself, and would have fallen on
          you."</para>

          <para>It was the first time, except at the trial, of her
          ever hearing him refer to the period of his suffering. It
          gave her a strange and new sensation while his words were
          in her ears; and she remembered it long
          afterwards.</para>

          <para>"See!" said the Doctor of Beauvais, raising his
          hand towards the moon. "I have looked at her from my
          prison-window, when I could not bear her light. I have
          looked at her when it has been such torture to me to
          think of her shining upon what I had lost, that I have
          beaten my head against my prison-walls. I have looked at
          her, in a state so dun and lethargic, that I have thought
          of nothing but the number of horizontal lines I could
          draw across her at the full, and the number of
          perpendicular lines with which I could intersect them."
          He added in his inward and pondering manner, as he looked
          at the moon, "It was twenty either way, I remember, and
          the twentieth was difficult to squeeze in."</para>

          <para>The strange thrill with which she heard him go back
          to that time, deepened as he dwelt upon it; but, there
          was nothing to shock her in the manner of his reference.
          He only seemed to contrast his present cheerfulness and
          felicity with the dire endurance that was over.</para>

          <para>"I have looked at her, speculating thousands of
          times upon the unborn child from whom I had been rent.
          Whether it was alive. Whether it had been born alive, or
          the poor mother's shock had killed it. Whether it was a
          son who would some day avenge his father. (There was a
          time in my imprisonment, when my desire for vengeance was
          unbearable.) Whether it was a son who would never know
          his father's story; who might even live to weigh the
          possibility of his father's having disappeared of his own
          will and act. Whether it was a daughter who would grow to
          be a woman."</para>

          <para>She drew closer to him, and kissed his cheek and
          his hand.</para>

          <para>"I have pictured my daughter, to myself, as
          perfectly forgetful of me --rather, altogether ignorant
          of me, and unconscious of me. I have cast up the years of
          her age, year after year. I have seen her married to a
          man who knew nothing of my fate. I have altogether
          perished from the remembrance of the living, and in the
          next generation my place was a blank."</para>

          <para>"My father! Even to hear that you had such thoughts
          of a daughter who never existed, strikes to my heart as
          if I had been that child."</para>

          <para>"You, Lucie? It is out of the Consolation and
          restoration you have brought to me, that these
          remembrances arise, and pass between us and the moon on
          this last night.--What did I say just now?"</para>

          <para>"She knew nothing of you. She cared nothing for
          you."</para>

          <para>"So! But on other moonlight nights, when the
          sadness and the silence have touched me in a different
          way--have affected me with something as like a sorrowful
          sense of peace, as any emotion that had pain for its
          foundations could--I have imagined her as coming to me in
          my cell, and leading me out into the freedom beyond the
          fortress. I have seen her image in the moonlight often,
          as I now see you; except that I never held her in my
          arms; it stood between the little grated window and the
          door. But, you understand that that was not the child I
          am speaking of?"</para>

          <para>"The figure was not; the--the--image; the
          fancy?"</para>

          <para>"No. That was another thing. It stood before my
          disturbed sense of sight, but it never moved. The phantom
          that my mind pursued, was another and more real child. Of
          her outward appearance I know no more than that she was
          like her mother. The other had that likeness too --as you
          have--but was not the same. Can you follow me, Lucie?
          Hardly, I think? I doubt you must have been a solitary
          prisoner to understand these perplexed
          distinctions."</para>

          <para>His collected and calm manner could not prevent her
          blood from running cold, as he thus tried to anatomise
          his old condition.</para>

          <para>"In that more peaceful state, I have imagined her,
          in the moonlight, coming to me and taking me out to show
          me that the home of her married life was full of her
          loving remembrance of her lost father. My picture was in
          her room, and I was in her prayers. Her life was active,
          cheerful, useful; but my poor history pervaded it
          all."</para>

          <para>"I was that child, my father, I was not half so
          good, but in my love that was I."</para>

          <para>"And she showed me her children," said the Doctor
          of Beauvais, "and they had heard of me, and had been
          taught to pity me. When they passed a prison of the
          State, they kept far from its frowning walls, and looked
          up at its bars, and spoke in whispers. She could never
          deliver me; I imagined that she always brought me back
          after showing me such things. But then, blessed with the
          relief of tears, I fell upon my knees, and blessed
          her."</para>

          <para>"I am that child, I hope, my father. O my dear, my
          dear, will you bless me as fervently to-morrow?"</para>

          <para>"Lucie, I recall these old troubles in the reason
          that I have to-night for loving you better than words can
          tell, and thanking God for my great happiness. My
          thoughts, when they were wildest, never rose near the
          happiness that I have known with you, and that we have
          before us."</para>

          <para>He embraced her, solemnly commended her to Heaven,
          and humbly thanked Heaven for having bestowed her on him.
          By-and-bye, they went into the house.</para>

          <para>There was no one bidden to the marriage but Mr.
          Lorry; there was even to be no bridesmaid but the gaunt
          Miss Pross. The marriage was to make no change in their
          place of residence; they had been able to extend it, by
          taking to themselves the upper rooms formerly belonging
          to the apocryphal invisible lodger, and they desired
          nothing more.</para>

          <para>Doctor Manette was very cheerful at the little
          supper. They were only three at table, and Miss Pross
          made the third. He regretted that Charles was not there;
          was more than half disposed to object to the loving
          little plot that kept him away; and drank to him
          affectionately.</para>

          <para>So, the time came for him to bid Lucie good night,
          and they separated. But, in the stillness of the third
          hour of the morning, Lucie came downstairs again, and
          stole into his room; not free from unshaped fears,
          beforehand.</para>

          <para>All things, however, were in their places; all was
          quiet; and he lay asleep, his white hair picturesque on
          the untroubled pillow, and his hands lying quiet on the
          coverlet. She put her needless candle in the shadow at a
          distance, crept up to his bed, and put her lips to his;
          then, leaned over him, and looked at him.</para>

          <para>Into his handsome face, the bitter waters of
          captivity had worn; but, he covered up their tracks with
          a determination so strong, that he held the mastery of
          them even in his sleep. A more remarkable face in its
          quiet, resolute, and guarded struggle with an unseen
          assailant, was not to be beheld in all the wide dominions
          of sleep, that night.</para>

          <para>She timidly laid her hand on his dear breast, and
          put up a prayer that she might ever be as true to him as
          her love aspired to be, and as his sorrows deserved.
          Then, she withdrew her hand, and kissed his lips once
          more, and went away. So, the sunrise came, and the
          shadows of the leaves of the plane-tree moved upon his
          face, as softly as her lips had moved in praying for
          him.</para>
        </chapter>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>XVIII</chapnum>

            <title>Nine Days</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>The marriage-day was shining brightly, and they
          were ready outside the closed door of the Doctor's room,
          where he was speaking with Charles Darnay. They were
          ready to go to church; the beautiful bride, Mr. Lorry,
          and Miss Pross--to whom the event, through a gradual
          process of reconcilement to the inevitable, would have
          been one of absolute bliss, but for the yet lingering
          consideration that her brother Solomon should have been
          the bridegroom.</para>

          <para>"And so," said Mr. Lorry, who could not
          sufficiently admire the bride, and who had been moving
          round her to take in every point of her quiet, pretty
          dress; "and so it was for this, my sweet Lucie, that I
          brought you across the Channel, such a baby' Lord bless
          me' How little I thought what I was doing! How lightly I
          valued the obligation I was conferring on my friend Mr.
          Charles!"</para>

          <para>"You didn't mean it," remarked the matter-of-fact
          Miss Pross, "and therefore how could you know it?
          Nonsense!"</para>

          <para>"Really? Well; but don't cry," said the gentle Mr.
          Lorry.</para>

          <para>"I am not crying," said Miss Pross; "YOU
          are."</para>

          <para>"I, my Pross?" (By this time, Mr. Lorry dared to be
          pleasant with her, on occasion.)</para>

          <para>"You were, just now; I saw you do it, and I don't
          wonder at it. Such a present of plate as you have made
          'em, is enough to bring tears into anybody's eyes.
          There's not a fork or a spoon in the collection," said
          Miss Pross, "that I didn't cry over, last night after the
          box came, till I couldn't see it."</para>

          <para>"I am highly gratified," said Mr. Lorry, "though,
          upon my honour, I had no intention of rendering those
          trifling articles of remembrance invisible to any one.
          Dear me! This is an occasion that makes a man speculate
          on all he has lost. Dear, dear, dear! To think that there
          might have been a Mrs. Lorry, any time these fifty years
          almost!"</para>

          <para>"Not at all!" From Miss Pross.</para>

          <para>"You think there never might have been a Mrs.
          Lorry?" asked the gentleman of that name.</para>

          <para>"Pooh!" rejoined Miss Pross; "you were a bachelor
          in your cradle."</para>

          <para>"Well!" observed Mr. Lorry, beamingly adjusting his
          little wig, "that seems probable, too."</para>

          <para>"And you were cut out for a bachelor," pursued Miss
          Pross, "before you were put in your cradle."</para>

          <para>"Then, I think," said Mr. Lorry, "that I was very
          unhandsomely dealt with, and that I ought to have had a
          voice in the selection of my pattern. Enough! Now, my
          dear Lucie," drawing his arm soothingly round her waist,
          "I hear them moving in the next room, and Miss Pross and
          I, as two formal folks of business, are anxious not to
          lose the final opportunity of saying something to you
          that you wish to hear. You leave your good father, my
          dear, in hands as earnest and as loving as your own; he
          shall be taken every conceivable care of; during the next
          fortnight, while you are in Warwickshire and thereabouts,
          even Tellson's shall go to the wall (comparatively
          speaking) before him. And when, at the fortnight's end,
          he comes to join you and your beloved husband, on your
          other fortnight's trip in Wales, you shall say that we
          have sent him to you in the best health and in the
          happiest frame. Now, I hear Somebody's step coming to the
          door. Let me kiss my dear girl with an old-fashioned
          bachelor blessing, before Somebody comes to claim his
          own."</para>

          <para>For a moment, he held the fair face from him to
          look at the well-remembered expression on the forehead,
          and then laid the bright golden hair against his little
          brown wig, with a genuine tenderness and delicacy which,
          if such things be old-fashioned, were as old as
          Adam.</para>

          <para>The door of the Doctor's room opened, and he came
          out with Charles Darnay. He was so deadly pale--which had
          not been the case when they went in together--that no
          vestige of colour was to be seen in his face. But, in the
          composure of his manner he was unaltered, except that to
          the shrewd glance of Mr. Lorry it disclosed some shadowy
          indication that the old air of avoidance and dread had
          lately passed over him, like a cold wind.</para>

          <para>He gave his arm to his daughter, and took her
          down-stairs to the chariot which Mr. Lorry had hired in
          honour of the day. The rest followed in another carriage,
          and soon, in a neighbouring church, where no strange eyes
          looked on, Charles Darnay and Lucie Manette were happily
          married.</para>

          <para>Besides the glancing tears that shone among the
          smiles of the little group when it was done, some
          diamonds, very bright and sparkling, glanced on the
          bride's hand, which were newly released from the dark
          obscurity of one of Mr. Lorry's pockets. They returned
          home to breakfast, and all went well, and in due course
          the golden hair that had mingled with the poor
          shoemaker's white locks in the Paris garret, were mingled
          with them again in the morning sunlight, on the threshold
          of the door at parting.</para>

          <para>It was a hard parting, though it was not for long.
          But her father cheered her, and said at last, gently
          disengaging himself from her enfolding arms, "Take her,
          Charles! She is yours!"</para>

          <para>And her agitated hand waved to them from a chaise
          window, and she was gone.</para>

          <para>The corner being out of the way of the idle and
          curious, and the preparations having been very simple and
          few, the Doctor, Mr. Lorry, and Miss Pross, were left
          quite alone. It was when they turned into the welcome
          shade of the cool old hall, that Mr. Lorry observed a
          great change to have come over the Doctor; as if the
          golden arm uplifted there, had struck him a poisoned
          blow.</para>

          <para>He had naturally repressed much, and some revulsion
          might have been expected in him when the occasion for
          repression was gone. But, it was the old scared lost look
          that troubled Mr. Lorry; and through his absent manner of
          clasping his head and drearily wandering away into his
          own room when they got up-stairs, Mr. Lorry was reminded
          of Defarge the wine-shop keeper, and the starlight
          ride.</para>

          <para>"I think," he whispered to Miss Pross, after
          anxious consideration, "I think we had best not speak to
          him just now, or at all disturb him. I must look in at
          Tellson's; so I will go there at once and come back
          presently. Then, we will take him a ride into the
          country, and dine there, and all will be well."</para>

          <para>It was easier for Mr. Lorry to look in at
          Tellson's, than to look out of Tellson's. He was detained
          two hours. When he came back, he ascended the old
          staircase alone, having asked no question of the servant;
          going thus into the Doctor's rooms, he was stopped by a
          low sound of knocking.</para>

          <para>"Good God!" he said, with a start. "What's
          that?"</para>

          <para>Miss Pross, with a terrified face, was at his ear.
          "O me, O me! All is lost!" cried she, wringing her hands.
          "What is to be told to Ladybird? He doesn't know me, and
          is making shoes!"</para>

          <para>Mr. Lorry said what he could to calm her, and went
          himself into the Doctor's room. The bench was turned
          towards the light, as it had been when he had seen the
          shoemaker at his work before, and his head was bent down,
          and he was very busy.</para>

          <para>"Doctor Manette. My dear friend, Doctor
          Manette!"</para>

          <para>The Doctor looked at him for a moment--half
          inquiringly, half as if he were angry at being spoken
          to--and bent over his work again.</para>

          <para>He had laid aside his coat and waistcoat; his shirt
          was open at the throat, as it used to be when he did that
          work; and even the old haggard, faded surface of face had
          come back to him. He worked hard-- impatiently--as if in
          some sense of having been interrupted.</para>

          <para>Mr. Lorry glanced at the work in his hand, and
          observed that it was a shoe of the old size and shape. He
          took up another that was lying by him, and asked what it
          was.</para>

          <para>"A young lady's walking shoe," he muttered, without
          looking up. "It ought to have been finished long ago. Let
          it be."</para>

          <para>"But, Doctor Manette. Look at me!"</para>

          <para>He obeyed, in the old mechanically submissive
          manner, without pausing in his work.</para>

          <para>"You know me, my dear friend? Think again. This is
          not your proper occupation. Think, dear friend!"</para>

          <para>Nothing would induce him to speak more. He looked
          up, for an instant at a time, when he was requested to do
          so; but, no persuasion would extract a word from him. He
          worked, and worked, and worked, in silence, and words
          fell on him as they would have fallen on an echoless
          wall, or on the air. The only ray of hope that Mr. Lorry
          could discover, was, that he sometimes furtively looked
          up without being asked. In that, there seemed a faint
          expression of curiosity or perplexity--as though he were
          trying to reconcile some doubts in his mind.</para>

          <para>Two things at once impressed themselves on Mr.
          Lorry, as important above all others; the first, that
          this must be kept secret from Lucie; the second, that it
          must be kept secret from all who knew him. In conjunction
          with Miss Pross, he took immediate steps towards the
          latter precaution, by giving out that the Doctor was not
          well, and required a few days of complete rest. In aid of
          the kind deception to be practised on his daughter, Miss
          Pross was to write, describing his having been called
          away professionally, and referring to an imaginary letter
          of two or three hurried lines in his own hand,
          represented to have been addressed to her by the same
          post.</para>

          <para>These measures, advisable to be taken in any case,
          Mr. Lorry took in the hope of his coming to himself. If
          that should happen soon, he kept another course in
          reserve; which was, to have a certain opinion that he
          thought the best, on the Doctor's case.</para>

          <para>In the hope of his recovery, and of resort to this
          third course being thereby rendered practicable, Mr.
          Lorry resolved to watch him attentively, with as little
          appearance as possible of doing so. He therefore made
          arrangements to absent himself from Tellson's for the
          first time in his life, and took his post by the window
          in the same room.</para>

          <para>He was not long in discovering that it was worse
          than useless to speak to him, since, on being pressed, he
          became worried. He abandoned that attempt on the first
          day, and resolved merely to keep himself always before
          him, as a silent protest against the delusion into which
          he had fallen, or was failing. He remained, therefore, in
          his seat near the window, reading and writing, and
          expressing in as many pleasant and natural ways as he
          could think of, that it was a free place.</para>

          <para>Doctor Manette took what was given him to eat and
          drink, and worked on, that first day, until it was too
          dark to see--worked on, half an hour after Mr. Lorry
          could not have seen, for his life, to read or write. When
          he put his tools aside as useless, until morning, Mr.
          Lorry rose and said to him:</para>

          <para>"Will you go out?"</para>

          <para>He looked down at the floor on either side of him
          in the old manner, looked up in the old manner, and
          repeated in the old low voice:</para>

          <para>"Out?"</para>

          <para>"Yes; for a walk with me. Why not?"</para>

          <para>He made no effort to say why not, and said not a
          word more. But, Mr. Lorry thought he saw, as he leaned
          forward on his bench in the dusk, with his elbows on his
          knees and his head in his hands, that he was in some
          misty way asking himself, "Why not?" The sagacity of the
          man of business perceived an advantage here, and
          determined to hold it.</para>

          <para>Miss Pross and he divided the night into two
          watches, and observed him at intervals from the adjoining
          room. He paced up and down for a long time before he lay
          down; but, when he did finally lay himself down, he fell
          asleep. In the morning, he was up betimes, and went
          straight to his bench and to work.</para>

          <para>On this second day, Mr. Lorry saluted him
          cheerfully by his name, and spoke to him on topics that
          had been of late familiar to them. He returned no reply,
          but it was evident that he heard what was said, and that
          he thought about it, however confusedly. This encouraged
          Mr. Lorry to have Miss Pross in with her work, several
          times during the day; at those times, they quietly spoke
          of Lucie, and of her father then present, precisely in
          the usual manner, and as if there were nothing amiss.
          This was done without any demonstrative accompaniment,
          not long enough, or often enough to harass him; and it
          lightened Mr. Lorry's friendly heart to believe that he
          looked up oftener, and that he appeared to be stirred by
          some perception of inconsistencies surrounding
          him.</para>

          <para>When it fell dark again, Mr. Lorry asked him as
          before:</para>

          <para>"Dear Doctor, will you go out?"</para>

          <para>As before, he repeated, "Out?"</para>

          <para>"Yes; for a walk with me. Why not?"</para>

          <para>This time, Mr. Lorry feigned to go out when he
          could extract no answer from him, and, after remaining
          absent for an hour, returned. In the meanwhile, the
          Doctor had removed to the seat in the window, and had sat
          there looking down at the plane-tree; but, on Mr. Lorry's
          return, be slipped away to his bench.</para>

          <para>The time went very slowly on, and Mr. Lorry's hope
          darkened, and his heart grew heavier again, and grew yet
          heavier and heavier every day. The third day came and
          went, the fourth, the fifth. Five days, six days, seven
          days, eight days, nine days.</para>

          <para>With a hope ever darkening, and with a heart always
          growing heavier and heavier, Mr. Lorry passed through
          this anxious time. The secret was well kept, and Lucie
          was unconscious and happy; but he could not fail to
          observe that the shoemaker, whose hand had been a little
          out at first, was growing dreadfully skilful, and that he
          had never been so intent on his work, and that his hands
          had never been so nimble and expert, as in the dusk of
          the ninth evening.</para>
        </chapter>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>XIX</chapnum>

            <title>An Opinion</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>Worn out by anxious watching, Mr. Lorry fell asleep
          at his post. On the tenth morning of his suspense, he was
          startled by the shining of the sun into the room where a
          heavy slumber had overtaken him when it was dark
          night.</para>

          <para>He rubbed his eyes and roused himself; but he
          doubted, when he had done so, whether he was not still
          asleep. For, going to the door of the Doctor's room and
          looking in, he perceived that the shoemaker's bench and
          tools were put aside again, and that the Doctor himself
          sat reading at the window. He was in his usual morning
          dress, and his face (which Mr. Lorry could distinctly
          see), though still very pale, was calmly studious and
          attentive.</para>

          <para>Even when he had satisfied himself that he was
          awake, Mr. Lorry felt giddily uncertain for some few
          moments whether the late shoemaking might not be a
          disturbed dream of his own; for, did not his eyes show
          him his friend before him in his accustomed clothing and
          aspect, and employed as usual; and was there any sign
          within their range, that the change of which he had so
          strong an impression had actually happened?</para>

          <para>It was but the inquiry of his first confusion and
          astonishment, the answer being obvious. If the impression
          were not produced by a real corresponding and sufficient
          cause, how came he, Jarvis Lorry, there? How came he to
          have fallen asleep, in his clothes, on the sofa in Doctor
          Manette's consulting-room, and to be debating these
          points outside the Doctor's bedroom door in the early
          morning?</para>

          <para>Within a few minutes, Miss Pross stood whispering
          at his side. If he had had any particle of doubt left,
          her talk would of necessity have resolved it; but he was
          by that time clear-headed, and had none. He advised that
          they should let the time go by until the regular
          breakfast-hour, and should then meet the Doctor as if
          nothing unusual had occurred. If he appeared to be in his
          customary state of mind, Mr. Lorry would then cautiously
          proceed to seek direction and guidance from the opinion
          he had been, in his anxiety, so anxious to obtain.</para>

          <para>Miss Pross, submitting herself to his judgment, the
          scheme was worked out with care. Having abundance of time
          for his usual methodical toilette, Mr. Lorry presented
          himself at the breakfast-hour in his usual white linen,
          and with his usual neat leg. The Doctor was summoned in
          the usual way, and came to breakfast.</para>

          <para>So far as it was possible to comprehend him without
          overstepping those delicate and gradual approaches which
          Mr. Lorry felt to be the only safe advance, he at first
          supposed that his daughter's marriage had taken place
          yesterday. An incidental allusion, purposely thrown out,
          to the day of the week, and the day of the month, set him
          thinking and counting, and evidently made him uneasy. In
          all other respects, however, he was so composedly
          himself, that Mr. Lorry determined to have the aid he
          sought. And that aid was his own.</para>

          <para>Therefore, when the breakfast was done and cleared
          away, and he and the Doctor were left together, Mr. Lorry
          said, feelingly:</para>

          <para>"My dear Manette, I am anxious to have your
          opinion, in confidence, on a very curious case in which I
          am deeply interested; that is to say, it is very curious
          to me; perhaps, to your better information it may be less
          so."</para>

          <para>Glancing at his hands, which were discoloured by
          his late work, the Doctor looked troubled, and listened
          attentively. He had already glanced at his hands more
          than once.</para>

          <para>"Doctor Manette," said Mr. Lorry, touching him
          affectionately on the arm, "the case is the case of a
          particularly dear friend of mine. Pray give your mind to
          it, and advise me well for his sake--and above all, for
          his daughter's--his daughter's, my dear Manette."</para>

          <para>"If I understand," said the Doctor, in a subdued
          tone, "some mental shock--?"</para>

          <para>"Yes!"</para>

          <para>"Be explicit," said the Doctor. "Spare no
          detail."</para>

          <para>Mr. Lorry saw that they understood one another, and
          proceeded.</para>

          <para>"My dear Manette, it is the case of an old and a
          prolonged shock, of great acuteness and severity to the
          affections, the feelings, the--the--as you express
          it--the mind. The mind. It is the case of a shock under
          which the sufferer was borne down, one cannot say for how
          long, because I believe he cannot calculate the time
          himself, and there are no other means of getting at it.
          It is the case of a shock from which the sufferer
          recovered, by a process that he cannot trace himself--as
          I once heard him publicly relate in a striking manner. It
          is the case of a shock from which he has recovered, so
          completely, as to be a highly intelligent man, capable of
          close application of mind, and great exertion of body,
          and of constantly making fresh additions to his stock of
          knowledge, which was already very large. But,
          unfortunately, there has been," he paused and took a deep
          breath--"a slight relapse."</para>

          <para>The Doctor, in a low voice, asked, "Of how long
          duration?"</para>

          <para>"Nine days and nights."</para>

          <para>"How did it show itself? I infer," glancing at his
          hands again, "in the resumption of some old pursuit
          connected with the shock?"</para>

          <para>"That is the fact."</para>

          <para>"Now, did you ever see him," asked the Doctor,
          distinctly and collectedly, though in the same low voice,
          "engaged in that pursuit originally?"</para>

          <para>"Once."</para>

          <para>"And when the relapse fell on him, was he in most
          respects--or in all respects--as he was then?"</para>

          <para>"I think in all respects."</para>

          <para>"You spoke of his daughter. Does his daughter know
          of the relapse?"</para>

          <para>"No. It has been kept from her, and I hope will
          always be kept from her. It is known only to myself, and
          to one other who may be trusted."</para>

          <para>The Doctor grasped his band, and murmured, "That
          was very kind. That was very thoughtful!" Mr. Lorry
          grasped his hand in return, and neither of the two spoke
          for a little while.</para>

          <para>"Now, my dear Manette," said Mr. Lorry, at length,
          in his most considerate and most affectionate way, "I am
          a mere man of business, and unfit to cope with such
          intricate and difficult matters. I do not possess the
          kind of information necessary; I do not possess the kind
          of intelligence; I want guiding. There is no man in this
          world on whom I could so rely for right guidance, as on
          you. Tell me, how does this relapse come about? Is there
          danger of another? Could a repetition of it be prevented?
          How should a repetition of it be treated? How does it
          come about at all? What can I do for my friend? No man
          ever can have been more desirous in his heart to serve a
          friend, than I am to serve mine, if I knew how.</para>

          <para>But I don't know how to originate, in such a case.
          If your sagacity, knowledge, and experience, could put me
          on the right track, I might be able to do so much;
          unenlightened and undirected, I can do so little. Pray
          discuss it with me; pray enable me to see it a little
          more clearly, and teach me how to be a little more
          useful."</para>

          <para>Doctor Manette sat meditating after these earnest
          words were spoken, and Mr. Lorry did not press
          him.</para>

          <para>"I think it probable," said the Doctor, breaking
          silence with an effort, "that the relapse you have
          described, my dear friend, was not quite unforeseen by
          its subject."</para>

          <para>"Was it dreaded by him?" Mr. Lorry ventured to
          ask.</para>

          <para>"Very much." He said it with an involuntary
          shudder.</para>

          <para>"You have no idea how such an apprehension weighs
          on the sufferer's mind, and how difficult--how almost
          impossible--it is, for him to force himself to utter a
          word upon the topic that oppresses him."</para>

          <para>"Would he," asked Mr. Lorry, "be sensibly relieved
          if he could prevail upon himself to impart that secret
          brooding to any one, when it is on him?"</para>

          <para>"I think so. But it is, as I have told you, next to
          impossible. I even believe it--in some cases--to be quite
          impossible."</para>

          <para>"Now," said Mr. Lorry, gently laying his hand on
          the Doctor's arm again, after a short silence on both
          sides, "to what would you refer this attack? "</para>

          <para>"I believe," returned Doctor Manette, "that there
          had been a strong and extraordinary revival of the train
          of thought and remembrance that was the first cause of
          the malady. Some intense associations of a most
          distressing nature were vividly recalled, I think. It is
          probable that there had long been a dread lurking in his
          mind, that those associations would be recalled--say,
          under certain circumstances--say, on a particular
          occasion. He tried to prepare himself in vain; perhaps
          the effort to prepare himself made him less able to bear
          it."</para>

          <para>"Would he remember what took place in the relapse?"
          asked Mr. Lorry, with natural hesitation.</para>

          <para>The Doctor looked desolately round the room, shook
          his head, and answered, in a low voice, "Not at
          all."</para>

          <para>"Now, as to the future," hinted Mr. Lorry.</para>

          <para>"As to the future," said the Doctor, recovering
          firmness, "I should have great hope. As it pleased Heaven
          in its mercy to restore him so soon, I should have great
          hope. He, yielding under the pressure of a complicated
          something, long dreaded and long vaguely foreseen and
          contended against, and recovering after the cloud had
          burst and passed, I should hope that the worst was
          over."</para>

          <para>"Well, well! That's good comfort. I am thankful!"
          said Mr. Lorry.</para>

          <para>"I am thankful!" repeated the Doctor, bending his
          head with reverence.</para>

          <para>"There are two other points," said Mr. Lorry, "on
          which I am anxious to be instructed. I may go on?"</para>

          <para>"You cannot do your friend a better service." The
          Doctor gave him his hand.</para>

          <para>"To the first, then. He is of a studious habit, and
          unusually energetic; he applies himself with great ardour
          to the acquisition of professional knowledge, to the
          conducting of experiments, to many things. Now, does he
          do too much?"</para>

          <para>"I think not. It may be the character of his mind,
          to be always in singular need of occupation. That may be,
          in part, natural to it; in part, the result of
          affliction. The less it was occupied with healthy things,
          the more it would be in danger of turning in the
          unhealthy direction. He may have observed himself, and
          made the discovery."</para>

          <para>"You are sure that he is not under too great a
          strain?"</para>

          <para>"I think I am quite sure of it."</para>

          <para>"My dear Manette, if he were overworked
          now--"</para>

          <para>"My dear Lorry, I doubt if that could easily be.
          There has been a violent stress in one direction, and it
          needs a counterweight."</para>

          <para>"Excuse me, as a persistent man of business.
          Assuming for a moment, that he WAS overworked; it would
          show itself in some renewal of this disorder?"</para>

          <para>"I do not think so. I do not think," said Doctor
          Manette with the firmness of self-conviction, "that
          anything but the one train of association would renew it.
          I think that, henceforth, nothing but some extraordinary
          jarring of that chord could renew it. After what has
          happened, and after his recovery, I find it difficult to
          imagine any such violent sounding of that string again. I
          trust, and I almost believe, that the circumstances
          likely to renew it are exhausted."</para>

          <para>He spoke with the diffidence of a man who knew how
          slight a thing would overset the delicate organisation of
          the mind, and yet with the confidence of a man who had
          slowly won his assurance out of personal endurance and
          distress. It was not for his friend to abate that
          confidence. He professed himself more relieved and
          encouraged than he really was, and approached his second
          and last point. He felt it to be the most difficult of
          all; but, remembering his old Sunday morning conversation
          with Miss Pross, and remembering what he had seen in the
          last nine days, he knew that he must face it.</para>

          <para>"The occupation resumed under the influence of this
          passing affliction so happily recovered from," said Mr.
          Lorry, clearing his throat, "we will call--Blacksmith's
          work, Blacksmith's work. We will say, to put a case and
          for the sake of illustration, that he had been used, in
          his bad time, to work at a little forge. We will say that
          he was unexpectedly found at his forge again. Is it not a
          pity that he should keep it by him?"</para>

          <para>The Doctor shaded his forehead with his hand, and
          beat his foot nervously on the ground.</para>

          <para>"He has always kept it by him," said Mr. Lorry,
          with an anxious look at his friend. "Now, would it not be
          better that he should let it go?"</para>

          <para>Still, the Doctor, with shaded forehead, beat his
          foot nervously on the ground.</para>

          <para>"You do not find it easy to advise me?" said Mr.
          Lorry. "I quite understand it to be a nice question. And
          yet I think--" And there he shook his head, and
          stopped.</para>

          <para>"You see," said Doctor Manette, turning to him
          after an uneasy pause, "it is very hard to explain,
          consistently, the innermost workings of this poor man's
          mind. He once yearned so frightfully for that occupation,
          and it was so welcome when it came; no doubt it relieved
          his pain so much, by substituting the perplexity of the
          fingers for the perplexity of the brain, and by
          substituting, as he became more practised, the ingenuity
          of the hands, for the ingenuity of the mental torture;
          that he has never been able to bear the thought of
          putting it quite out of his reach. Even now, when I
          believe he is more hopeful of himself than he has ever
          been, and even speaks of himself with a kind of
          confidence, the idea that he might need that old
          employment, and not find it, gives him a sudden sense of
          terror, like that which one may fancy strikes to the
          heart of a lost child."</para>

          <para>He looked like his illustration, as he raised his
          eyes to Mr. Lorry's face.</para>

          <para>"But may not--mind! I ask for information, as a
          plodding man of business who only deals with such
          material objects as guineas, shillings, and
          bank-notes--may not the retention of the thing involve
          the retention of the idea? If the thing were gone, my
          dear Manette, might not the fear go with it? In short, is
          it not a concession to the misgiving, to keep the
          forge?"</para>

          <para>There was another silence.</para>

          <para>"You see, too," said the Doctor, tremulously, "it
          is such an old companion."</para>

          <para>"I would not keep it," said Mr. Lorry, shaking his
          head; for he gained in firmness as he saw the Doctor
          disquieted. "I would recommend him to sacrifice it. I
          only want your authority. I am sure it does no good.
          Come! Give me your authority, like a dear good man. For
          his daughter's sake, my dear Manette!"</para>

          <para>Very strange to see what a struggle there was
          within him!</para>

          <para>"In her name, then, let it be done; I sanction it.
          But, I would not take it away while he was present. Let
          it be removed when he is not there; let him miss his old
          companion after an absence."</para>

          <para>Mr. Lorry readily engaged for that, and the
          conference was ended. They passed the day in the country,
          and the Doctor was quite restored. On the three following
          days he remained perfectly well, and on the fourteenth
          day he went away to join Lucie and her husband. The
          precaution that had been taken to account for his
          silence, Mr. Lorry had previously explained to him, and
          he had written to Lucie in accordance with it, and she
          had no suspicions.</para>

          <para>On the night of the day on which he left the house,
          Mr. Lorry went into his room with a chopper, saw, chisel,
          and hammer, attended by Miss Pross carrying a light.
          There, with closed doors, and in a mysterious and guilty
          manner, Mr. Lorry hacked the shoemaker's bench to pieces,
          while Miss Pross held the candle as if she were assisting
          at a murder--for which, indeed, in her grimness, she was
          no unsuitable figure. The burning of the body (previously
          reduced to pieces convenient for the purpose) was
          commenced without delay in the kitchen fire; and the
          tools, shoes, and leather, were buried in the garden. So
          wicked do destruction and secrecy appear to honest minds,
          that Mr. Lorry and Miss Pross, while engaged in the
          commission of their deed and in the removal of its
          traces, almost felt, and almost looked, like accomplices
          in a horrible crime.</para>
        </chapter>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>XX</chapnum>

            <title>A Plea</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>When the newly-married pair came home, the first
          person who appeared, to offer his congratulations, was
          Sydney Carton. They had not been at home many hours, when
          he presented himself. He was not improved in habits, or
          in looks, or in manner; but there was a certain rugged
          air of fidelity about him, which was new to the
          observation of Charles Darnay.</para>

          <para>He watched his opportunity of taking Darnay aside
          into a window, and of speaking to him when no one
          overheard.</para>

          <para>"Mr. Darnay," said Carton, "I wish we might be
          friends."</para>

          <para>"We are already friends, I hope."</para>

          <para>"You are good enough to say so, as a fashion of
          speech; but, I don't mean any fashion of speech. Indeed,
          when I say I wish we might be friends, I scarcely mean
          quite that, either."</para>

          <para>Charles Darnay--as was natural--asked him, in all
          good-humour and good-fellowship, what he did mean?</para>

          <para>"Upon my life," said Carton, smiling, "I find that
          easier to comprehend in my own mind, than to convey to
          yours. However, let me try. You remember a certain famous
          occasion when I was more drunk than-- than usual?"</para>

          <para>"I remember a certain famous occasion when you
          forced me to confess that you had been drinking."</para>

          <para>"I remember it too. The curse of those occasions is
          heavy upon me, for I always remember them. I hope it may
          be taken into account one day, when all days are at an
          end for me! Don't be alarmed; I am not going to
          preach."</para>

          <para>"I am not at all alarmed. Earnestness in you, is
          anything but alarming to me."</para>

          <para>"Ah!" said Carton, with a careless wave of his
          hand, as if he waved that away. "On the drunken occasion
          in question (one of a large number, as you know), I was
          insufferable about liking you, and not liking you. I wish
          you would forget it."</para>

          <para>"I forgot it long ago."</para>

          <para>"Fashion of speech again! But, Mr. Darnay, oblivion
          is not so easy to me, as you represent it to be to you. I
          have by no means forgotten it, and a light answer does
          not help me to forget it."</para>

          <para>"If it was a light answer," returned Darnay, "I beg
          your forgiveness for it. I had no other object than to
          turn a slight thing, which, to my surprise, seems to
          trouble you too much, aside. I declare to you, on the
          faith of a gentleman, that I have long dismissed it from
          my mind. Good Heaven, what was there to dismiss! Have I
          had nothing more important to remember, in the great
          service you rendered me that day?"</para>

          <para>"As to the great service," said Carton, "I am bound
          to avow to you, when you speak of it in that way, that it
          was mere professional claptrap, I don't know that I cared
          what became of you, when I rendered it.--Mind! I say when
          I rendered it; I am speaking of the past."</para>

          <para>"You make light of the obligation," returned
          Darnay, "but I will not quarrel with YOUR light
          answer."</para>

          <para>"Genuine truth, Mr. Darnay, trust me! I have gone
          aside from my purpose; I was speaking about our being
          friends. Now, you know me; you know I am incapable of all
          the higher and better flights of men. If you doubt it,
          ask Stryver, and he'll tell you so."</para>

          <para>"I prefer to form my own opinion, without the aid
          of his."</para>

          <para>"Well! At any rate you know me as a dissolute dog,
          who has never done any good, and never will."</para>

          <para>"I don't know that you `never will.'"</para>

          <para>"But I do, and you must take my word for it. Well!
          If you could endure to have such a worthless fellow, and
          a fellow of such indifferent reputation, coming and going
          at odd times, I should ask that I might be permitted to
          come and go as a privileged person here; that I might be
          regarded as an useless (and I would add, if it were not
          for the resemblance I detected between you and me, an
          unornamental) piece of furniture, tolerated for its old
          service, and taken no notice of. I doubt if I should
          abuse the permission. It is a hundred to one if I should
          avail myself of it four times in a year. It would satisfy
          me, I dare say, to know that I had it."</para>

          <para>"Will you try?"</para>

          <para>"That is another way of saying that I am placed on
          the footing I have indicated. I thank you, Darnay. I may
          use that freedom with your name?"</para>

          <para>"I think so, Carton, by this time."</para>

          <para>They shook hands upon it, and Sydney turned away.
          Within a minute afterwards, he was, to all outward
          appearance, as unsubstantial as ever.</para>

          <para>When he was gone, and in the course of an evening
          passed with Miss Pross, the Doctor, and Mr. Lorry,
          Charles Darnay made some mention of this conversation in
          general terms, and spoke of Sydney Carton as a problem of
          carelessness and recklessness. He spoke of him, in short,
          not bitterly or meaning to bear hard upon him, but as
          anybody might who saw him as he showed himself.</para>

          <para>He had no idea that this could dwell in the
          thoughts of his fair young wife; but, when he afterwards
          joined her in their own rooms, he found her waiting for
          him with the old pretty lifting of the forehead strongly
          marked.</para>

          <para>"We are thoughtful to-night!" said Darnay, drawing
          his arm about her.</para>

          <para>"Yes, dearest Charles," with her hands on his
          breast, and the inquiring and attentive expression fixed
          upon him; "we are rather thoughtful to-night, for we have
          something on our mind to-night."</para>

          <para>"What is it, my Lucie?"</para>

          <para>"Will you promise not to press one question on me,
          if I beg you not to ask it?"</para>

          <para>"Will I promise? What will I not promise to my
          Love?"</para>

          <para>What, indeed, with his hand putting aside the
          golden hair from the cheek, and his other hand against
          the heart that beat for him!</para>

          <para>"I think, Charles, poor Mr. Carton deserves more
          consideration and respect than you expressed for him
          to-night."</para>

          <para>"Indeed, my own? Why so?"</para>

          <para>"That is what you are not to ask me. But I think--I
          know--he does."</para>

          <para>"If you know it, it is enough. What would you have
          me do, my Life?"</para>

          <para>"I would ask you, dearest, to be very generous with
          him always, and very lenient on his faults when he is not
          by. I would ask you to believe that he has a heart he
          very, very seldom reveals, and that there are deep wounds
          in it. My dear, I have seen it bleeding."</para>

          <para>"It is a painful reflection to me," said Charles
          Darnay, quite astounded, "that I should have done him any
          wrong. I never thought this of him."</para>

          <para>"My husband, it is so. I fear he is not to be
          reclaimed; there is scarcely a hope that anything in his
          character or fortunes is reparable now. But, I am sure
          that he is capable of good things, gentle things, even
          magnanimous things."</para>

          <para>She looked so beautiful in the purity of her faith
          in this lost man, that her husband could have looked at
          her as she was for hours.</para>

          <para>"And, O my dearest Love!" she urged, clinging
          nearer to him, laying her head upon his breast, and
          raising her eyes to his, "remember how strong we are in
          our happiness, and how weak he is in his misery!"</para>

          <para>The supplication touched him home. "I will always
          remember it, dear Heart! I will remember it as long as I
          live."</para>

          <para>He bent over the golden head, and put the rosy lips
          to his, and folded her in his arms. If one forlorn
          wanderer then pacing the dark streets, could have heard
          her innocent disclosure, and could have seen the drops of
          pity kissed away by her husband from the soft blue eyes
          so loving of that husband, he might have cried to the
          night--and the words would not have parted from his lips
          for the first time--</para>

          <para>"God bless her for her sweet compassion!"</para>
        </chapter>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>XXI</chapnum>

            <title>Echoing Footsteps</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>A wonderful corner for echoes, it has been
          remarked, that corner where the Doctor lived. Ever busily
          winding the golden thread which bound her husband, and
          her father, and herself, and her old directress and
          companion, in a life of quiet bliss, Lucie sat in the
          still house in the tranquilly resounding corner,
          listening to the echoing footsteps of years.</para>

          <para>At first, there were times, though she was a
          perfectly happy young wife, when her work would slowly
          fall from her hands, and her eyes would be dimmed. For,
          there was something coming in the echoes, something
          light, afar off, and scarcely audible yet, that stirred
          her heart too much. Fluttering hopes and doubts--hopes,
          of a love as yet unknown to her: doubts, of her remaining
          upon earth, to enjoy that new delight--divided her
          breast. Among the echoes then, there would arise the
          sound of footsteps at her own early grave; and thoughts
          of the husband who would be left so desolate, and who
          would mourn for her so much, swelled to her eyes, and
          broke like waves.</para>

          <para>That time passed, and her little Lucie lay on her
          bosom. Then, among the advancing echoes, there was the
          tread of her tiny feet and the sound of her prattling
          words. Let greater echoes resound as they would, the
          young mother at the cradle side could always hear those
          coming. They came, and the shady house was sunny with a
          child's laugh, and the Divine friend of children, to whom
          in her trouble she had confided hers, seemed to take her
          child in his arms, as He took the child of old, and made
          it a sacred joy to her.</para>

          <para>Ever busily winding the golden thread that bound
          them all together, weaving the service of her happy
          influence through the tissue of all their lives, and
          making it predominate nowhere, Lucie heard in the echoes
          of years none but friendly and soothing sounds. Her
          husband's step was strong and prosperous among them; her
          father's firm and equal. Lo, Miss Pross, in harness of
          string, awakening the echoes, as an unruly charger,
          whip-corrected, snorting and pawing the earth under the
          plane-tree in the garden!</para>

          <para>Even when there were sounds of sorrow among the
          rest, they were not harsh nor cruel. Even when golden
          hair, like her own, lay in a halo on a pillow round the
          worn face of a little boy, and he said, with a radiant
          smile, "Dear papa and mamma, I am very sorry to leave you
          both, and to leave my pretty sister; but I am called, and
          I must go!" those were not tears all of agony that wetted
          his young mother's cheek, as the spirit departed from her
          embrace that had been entrusted to it. Suffer them and
          forbid them not. They see my Father's face. O Father,
          blessed words!</para>

          <para>Thus, the rustling of an Angel's wings got blended
          with the other echoes, and they were not wholly of earth,
          but had in them that breath of Heaven. Sighs of the winds
          that blew over a little garden-tomb were mingled with
          them also, and both were audible to Lucie, in a hushed
          murmur--like the breathing of a summer sea asleep upon a
          sandy shore --as the little Lucie, comically studious at
          the task of the morning, or dressing a doll at her
          mother's footstool, chattered in the tongues of the Two
          Cities that were blended in her life.</para>

          <para>The Echoes rarely answered to the actual tread of
          Sydney Carton. Some half-dozen times a year, at most, he
          claimed his privilege of coming in uninvited, and would
          sit among them through the evening, as he had once done
          often. He never came there heated with wine. And one
          other thing regarding him was whispered in the echoes,
          which has been whispered by all true echoes for ages and
          ages.</para>

          <para>No man ever really loved a woman, lost her, and
          knew her with a blameless though an unchanged mind, when
          she was a wife and a mother, but her children had a
          strange sympathy with him--an instinctive delicacy of
          pity for him. What fine hidden sensibilities are touched
          in such a case, no echoes tell; but it is so, and it was
          so here. Carton was the first stranger to whom little
          Lucie held out her chubby arms, and he kept his place
          with her as she grew. The little boy had spoken of him,
          almost at the last. "Poor Carton! Kiss him for
          me!"</para>

          <para>Mr. Stryver shouldered his way through the law,
          like some great engine forcing itself through turbid
          water, and dragged his useful friend in his wake, like a
          boat towed astern. As the boat so favoured is usually in
          a rough plight, and mostly under water, so, Sydney had a
          swamped life of it. But, easy and strong custom,
          unhappily so much easier and stronger in him than any
          stimulating sense of desert or disgrace, made it the life
          he was to lead; and he no more thought of emerging from
          his state of lion's jackal, than any real jackal may be
          supposed to think of rising to be a lion. Stryver was
          rich; had married a florid widow with property and three
          boys, who had nothing particularly shining about them but
          the straight hair of their dumpling heads.</para>

          <para>These three young gentlemen, Mr. Stryver, exuding
          patronage of the most offensive quality from every pore,
          had walked before him like three sheep to the quiet
          corner in Soho, and had offered as pupils to Lucie's
          husband: delicately saying "Halloa! here are three lumps
          of bread-and- cheese towards your matrimonial picnic,
          Darnay!" The polite rejection of the three lumps of
          bread-and-cheese had quite bloated Mr. Stryver with
          indignation, which he afterwards turned to account in the
          training of the young gentlemen, by directing them to
          beware of the pride of Beggars, like that tutor-fellow.
          He was also in the habit of declaiming to Mrs. Stryver,
          over his full-bodied wine, on the arts Mrs. Darnay had
          once put in practice to "catch" him, and on the
          diamond-cut-diamond arts in himself, madam, which had
          rendered him "not to be caught." Some of his King's Bench
          familiars, who were occasionally parties to the
          full-bodied wine and the lie, excused him for the latter
          by saying that he had told it so often, that he believed
          it himself--which is surely such an incorrigible
          aggravation of an originally bad offence, as to justify
          any such offender's being carried off to some suitably
          retired spot, and there hanged out of the way.</para>

          <para>These were among the echoes to which Lucie,
          sometimes pensive, sometimes amused and laughing,
          listened in the echoing corner, until her little daughter
          was six years old. How near to her heart the echoes of
          her child's tread came, and those of her own dear
          father's, always active and self-possessed, and those of
          her dear husband's, need not be told. Nor, how the
          lightest echo of their united home, directed by herself
          with such a wise and elegant thrift that it was more
          abundant than any waste, was music to her. Nor, how there
          were echoes all about her, sweet in her ears, of the many
          times her father had told her that he found her more
          devoted to him married (if that could be) than single,
          and of the many times her husband had said to her that no
          cares and duties seemed to divide her love for him or her
          help to him, and asked her "What is the magic secret, my
          darling, of your being everything to all of us, as if
          there were only one of us, yet never seeming to be
          hurried, or to have too much to do?"</para>

          <para>But, there were other echoes, from a distance, that
          rumbled menacingly in the corner all through this space
          of time. And it was now, about little Lucie's sixth
          birthday, that they began to have an awful sound, as of a
          great storm in France with a dreadful sea rising.</para>

          <para>On a night in mid-July, one thousand seven hundred
          and eighty-nine, Mr. Lorry came in late, from Tellson's,
          and sat himself down by Lucie and her husband in the dark
          window. It was a hot, wild night, and they were all three
          reminded of the old Sunday night when they had looked at
          the lightning from the same place.</para>

          <para>"I began to think," said Mr. Lorry, pushing his
          brown wig back, "that I should have to pass the night at
          Tellson's. We have been so full of business all day, that
          we have not known what to do first, or which way to turn.
          There is such an uneasiness in Paris, that we have
          actually a run of confidence upon us! Our customers over
          there, seem not to be able to confide their property to
          us fast enough. There is positively a mania among some of
          them for sending it to England."</para>

          <para>"That has a bad look," said Darnay--</para>

          <para>"A bad look, you say, my dear Darnay? Yes, but we
          don't know what reason there is in it. People are so
          unreasonable! Some of us at Tellson's are getting old,
          and we really can't be troubled out of the ordinary
          course without due occasion."</para>

          <para>"Still," said Darnay, "you know how gloomy and
          threatening the sky is."</para>

          <para>"I know that, to be sure," assented Mr. Lorry,
          trying to persuade himself that his sweet temper was
          soured, and that he grumbled, "but I am determined to be
          peevish after my long day's botheration. Where is
          Manette?"</para>

          <para>"Here he is," said the Doctor, entering the dark
          room at the moment.</para>

          <para>"I am quite glad you are at home; for these hurries
          and forebodings by which I have been surrounded all day
          long, have made me nervous without reason. You are not
          going out, I hope?"</para>

          <para>"No; I am going to play backgammon with you, if you
          like," said the Doctor.</para>

          <para>"I don't think I do like, if I may speak my mind. I
          am not fit to be pitted against you to-night. Is the
          teaboard still there, Lucie? I can't see."</para>

          <para>"Of course, it has been kept for you."</para>

          <para>"Thank ye, my dear. The precious child is safe in
          bed?"</para>

          <para>"And sleeping soundly."</para>

          <para>"That's right; all safe and well! I don't know why
          anything should be otherwise than safe and well here,
          thank God; but I have been so put out all day, and I am
          not as young as I was! My tea, my dear! Thank ye. Now,
          come and take your place in the circle, and let us sit
          quiet, and hear the echoes about which you have your
          theory."</para>

          <para>"Not a theory; it was a fancy."</para>

          <para>"A fancy, then, my wise pet," said Mr. Lorry,
          patting her hand. "They are very numerous and very loud,
          though, are they not? Only hear them!"</para>

          <para>Headlong, mad, and dangerous footsteps to force
          their way into anybody's life, footsteps not easily made
          clean again if once stained red, the footsteps raging in
          Saint Antoine afar off, as the little circle sat in the
          dark London window.</para>

          <para>Saint Antoine had been, that morning, a vast dusky
          mass of scarecrows heaving to and fro, with frequent
          gleams of light above the billowy heads, where steel
          blades and bayonets shone in the sun. A tremendous roar
          arose from the throat of Saint Antoine, and a forest of
          naked arms struggled in the air like shrivelled branches
          of trees in a winter wind: all the fingers convulsively
          clutching at every weapon or semblance of a weapon that
          was thrown up from the depths below, no matter how far
          off.</para>

          <para>Who gave them out, whence they last came, where
          they began, through what agency they crookedly quivered
          and jerked, scores at a time, over the heads of the
          crowd, like a kind of lightning, no eye in the throng
          could have told; but, muskets were being distributed--so
          were cartridges, powder, and ball, bars of iron and wood,
          knives, axes, pikes, every weapon that distracted
          ingenuity could discover or devise. People who could lay
          hold of nothing else, set themselves with bleeding hands
          to force stones and bricks out of their places in walls.
          Every pulse and heart in Saint Antoine was on high-fever
          strain and at high-fever heat. Every living creature
          there held life as of no account, and was demented with a
          passionate readiness to sacrifice it.</para>

          <para>As a whirlpool of boiling waters has a centre
          point, so, all this raging circled round Defarge's
          wine-shop, and every human drop in the caldron had a
          tendency to be sucked towards the vortex where Defarge
          himself, already begrimed with gunpowder and sweat,
          issued orders, issued arms, thrust this man back, dragged
          this man forward, disarmed one to arm another, laboured
          and strove in the thickest of the uproar.</para>

          <para>"Keep near to me, Jacques Three," cried Defarge;
          "and do you, Jacques One and Two, separate and put
          yourselves at the head of as many of these patriots as
          you can. Where is my wife?"</para>

          <para>"Eh, well! Here you see me!" said madame, composed
          as ever, but not knitting to-day. Madame's resolute right
          hand was occupied with an axe, in place of the usual
          softer implements, and in her girdle were a pistol and a
          cruel knife.</para>

          <para>"Where do you go, my wife?"</para>

          <para>"I go," said madame, "with you at present. You
          shall see me at the head of women, by-and-bye."</para>

          <para>"Come, then!" cried Defarge, in a resounding voice.
          "Patriots and friends, we are ready! The
          Bastille!"</para>

          <para>With a roar that sounded as if all the breath in
          France had been shaped into the detested word, the living
          sea rose, wave on wave, depth on depth, and overflowed
          the city to that point. Alarm-bells ringing, drums
          beating, the sea raging and thundering on its new beach,
          the attack began.</para>

          <para>Deep ditches, double drawbridge, massive stone
          walls, eight great towers, cannon, muskets, fire and
          smoke. Through the fire and through the smoke--in the
          fire and in the smoke, for the sea cast him up against a
          cannon, and on the instant he became a cannonier--Defarge
          of the wine-shop worked like a manful soldier, Two fierce
          hours.</para>

          <para>Deep ditch, single drawbridge, massive stone walls,
          eight great towers, cannon, muskets, fire and smoke. One
          drawbridge down! "Work, comrades all, work! Work, Jacques
          One, Jacques Two, Jacques One Thousand, Jacques Two
          Thousand, Jacques Five-and-Twenty Thousand; in the name
          of all the Angels or the Devils--which you prefer--work!"
          Thus Defarge of the wine-shop, still at his gun, which
          had long gown hot.</para>

          <para>"To me, women!" cried madame his wife. "What! We
          can kill as well as the men when the place is taken!" And
          to her, with a shrill thirsty cry, trooping women
          variously armed, but all armed age in hunger and
          revenge.</para>

          <para>Cannon, muskets, fire and smoke; but, still the
          deep ditch, the single drawbridge, the massive stone
          wails, and the eight great towers. Slight displacements
          of the raging sea, made by the falling wounded. Flashing
          weapons, blazing torches, smoking waggonloads of wet
          straw, hard work at neighbouring barricades in all
          directions, shrieks, volleys, execrations, bravery
          without stint, boom smash and rattle, and the furious
          sounding of the living sea; but, still the deep ditch,
          and the single drawbridge, and the massive stone walls,
          and the eight great towers, and still Defarge of the
          wine-shop at his gun, grown doubly hot by the service of
          Four fierce hours.</para>

          <para>A white flag from within the fortress, and a
          parley--this dimly perceptible through the raging storm,
          nothing audible in it--suddenly the sea rose immeasurably
          wider and higher, and swept Defarge of the wine-shop over
          the lowered drawbridge, past the massive stone outer
          walls, in among the eight great towers
          surrendered!</para>

          <para>So resistless was the force of the ocean bearing
          him on, that even to draw his breath or turn his head was
          as impracticable as if he had been struggling in the surf
          at the South Sea, until he was landed in the outer
          courtyard of the Bastille. There, against an angle of a
          wall, he made a struggle to look about him. Jacques Three
          was nearly at his side; Madame Defarge, still heading
          some of her women, was visible in the inner distance, and
          her knife was in her hand. Everywhere was tumult,
          exultation, deafening and maniacal bewilderment,
          astounding noise, yet furious dumb-show.</para>

          <para>"The Prisoners!"</para>

          <para>"The Records!"</para>

          <para>"The secret cells!"</para>

          <para>"The instruments of torture!"</para>

          <para>"The Prisoners!"</para>

          <para>Of all these cries, and ten thousand incoherences,
          "The Prisoners!" was the cry most taken up by the sea
          that rushed in, as if there were an eternity of people,
          as well as of time and space. When the foremost billows
          rolled past, bearing the prison officers with them, and
          threatening them all with instant death if any secret
          nook remained undisclosed, Defarge laid his strong hand
          on the breast of one of these men--a man with a grey
          head, who had a lighted torch in his hand-- separated him
          from the rest, and got him between himself and the
          wall.</para>

          <para>"Show me the North Tower!" said Defarge.
          "Quick!"</para>

          <para>"I will faithfully," replied the man, "if you will
          come with me. But there is no one there."</para>

          <para>"What is the meaning of One Hundred and Five, North
          Tower?" asked Defarge. "Quick!"</para>

          <para>"The meaning, monsieur?"</para>

          <para>"Does it mean a captive, or a place of captivity?
          Or do you mean that I shall strike you dead?"</para>

          <para>"Kill him!" croaked Jacques Three, who had come
          close up.</para>

          <para>"Monsieur, it is a cell."</para>

          <para>"Show it me!"</para>

          <para>"Pass this way, then."</para>

          <para>Jacques Three, with his usual craving on him, and
          evidently disappointed by the dialogue taking a turn that
          did not seem to promise bloodshed, held by Defarge's arm
          as he held by the turnkey's. Their three heads had been
          close together during this brief discourse, and it had
          been as much as they could do to hear one another, even
          then: so tremendous was the noise of the living ocean, in
          its irruption into the Fortress, and its inundation of
          the courts and passages and staircases. All around
          outside, too, it beat the walls with a deep, hoarse roar,
          from which, occasionally, some partial shouts of tumult
          broke and leaped into the air like spray.</para>

          <para>Through gloomy vaults where the light of day had
          never shone, past hideous doors of dark dens and cages,
          down cavernous flights of steps, and again up steep
          rugged ascents of stone and brick, more like dry
          waterfalls than staircases, Defarge, the turnkey, and
          Jacques Three, linked hand and arm, went with all the
          speed they could make. Here and there, especially at
          first, the inundation started on them and swept by; but
          when they had done descending, and were winding and
          climbing up a tower, they were alone. Hemmed in here by
          the massive thickness of walls and arches, the storm
          within the fortress and without was only audible to them
          in a dull, subdued way, as if the noise out of which they
          had come had almost destroyed their sense of
          hearing.</para>

          <para>The turnkey stopped at a low door, put a key in a
          clashing lock, swung the door slowly open, and said, as
          they all bent their heads and passed in:</para>

          <para>"One hundred and five, North Tower!"</para>

          <para>There was a small, heavily-grated, unglazed window
          high in the wall, with a stone screen before it, so that
          the sky could be only seen by stooping low and looking
          up. There was a small chimney, heavily barred across, a
          few feet within. There was a heap of old feathery
          wood-ashes on the hearth. There was a stool, and table,
          and a straw bed. There were the four blackened walls, and
          a rusted iron ring in one of them.</para>

          <para>"Pass that torch slowly along these walls, that I
          may see them," said Defarge to the turnkey.</para>

          <para>The man obeyed, and Defarge followed the light
          closely with his eyes.</para>

          <para>"Stop!--Look here, Jacques!"</para>

          <para>"A. M.!" croaked Jacques Three, as he read
          greedily.</para>

          <para>"Alexandre Manette," said Defarge in his ear,
          following the letters with his swart forefinger, deeply
          engrained with gunpowder. "And here he wrote `a poor
          physician.' And it was he, without doubt, who scratched a
          calendar on this stone. What is that in your hand? A
          crowbar? Give it me!"</para>

          <para>He had still the linstock of his gun in his own
          hand. He made a sudden exchange of the two instruments,
          and turning on the worm-eaten stool and table, beat them
          to pieces in a few blows.</para>

          <para>"Hold the light higher!" he said, wrathfully, to
          the turnkey. "Look among those fragments with care,
          Jacques. And see! Here is my knife," throwing it to him;
          "rip open that bed, and search the straw. Hold the light
          higher, you!"</para>

          <para>With a menacing look at the turnkey he crawled upon
          the hearth, and, peering up the chimney, struck and
          prised at its sides with the crowbar, and worked at the
          iron grating across it. In a few minutes, some mortar and
          dust came dropping down, which he averted his face to
          avoid; and in it, and in the old wood-ashes, and in a
          crevice in the chimney into which his weapon had slipped
          or wrought itself, he groped with a cautious
          touch.</para>

          <para>"Nothing in the wood, and nothing in the straw,
          Jacques?"</para>

          <para>"Nothing."</para>

          <para>"Let us collect them together, in the middle of the
          cell. So! Light them, you!"</para>

          <para>The turnkey fired the little pile, which blazed
          high and hot. Stooping again to come out at the
          low-arched door, they left it burning, and retraced their
          way to the courtyard; seeming to recover their sense of
          hearing as they came down, until they were in the raging
          flood once more.</para>

          <para>They found it surging and tossing, in quest of
          Defarge himself. Saint Antoine was clamorous to have its
          wine-shop keeper foremost in the guard upon the governor
          who had defended the Bastille and shot the people.
          Otherwise, the governor would not be marched to the Hotel
          de Ville for judgment. Otherwise, the governor would
          escape, and the people's blood (suddenly of some value,
          after many years of worthlessness) be unavenged.</para>

          <para>In the howling universe of passion and contention
          that seemed to encompass this grim old officer
          conspicuous in his grey coat and red decoration, there
          was but one quite steady figure, and that was a woman's.
          "See, there is my husband!" she cried, pointing him out.
          "See Defarge!" She stood immovable close to the grain old
          officer, and remained immovable close to him; remained
          immovable close to him through the streets, as Defarge
          and the rest bore him along; remained immovable close to
          him when he was got near his destination, and began to be
          struck at from behind; remained immovable close to him
          when the long-gathering rain of stabs and blows fell
          heavy; was so close to him when he dropped dead under it,
          that, suddenly animated, she put her foot upon his neck,
          and with her cruel knife--long ready--hewed off his
          head.</para>

          <para>The hour was come, when Saint Antoine was to
          execute his horrible idea of hoisting up men for lamps to
          show what he could be and do. Saint Antoine's blood was
          up, and the blood of tyranny and domination by the iron
          hand was down--down on the steps of the Hotel de Ville
          where the governor's body lay--down on the sole of the
          shoe of Madame Defarge where she had trodden on the body
          to steady it for mutilation. "Lower the lamp yonder!"
          cried Saint Antoine, after glaring round for a new means
          of death; "here is one of his soldiers to be left on
          guard!" The swinging sentinel was posted, and the sea
          rushed on.</para>

          <para>The sea of black and threatening waters, and of
          destructive upheaving of wave against wave, whose depths
          were yet unfathomed and whose forces were yet unknown.
          The remorseless sea of turbulently swaying shapes, voices
          of vengeance, and faces hardened in the furnaces of
          suffering until the touch of pity could make no mark on
          them.</para>

          <para>But, in the ocean of faces where every fierce and
          furious expression was in vivid life, there were two
          groups of faces--each seven in number --so fixedly
          contrasting with the rest, that never did sea roll which
          bore more memorable wrecks with it. Seven faces of
          prisoners, suddenly released by the storm that had burst
          their tomb, were carried high overhead: all scared, all
          lost, all wondering and amazed, as if the Last Day were
          come, and those who rejoiced around them were lost
          spirits. Other seven faces there were, carried higher,
          seven dead faces, whose drooping eyelids and half-seen
          eyes awaited the Last Day. Impassive faces, yet with a
          suspended--not an abolished--expression on them; faces,
          rather, in a fearful pause, as having yet to raise the
          dropped lids of the eyes, and bear witness with the
          bloodless lips, "THOU DIDST IT!"</para>

          <para>Seven prisoners released, seven gory heads on
          pikes, the keys of the accursed fortress of the eight
          strong towers, some discovered letters and other
          memorials of prisoners of old time, long dead of broken
          hearts,--such, and such--like, the loudly echoing
          footsteps of Saint Antoine escort through the Paris
          streets in mid-July, one thousand seven hundred and
          eighty-nine. Now, Heaven defeat the fancy of Lucie
          Darnay, and keep these feet far out of her life! For,
          they are headlong, mad, and dangerous; and in the years
          so long after the breaking of the cask at Defarge's
          wine-shop door, they are not easily purified when once
          stained red.</para>
        </chapter>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>XXII</chapnum>

            <title>The Sea Still Rises</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>Haggard Saint Antoine had had only one exultant
          week, in which to soften his modicum of hard and bitter
          bread to such extent as he could, with the relish of
          fraternal embraces and congratulations, when Madame
          Defarge sat at her counter, as usual, presiding over the
          customers. Madame Defarge wore no rose in her head, for
          the great brotherhood of Spies had become, even in one
          short week, extremely chary of trusting themselves to the
          saint's mercies. The lamps across his streets had a
          portentously elastic swing with them.</para>

          <para>Madame Defarge, with her arms folded, sat in the
          morning light and heat, contemplating the wine-shop and
          the street. In both, there were several knots of
          loungers, squalid and miserable, but now with a manifest
          sense of power enthroned on their distress. The raggedest
          nightcap, awry on the wretchedest head, had this crooked
          significance in it: "I know how hard it has grown for me,
          the wearer of this, to support life in myself; but do you
          know how easy it has grown for me, the wearer of this, to
          destroy life in you?" Every lean bare arm, that bad been
          without work before, had this work always ready for it
          now, that it could strike. The fingers of the knitting
          women were vicious, with the experience that they could
          tear. There was a change in the appearance of Saint
          Antoine; the image had been hammering into this for
          hundreds of years, and the last finishing blows had told
          mightily on the expression.</para>

          <para>Madame Defarge sat observing it, with such
          suppressed approval as was to be desired in the leader of
          the Saint Antoine women. One of her sisterhood knitted
          beside her. The short, rather plump wife of a starved
          grocer, and the mother of two children withal, this
          lieutenant had already earned the complimentary name of
          The Vengeance.</para>

          <para>"Hark!" said The Vengeance. "Listen, then! Who
          comes?"</para>

          <para>As if a train of powder laid from the outermost
          bound of Saint Antoine Quarter to the wine-shop door, had
          been suddenly fired, a fast-spreading murmur came rushing
          along.</para>

          <para>"It is Defarge," said madame. "Silence,
          patriots!"</para>

          <para>Defarge came in breathless, pulled off a red cap he
          wore, and looked around him! "Listen, everywhere!" said
          madame again. "Listen to him!" Defarge stood, panting,
          against a background of eager eyes and open mouths,
          formed outside the door; all those within the wine-shop
          had sprung to their feet.</para>

          <para>"Say then, my husband. What is it?"</para>

          <para>"News from the other world!"</para>

          <para>"How, then?" cried madame, contemptuously. "The
          other world?"</para>

          <para>"Does everybody here recall old Foulon, who told
          the famished people that they might eat grass, and who
          died, and went to Hell?"</para>

          <para>"Everybody!" from all throats.</para>

          <para>"The news is of him. He is among us!"</para>

          <para>"Among us!" from the universal throat again. "And
          dead?"</para>

          <para>"Not dead! He feared us so much--and with
          reason--that he caused himself to be represented as dead,
          and had a grand mock-funeral. But they have found him
          alive, hiding in the country, and have brought him in. I
          have seen him but now, on his way to the Hotel de Ville,
          a prisoner. I have said that he had reason to fear us.
          Say all! HAD he reason?"</para>

          <para>Wretched old sinner of more than threescore years
          and ten, if he had never known it yet, he would have
          known it in his heart of hearts if he could have heard
          the answering cry.</para>

          <para>A moment of profound silence followed. Defarge and
          his wife looked steadfastly at one another. The Vengeance
          stooped, and the jar of a drum was heard as she moved it
          at her feet behind the counter.</para>

          <para>"Patriots!" said Defarge, in a determined voice,
          "are we ready?"</para>

          <para>Instantly Madame Defarge's knife was in her girdle;
          the drum was beating in the streets, as if it and a
          drummer had flown together by magic; and The Vengeance,
          uttering terrific shrieks, and flinging her arms about
          her head like all the forty Furies at once, was tearing
          from house to house, rousing the women.</para>

          <para>The men were terrible, in the bloody-minded anger
          with which they looked from windows, caught up what arms
          they had, and came pouring down into the streets; but,
          the women were a sight to chill the boldest. From such
          household occupations as their bare poverty yielded, from
          their children, from their aged and their sick crouching
          on the bare ground famished and naked, they ran out with
          streaming hair, urging one another, and themselves, to
          madness with the wildest cries and actions. Villain
          Foulon taken, my sister! Old Foulon taken, my mother!
          Miscreant Foulon taken, my daughter! Then, a score of
          others ran into the midst of these, beating their
          breasts, tearing their hair, and screaming, Foulon alive!
          Foulon who told the starving people they might eat grass!
          Foulon who told my old father that he might eat grass,
          when I had no bread to give him! Foulon who told my baby
          it might suck grass, when these breasts where dry with
          want! O mother of God, this Foulon! O Heaven our
          suffering! Hear me, my dead baby and my withered father:
          I swear on my knees, on these stones, to avenge you on
          Foulon! Husbands, and brothers, and young men, Give us
          the blood of Foulon, Give us the head of Foulon, Give us
          the heart of Foulon, Give us the body and soul of Foulon,
          Rend Foulon to pieces, and dig him into the ground, that
          grass may grow from him! With these cries, numbers of the
          women, lashed into blind frenzy, whirled about, striking
          and tearing at their own friends until they dropped into
          a passionate swoon, and were only saved by the men
          belonging to them from being trampled under foot.</para>

          <para>Nevertheless, not a moment was lost; not a moment!
          This Foulon was at the Hotel de Ville, and might be
          loosed. Never, if Saint Antoine knew his own sufferings,
          insults, and wrongs! Armed men and women flocked out of
          the Quarter so fast, and drew even these last dregs after
          them with such a force of suction, that within a quarter
          of an hour there was not a human creature in Saint
          Antoine's bosom but a few old crones and the wailing
          children.</para>

          <para>No. They were all by that time choking the Hall of
          Examination where this old man, ugly and wicked, was, and
          overflowing into the adjacent open space and streets. The
          Defarges, husband and wife, The Vengeance, and Jacques
          Three, were in the first press, and at no great distance
          from him in the Hall.</para>

          <para>"See!" cried madame, pointing with her knife. "See
          the old villain bound with ropes. That was well done to
          tie a bunch of grass upon his back. Ha, ha! That was well
          done. Let him eat it now!" Madame put her knife under her
          arm, and clapped her hands as at a play.</para>

          <para>The people immediately behind Madame Defarge,
          explaining the cause of her satisfaction to those behind
          them, and those again explaining to others, and those to
          others, the neighbouring streets resounded with the
          clapping of hands. Similarly, during two or three hours
          of drawl, and the winnowing of many bushels of words,
          Madame Defarge's frequent expressions of impatience were
          taken up, with marvellous quickness, at a distance: the
          more readily, because certain men who had by some
          wonderful exercise of agility climbed up the external
          architecture to look in from the windows, knew Madame
          Defarge well, and acted as a telegraph between her and
          the crowd outside the building.</para>

          <para>At length the sun rose so high that it struck a
          kindly ray as of hope or protection, directly down upon
          the old prisoner's head. The favour was too much to bear;
          in an instant the barrier of dust and chaff that had
          stood surprisingly long, went to the winds, and Saint
          Antoine had got him!</para>

          <para>It was known directly, to the furthest confines of
          the crowd. Defarge had but sprung over a railing and a
          table, and folded the miserable wretch in a deadly
          embrace--Madame Defarge had but followed and turned her
          hand in one of the ropes with which he was tied--The
          Vengeance and Jacques Three were not yet up with them,
          and the men at the windows had not yet swooped into the
          Hall, like birds of prey from their high perches--when
          the cry seemed to go up, all over the city, "Bring him
          out! Bring him to the lamp!"</para>

          <para>Down, and up, and head foremost on the steps of the
          building; now, on his knees; now, on his feet; now, on
          his back; dragged, and struck at, and stifled by the
          bunches of grass and straw that were thrust into his face
          by hundreds of hands; torn, bruised, panting, bleeding,
          yet always entreating and beseeching for mercy; now full
          of vehement agony of action, with a small clear space
          about him as the people drew one another back that they
          might see; now, a log of dead wood drawn through a forest
          of legs; he was hauled to the nearest street corner where
          one of the fatal lamps swung, and there Madame Defarge
          let him go--as a cat might have done to a mouse--and
          silently and composedly looked at him while they made
          ready, and while he besought her: the women passionately
          screeching at him all the time, and the men sternly
          calling out to have him killed with grass in his mouth.
          Once, he went aloft, and the rope broke, and they caught
          him shrieking; twice, he went aloft, and the rope broke,
          and they caught him shrieking; then, the rope was
          merciful, and held him, and his head was soon upon a
          pike, with grass enough in the mouth for all Saint
          Antoine to dance at the sight of.</para>

          <para>Nor was this the end of the day's bad work, for
          Saint Antoine so shouted and danced his angry blood up,
          that it boiled again, on hearing when the day closed in
          that the son-in-law of the despatched, another of the
          people's enemies and insulters, was coming into Paris
          under a guard five hundred strong, in cavalry alone.
          Saint Antoine wrote his crimes on flaring sheets of
          paper, seized him--would have torn him out of the breast
          of an army to bear Foulon company--set his head and heart
          on pikes, and carried the three spoils of the day, in
          Wolf-procession through the streets.</para>

          <para>Not before dark night did the men and women come
          back to the children, wailing and breadless. Then, the
          miserable bakers' shops were beset by long files of them,
          patiently waiting to buy bad bread; and while they waited
          with stomachs faint and empty, they beguiled the time by
          embracing one another on the triumphs of the day, and
          achieving them again in gossip. Gradually, these strings
          of ragged people shortened and frayed away; and then poor
          lights began to shine in high windows, and slender fires
          were made in the streets, at which neighbours cooked in
          common, afterwards supping at their doors.</para>

          <para>Scanty and insufficient suppers those, and innocent
          of meat, as of most other sauce to wretched bread. Yet,
          human fellowship infused some nourishment into the flinty
          viands, and struck some sparks of cheerfulness out of
          them. Fathers and mothers who had had their full share in
          the worst of the day, played gently with their meagre
          children; and lovers, with such a world around them and
          before them, loved and hoped.</para>

          <para>It was almost morning, when Defarge's wine-shop
          parted with its last knot of customers, and Monsieur
          Defarge said to madame his wife, in husky tones, while
          fastening the door:</para>

          <para>"At last it is come, my dear!"</para>

          <para>"Eh well!" returned madame. "Almost."</para>

          <para>Saint Antoine slept, the Defarges slept: even The
          Vengeance slept with her starved grocer, and the drum was
          at rest. The drum's was the only voice in Saint Antoine
          that blood and hurry had not changed. The Vengeance, as
          custodian of the drum, could have wakened him up and had
          the same speech out of him as before the Bastille fell,
          or old Foulon was seized; not so with the hoarse tones of
          the men and women in Saint Antoine's bosom.</para>
        </chapter>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>XXIII</chapnum>

            <title>Fire Rises</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>There was a change on the village where the
          fountain fell, and where the mender of roads went forth
          daily to hammer out of the stones on the highway such
          morsels of bread as might serve for patches to hold his
          poor ignorant soul and his poor reduced body together.
          The prison on the crag was not so dominant as of yore;
          there were soldiers to guard it, but not many; there were
          officers to guard the soldiers, but not one of them knew
          what his men would do--beyond this: that it would
          probably not be what he was ordered.</para>

          <para>Far and wide lay a ruined country, yielding nothing
          but desolation. Every green leaf, every blade of grass
          and blade of grain, was as shrivelled and poor as the
          miserable people. Everything was bowed down, dejected,
          oppressed, and broken. Habitations, fences, domesticated
          animals, men, women, children, and the soil that bore
          them--all worn out.</para>

          <para>Monseigneur (often a most worthy individual
          gentleman) was a national blessing, gave a chivalrous
          tone to things, was a polite example of luxurious and
          shining fife, and a great deal more to equal purpose;
          nevertheless, Monseigneur as a class had, somehow or
          other, brought things to this. Strange that Creation,
          designed expressly for Monseigneur, should be so soon
          wrung dry and squeezed out! There must be something
          short-sighted in the eternal arrangements, surely! Thus
          it was, however; and the last drop of blood having been
          extracted from the flints, and the last screw of the rack
          having been turned so often that its purchase crumbled,
          and it now turned and turned with nothing to bite,
          Monseigneur began to run away from a phenomenon so low
          and unaccountable.</para>

          <para>But, this was not the change on the village, and on
          many a village like it. For scores of years gone by,
          Monseigneur had squeezed it and wrung it, and had seldom
          graced it with his presence except for the pleasures of
          the chase--now, found in hunting the people; now, found
          in hunting the beasts, for whose preservation Monseigneur
          made edifying spaces of barbarous and barren wilderness.
          No. The change consisted in the appearance of strange
          faces of low caste, rather than in the disappearance of
          the high caste, chiselled, and otherwise beautified and
          beautifying features of Monseigneur.</para>

          <para>For, in these times, as the mender of roads worked,
          solitary, in the dust, not often troubling himself to
          reflect that dust he was and to dust he must return,
          being for the most part too much occupied in thinking how
          little he had for supper and how much more he would eat
          if he had it--in these times, as he raised his eyes from
          his lonely labour, and viewed the prospect, he would see
          some rough figure approaching on foot, the like of which
          was once a rarity in those parts, but was now a frequent
          presence. As it advanced, the mender of roads would
          discern without surprise, that it was a shaggy-haired
          man, of almost barbarian aspect, tall, in wooden shoes
          that were clumsy even to the eyes of a mender of roads,
          grim, rough, swart, steeped in the mud and dust of many
          highways, dank with the marshy moisture of many low
          grounds, sprinkled with the thorns and leaves and moss of
          many byways through woods.</para>

          <para>Such a man came upon him, like a ghost, at noon in
          the July weather, as he sat on his heap of stones under a
          bank, taking such shelter as he could get from a shower
          of hail.</para>

          <para>The man looked at him, looked at the village in the
          hollow, at the mill, and at the prison on the crag. When
          he had identified these objects in what benighted mind he
          had, he said, in a dialect that was just
          intelligible:</para>

          <para>"How goes it, Jacques?"</para>

          <para>"All well, Jacques."</para>

          <para>"Touch then!"</para>

          <para>They joined hands, and the man sat down on the heap
          of stones.</para>

          <para>"No dinner?"</para>

          <para>"Nothing but supper now," said the mender of roads,
          with a hungry face.</para>

          <para>"It is the fashion," growled the man. "I meet no
          dinner anywhere."</para>

          <para>He took out a blackened pipe, filled it, lighted it
          with flint and steel, pulled at it until it was in a
          bright glow: then, suddenly held it from him and dropped
          something into it from between his finger and thumb, that
          blazed and went out in a puff of smoke.</para>

          <para>"Touch then." It was the turn of the mender of
          roads to say it this time, after observing these
          operations. They again joined hands.</para>

          <para>"To-night?" said the mender of roads.</para>

          <para>"To-night," said the man, putting the pipe in his
          mouth.</para>

          <para>"Where?"</para>

          <para>"Here."</para>

          <para>He and the mender of roads sat on the heap of
          stones looking silently at one another, with the hail
          driving in between them like a pigmy charge of bayonets,
          until the sky began to clear over the village.</para>

          <para>"Show me!" said the traveller then, moving to the
          brow of the hill.</para>

          <para>"See!" returned the mender of roads, with extended
          finger. "You go down here, and straight through the
          street, and past the fountain--"</para>

          <para>"To the Devil with all that!" interrupted the
          other, rolling his eye over the landscape. "_I_ go
          through no streets and past no fountains. Well?"</para>

          <para>"Well! About two leagues beyond the summit of that
          hill above the village."</para>

          <para>"Good. When do you cease to work?"</para>

          <para>"At sunset."</para>

          <para>"Will you wake me, before departing? I have walked
          two nights without resting. Let me finish my pipe, and I
          shall sleep like a child. Will you wake me?"</para>

          <para>"Surely."</para>

          <para>The wayfarer smoked his pipe out, put it in his
          breast, slipped off his great wooden shoes, and lay down
          on his back on the heap of stones. He was fast asleep
          directly.</para>

          <para>As the road-mender plied his dusty labour, and the
          hail-clouds, rolling away, revealed bright bars and
          streaks of sky which were responded to by silver gleams
          upon the landscape, the little man (who wore a red cap
          now, in place of his blue one) seemed fascinated by the
          figure on the heap of stones. His eyes were so often
          turned towards it, that he used his tools mechanically,
          and, one would have said, to very poor account. The
          bronze face, the shaggy black hair and beard, the coarse
          woollen red cap, the rough medley dress of home-spun
          stuff and hairy skins of beasts, the powerful frame
          attenuated by spare living, and the sullen and desperate
          compression of the lips in sleep, inspired the mender of
          roads with awe. The traveller had travelled far, and his
          feet were footsore, and his ankles chafed and bleeding;
          his great shoes, stuffed with leaves and grass, had been
          heavy to drag over the many long leagues, and his clothes
          were chafed into holes, as he himself was into sores.
          Stooping down beside him, the road-mender tried to get a
          peep at secret weapons in his breast or where not; but,
          in vain, for he slept with his arms crossed upon him, and
          set as resolutely as his lips. Fortified towns with their
          stockades, guard-houses, gates, trenches, and
          drawbridges, seemed to the mender of roads, to be so much
          air as against this figure. And when he lifted his eyes
          from it to the horizon and looked around, he saw in his
          small fancy similar figures, stopped by no obstacle,
          tending to centres all over France.</para>

          <para>The man slept on, indifferent to showers of hail
          and intervals of brightness, to sunshine on his face and
          shadow, to the paltering lumps of dull ice on his body
          and the diamonds into which the sun changed them, until
          the sun was low in the west, and the sky was glowing.
          Then, the mender of roads having got his tools together
          and all things ready to go down into the village, roused
          him.</para>

          <para>"Good!" said the sleeper, rising on his elbow. "Two
          leagues beyond the summit of the hill?"</para>

          <para>"About."</para>

          <para>"About. Good!"</para>

          <para>The mender of roads went home, with the dust going
          on before him according to the set of the wind, and was
          soon at the fountain, squeezing himself in among the lean
          kine brought there to drink, and appearing even to
          whisper to them in his whispering to all the village.
          When the village had taken its poor supper, it did not
          creep to bed, as it usually did, but came out of doors
          again, and remained there. A curious contagion of
          whispering was upon it, and also, when it gathered
          together at the fountain in the dark, another curious
          contagion of looking expectantly at the sky in one
          direction only. Monsieur Gabelle, chief functionary of
          the place, became uneasy; went out on his house-top
          alone, and looked in that direction too; glanced down
          from behind his chimneys at the darkening faces by the
          fountain below, and sent word to the sacristan who kept
          the keys of the church, that there might be need to ring
          the tocsin by-and-bye.</para>

          <para>The night deepened. The trees environing the old
          chateau, keeping its solitary state apart, moved in a
          rising wind, as though they threatened the pile of
          building massive and dark in the gloom. Up the two
          terrace flights of steps the rain ran wildly, and beat at
          the great door, like a swift messenger rousing those
          within; uneasy rushes of wind went through the hall,
          among the old spears and knives, and passed lamenting up
          the stairs, and shook the curtains of the bed where the
          last Marquis had slept. East, West, North, and South,
          through the woods, four heavy-treading, unkempt figures
          crushed the high grass and cracked the branches, striding
          on cautiously to come together in the courtyard. Four
          lights broke out there, and moved away in different
          directions, and all was black again.</para>

          <para>But, not for long. Presently, the chateau began to
          make itself strangely visible by some light of its own,
          as though it were growing luminous. Then, a flickering
          streak played behind the architecture of the front,
          picking out transparent places, and showing where
          balustrades, arches, and windows were. Then it soared
          higher, and grew broader and brighter. Soon, from a score
          of the great windows, flames burst forth, and the stone
          faces awakened, stared out of fire.</para>

          <para>A faint murmur arose about the house from the few
          people who were left there, and there was a saddling of a
          horse and riding away. There was spurring and splashing
          through the darkness, and bridle was drawn in the space
          by the village fountain, and the horse in a foam stood at
          Monsieur Gabelle's door. "Help, Gabelle! Help, every
          one!" The tocsin rang impatiently, but other help (if
          that were any) there was none. The mender of roads, and
          two hundred and fifty particular friends, stood with
          folded arms at the fountain, looking at the pillar of
          fire in the sky. "It must be forty feet high," said they,
          grimly; and never moved.</para>

          <para>The rider from the chateau, and the horse in a
          foam, clattered away through the village, and galloped up
          the stony steep, to the prison on the crag. At the gate,
          a group of officers were looking at the fire; removed
          from them, a group of soldiers. "Help, gentlemen--
          officers! The chateau is on fire; valuable objects may be
          saved from the flames by timely aid! Help, help!" The
          officers looked towards the soldiers who looked at the
          fire; gave no orders; and answered, with shrugs and
          biting of lips, "It must burn."</para>

          <para>As the rider rattled down the hill again and
          through the street, the village was illuminating. The
          mender of roads, and the two hundred and fifty particular
          friends, inspired as one man and woman by the idea of
          lighting up, had darted into their houses, and were
          putting candles in every dull little pane of glass. The
          general scarcity of everything, occasioned candles to be
          borrowed in a rather peremptory manner of Monsieur
          Gabelle; and in a moment of reluctance and hesitation on
          that functionary's part, the mender of roads, once so
          submissive to authority, had remarked that carriages were
          good to make bonfires with, and that post-horses would
          roast.</para>

          <para>The chateau was left to itself to flame and burn.
          In the roaring and raging of the conflagration, a red-hot
          wind, driving straight from the infernal regions, seemed
          to be blowing the edifice away. With the rising and
          falling of the blaze, the stone faces showed as if they
          were in torment. When great masses of stone and timber
          fell, the face with the two dints in the nose became
          obscured: anon struggled out of the smoke again, as if it
          were the face of the cruel Marquis, burning at the stake
          and contending with the fire.</para>

          <para>The chateau burned; the nearest trees, laid hold of
          by the fire, scorched and shrivelled; trees at a
          distance, fired by the four fierce figures, begirt the
          blazing edifice with a new forest of smoke. Molten lead
          and iron boiled in the marble basin of the fountain; the
          water ran dry; the extinguisher tops of the towers
          vanished like ice before the heat, and trickled down into
          four rugged wells of flame. Great rents and splits
          branched out in the solid walls, like crystallisation;
          stupefied birds wheeled about and dropped into the
          furnace; four fierce figures trudged away, East, West,
          North, and South, along the night- enshrouded roads,
          guided by the beacon they had lighted, towards their next
          destination. The illuminated village had seized hold of
          the tocsin, and, abolishing the lawful ringer, rang for
          joy.</para>

          <para>Not only that; but the village, light-headed with
          famine, fire, and bell-ringing, and bethinking itself
          that Monsieur Gabelle had to do with the collection of
          rent and taxes--though it was but a small instalment of
          taxes, and no rent at all, that Gabelle had got in those
          latter days--became impatient for an interview with him,
          and, surrounding his house, summoned him to come forth
          for personal conference. Whereupon, Monsieur Gabelle did
          heavily bar his door, and retire to hold counsel with
          himself. The result of that conference was, that Gabelle
          again withdrew himself to his housetop behind his stack
          of chimneys; this time resolved, if his door were broken
          in (he was a small Southern man of retaliative
          temperament), to pitch himself head foremost over the
          parapet, and crush a man or two below.</para>

          <para>Probably, Monsieur Gabelle passed a long night up
          there, with the distant chateau for fire and candle, and
          the beating at his door, combined with the joy-ringing,
          for music; not to mention his having an ill-omened lamp
          slung across the road before his posting-house gate,
          which the village showed a lively inclination to displace
          in his favour. A trying suspense, to be passing a whole
          summer night on the brink of the black ocean, ready to
          take that plunge into it upon which Monsieur Gabelle had
          resolved! But, the friendly dawn appearing at last, and
          the rush-candles of the village guttering out, the people
          happily dispersed, and Monsieur Gabelle came down
          bringing his life with him for that while.</para>

          <para>Within a hundred miles, and in the light of other
          fires, there were other functionaries less fortunate,
          that night and other nights, whom the rising sun found
          hanging across once-peaceful streets, where they had been
          born and bred; also, there were other villagers and
          townspeople less fortunate than the mender of roads and
          his fellows, upon whom the functionaries and soldiery
          turned with success, and whom they strung up in their
          turn. But, the fierce figures were steadily wending East,
          West, North, and South, be that as it would; and
          whosoever hung, fire burned. The altitude of the gallows
          that would turn to water and quench it, no functionary,
          by any stretch of mathematics, was able to calculate
          successfully.</para>
        </chapter>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>XXIV</chapnum>

            <title>Drawn to the Loadstone Rock</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>In such risings of fire and risings of sea--the
          firm earth shaken by the rushes of an angry ocean which
          had now no ebb, but was always on the flow, higher and
          higher, to the terror and wonder of the beholders on the
          shore--three years of tempest were consumed. Three more
          birthdays of little Lucie had been woven by the golden
          thread into the peaceful tissue of the life of her
          home.</para>

          <para>Many a night and many a day had its inmates
          listened to the echoes in the corner, with hearts that
          failed them when they heard the thronging feet. For, the
          footsteps had become to their minds as the footsteps of a
          people, tumultuous under a red flag and with their
          country declared in danger, changed into wild beasts, by
          terrible enchantment long persisted in.</para>

          <para>Monseigneur, as a class, had dissociated himself
          from the phenomenon of his not being appreciated: of his
          being so little wanted in France, as to incur
          considerable danger of receiving his dismissal from it,
          and this life together. Like the fabled rustic who raised
          the Devil with infinite pains, and was so terrified at
          the sight of him that he could ask the Enemy no question,
          but immediately fled; so, Monseigneur, after boldly
          reading the Lord's Prayer backwards for a great number of
          years, and performing many other potent spells for
          compelling the Evil One, no sooner beheld him in his
          terrors than he took to his noble heels.</para>

          <para>The shining Bull's Eye of the Court was gone, or it
          would have been the mark for a hurricane of national
          bullets. It had never been a good eye to see with--had
          long had the mote in it of Lucifer's pride,
          Sardana--palus's luxury, and a mole's blindness--but it
          had dropped out and was gone. The Court, from that
          exclusive inner circle to its outermost rotten ring of
          intrigue, corruption, and dissimulation, was all gone
          together. Royalty was gone; had been besieged in its
          Palace and "suspended," when the last tidings came
          over.</para>

          <para>The August of the year one thousand seven hundred
          and ninety-two was come, and Monseigneur was by this time
          scattered far and wide.</para>

          <para>As was natural, the head-quarters and great
          gathering-place of Monseigneur, in London, was Tellson's
          Bank. Spirits are supposed to haunt the places where
          their bodies most resorted, and Monseigneur without a
          guinea haunted the spot where his guineas used to be.
          Moreover, it was the spot to which such French
          intelligence as was most to be relied upon, came
          quickest. Again: Tellson's was a munificent house, and
          extended great liberality to old customers who had fallen
          from their high estate. Again: those nobles who had seen
          the coming storm in time, and anticipating plunder or
          confiscation, had made provident remittances to
          Tellson's, were always to be heard of there by their
          needy brethren. To which it must be added that every
          new-comer from France reported himself and his tidings at
          Tellson's, almost as a matter of course. For such variety
          of reasons, Tellson's was at that time, as to French
          intelligence, a kind of High Exchange; and this was so
          well known to the public, and the inquiries made there
          were in consequence so numerous, that Tellson's sometimes
          wrote the latest news out in a line or so and posted it
          in the Bank windows, for all who ran through Temple Bar
          to read.</para>

          <para>On a steaming, misty afternoon, Mr. Lorry sat at
          his desk, and Charles Darnay stood leaning on it, talking
          with him in a low voice. The penitential den once set
          apart for interviews with the House, was now the
          news-Exchange, and was filled to overflowing. It was
          within half an hour or so of the time of closing.</para>

          <para>"But, although you are the youngest man that ever
          lived," said Charles Darnay, rather hesitating, "I must
          still suggest to you--"</para>

          <para>"I understand. That I am too old?" said Mr.
          Lorry.</para>

          <para>"Unsettled weather, a long journey, uncertain means
          of travelling, a disorganised country, a city that may
          not be even safe for you."</para>

          <para>"My dear Charles," said Mr. Lorry, with cheerful
          confidence, "you touch some of the reasons for my going:
          not for my staying away. It is safe enough for me; nobody
          will care to interfere with an old fellow of hard upon
          fourscore when there are so many people there much better
          worth interfering with. As to its being a disorganised
          city, if it were not a disorganised city there would be
          no occasion to send somebody from our House here to our
          House there, who knows the city and the business, of old,
          and is in Tellson's confidence. As to the uncertain
          travelling, the long journey, and the winter weather, if
          I were not prepared to submit myself to a few
          inconveniences for the sake of Tellson's, after all these
          years, who ought to be?"</para>

          <para>"I wish I were going myself," said Charles Darnay,
          somewhat restlessly, and like one thinking aloud.</para>

          <para>"Indeed! You are a pretty fellow to object and
          advise!" exclaimed Mr. Lorry. "You wish you were going
          yourself? And you a Frenchman born? You are a wise
          counsellor."</para>

          <para>"My dear Mr. Lorry, it is because I am a Frenchman
          born, that the thought (which I did not mean to utter
          here, however) has passed through my mind often. One
          cannot help thinking, having had some sympathy for the
          miserable people, and having abandoned something to
          them," he spoke here in his former thoughtful manner,
          "that one might be listened to, and might have the power
          to persuade to some restraint. Only last night, after you
          had left us, when I was talking to Lucie--"</para>

          <para>"When you were talking to Lucie," Mr. Lorry
          repeated. "Yes. I wonder you are not ashamed to mention
          the name of Lucie! Wishing you were going to France at
          this time of day!"</para>

          <para>"However, I am not going," said Charles Darnay,
          with a smile. "It is more to the purpose that you say you
          are."</para>

          <para>"And I am, in plain reality. The truth is, my dear
          Charles," Mr. Lorry glanced at the distant House, and
          lowered his voice, "you can have no conception of the
          difficulty with which our business is transacted, and of
          the peril in which our books and papers over yonder are
          involved. The Lord above knows what the compromising
          consequences would be to numbers of people, if some of
          our documents were seized or destroyed; and they might
          be, at any time, you know, for who can say that Paris is
          not set afire to-day, or sacked to-morrow! Now, a
          judicious selection from these with the least possible
          delay, and the burying of them, or otherwise getting of
          them out of harm's way, is within the power (without loss
          of precious time) of scarcely any one but myself, if any
          one. And shall I hang back, when Tellson's knows this and
          says this--Tellson's, whose bread I have eaten these
          sixty years--because I am a little stiff about the
          joints? Why, I am a boy, sir, to half a dozen old codgers
          here!"</para>

          <para>"How I admire the gallantry of your youthful
          spirit, Mr. Lorry."</para>

          <para>"Tut! Nonsense, sir!--And, my dear Charles," said
          Mr. Lorry, glancing at the House again, "you are to
          remember, that getting things out of Paris at this
          present time, no matter what things, is next to an
          impossibility. Papers and precious matters were this very
          day brought to us here (I speak in strict confidence; it
          is not business-like to whisper it, even to you), by the
          strangest bearers you can imagine, every one of whom had
          his head hanging on by a single hair as he passed the
          Barriers. At another time, our parcels would come and go,
          as easily as in business-like Old England; but now,
          everything is stopped."</para>

          <para>"And do you really go to-night?"</para>

          <para>"I really go to-night, for the case has become too
          pressing to admit of delay."</para>

          <para>"And do you take no one with you?"</para>

          <para>"All sorts of people have been proposed to me, but
          I will have nothing to say to any of them. I intend to
          take Jerry. Jerry has been my bodyguard on Sunday nights
          for a long time past and I am used to him. Nobody will
          suspect Jerry of being anything but an English bull-dog,
          or of having any design in his head but to fly at anybody
          who touches his master."</para>

          <para>"I must say again that I heartily admire your
          gallantry and youthfulness."</para>

          <para>"I must say again, nonsense, nonsense! When I have
          executed this little commission, I shall, perhaps, accept
          Tellson's proposal to retire and live at my ease. Time
          enough, then, to think about growing old."</para>

          <para>This dialogue had taken place at Mr. Lorry's usual
          desk, with Monseigneur swarming within a yard or two of
          it, boastful of what he would do to avenge himself on the
          rascal-people before long. It was too much the way of
          Monseigneur under his reverses as a refugee, and it was
          much too much the way of native British orthodoxy, to
          talk of this terrible Revolution as if it were the only
          harvest ever known under the skies that had not been
          sown--as if nothing had ever been done, or omitted to be
          done, that had led to it--as if observers of the wretched
          millions in France, and of the misused and perverted
          resources that should have made them prosperous, had not
          seen it inevitably coming, years before, and had not in
          plain words recorded what they saw. Such vapouring,
          combined with the extravagant plots of Monseigneur for
          the restoration of a state of things that had utterly
          exhausted itself, and worn out Heaven and earth as well
          as itself, was hard to be endured without some
          remonstrance by any sane man who knew the truth. And it
          was such vapouring all about his ears, like a troublesome
          confusion of blood in his own head, added to a latent
          uneasiness in his mind, which had already made Charles
          Darnay restless, and which still kept him so.</para>

          <para>Among the talkers, was Stryver, of the King's Bench
          Bar, far on his way to state promotion, and, therefore,
          loud on the theme: broaching to Monseigneur, his devices
          for blowing the people up and exterminating them from the
          face of the earth, and doing without them: and for
          accomplishing many similar objects akin in their nature
          to the abolition of eagles by sprinkling salt on the
          tails of the race. Him, Darnay heard with a particular
          feeling of objection; and Darnay stood divided between
          going away that he might hear no more, and remaining to
          interpose his word, when the thing that was to be, went
          on to shape itself out.</para>

          <para>The House approached Mr. Lorry, and laying a soiled
          and unopened letter before him, asked if he had yet
          discovered any traces of the person to whom it was
          addressed? The House laid the letter down so close to
          Darnay that he saw the direction--the more quickly
          because it was his own right name. The address, turned
          into English, ran:</para>

          <para>"Very pressing. To Monsieur heretofore the Marquis
          St. Evremonde, of France. Confided to the cares of
          Messrs. Tellson and Co., Bankers, London,
          England."</para>

          <para>On the marriage morning, Doctor Manette bad made it
          his one urgent and express request to Charles Darnay,
          that the secret of this name should be--unless he, the
          Doctor, dissolved the obligation--kept inviolate between
          them. Nobody else knew it to be his name; his own wife
          had no suspicion of the fact; Mr. Lorry could have
          none.</para>

          <para>"No," said Mr. Lorry, in reply to the House; "I
          have referred it, I think, to everybody now here, and no
          one can tell me where this gentleman is to be
          found."</para>

          <para>The hands of the clock verging upon the hour of
          closing the Bank, there was a general set of the current
          of talkers past Mr. Lorry's desk. He held the letter out
          inquiringly; and Monseigneur looked at it, in the person
          of this plotting and indignant refugee; and Monseigneur
          looked at it in the person of that plotting and indignant
          refugee; and This, That, and The Other, all had something
          disparaging to say, in French or in English, concerning
          the Marquis who was not to be found.</para>

          <para>"Nephew, I believe--but in any case degenerate
          successor--of the polished Marquis who was murdered,"
          said one. "Happy to say, I never knew him."</para>

          <para>"A craven who abandoned his post," said
          another--this Monseigneur had been got out of Paris, legs
          uppermost and half suffocated, in a load of hay--"some
          years ago."</para>

          <para>"Infected with the new doctrines," said a third,
          eyeing the direction through his glass in passing; "set
          himself in opposition to the last Marquis, abandoned the
          estates when he inherited them, and left them to the
          ruffian herd. They will recompense him now, I hope, as he
          deserves."</para>

          <para>"Hey?" cried the blatant Stryver. "Did he though?
          Is that the sort of fellow? Let us look at his infamous
          name. D--n the fellow!"</para>

          <para>Darnay, unable to restrain himself any longer,
          touched Mr. Stryver on the shoulder, and said:</para>

          <para>"I know the fellow."</para>

          <para>"Do you, by Jupiter?" said Stryver. "I am sorry for
          it."</para>

          <para>"Why?"</para>

          <para>"Why, Mr. Darnay? D'ye hear what he did? Don't ask,
          why, in these times."</para>

          <para>"But I do ask why?"</para>

          <para>"Then I tell you again, Mr. Darnay, I am sorry for
          it. I am sorry to hear you putting any such extraordinary
          questions. Here is a fellow, who, infected by the most
          pestilent and blasphemous code of devilry that ever was
          known, abandoned his property to the vilest scum of the
          earth that ever did murder by wholesale, and you ask me
          why I am sorry that a man who instructs youth knows him?
          Well, but I'll answer you. I am sorry because I believe
          there is contamination in such a scoundrel. That's
          why."</para>

          <para>Mindful of the secret, Darnay with great difficulty
          checked himself, and said: "You may not understand the
          gentleman."</para>

          <para>"I understand how to put YOU in a corner, Mr.
          Darnay," said Bully Stryver, "and I'll do it. If this
          fellow is a gentleman, I DON'T understand him. You may
          tell him so, with my compliments. You may also tell him,
          from me, that after abandoning his worldly goods and
          position to this butcherly mob, I wonder he is not at the
          head of them. But, no, gentlemen," said Stryver, looking
          all round, and snapping his fingers, "I know something of
          human nature, and I tell you that you'll never find a
          fellow like this fellow, trusting himself to the mercies
          of such precious PROTEGES. No, gentlemen; he'll always
          show 'em a clean pair of heels very early in the scuffle,
          and sneak away."</para>

          <para>With those words, and a final snap of his fingers,
          Mr. Stryver shouldered himself into Fleet-street, amidst
          the general approbation of his hearers. Mr. Lorry and
          Charles Darnay were left alone at the desk, in the
          general departure from the Bank.</para>

          <para>"Will you take charge of the letter?" said Mr.
          Lorry. "You know where to deliver it?"</para>

          <para>"I do."</para>

          <para>"Will you undertake to explain, that we suppose it
          to have been addressed here, on the chance of our knowing
          where to forward it, and that it has been here some
          time?"</para>

          <para>"I will do so. Do you start for Paris from
          here?"</para>

          <para>"From here, at eight."</para>

          <para>"I will come back, to see you off."</para>

          <para>Very ill at ease with himself, and with Stryver and
          most other men, Darnay made the best of his way into the
          quiet of the Temple, opened the letter, and read it.
          These were its contents:</para>

          <para>"Prison of the Abbaye, Paris.</para>

          <para>"June 21, 1792. "MONSIEUR HERETOFORE THE
          MARQUIS.</para>

          <para>"After having long been in danger of my life at the
          hands of the village, I have been seized, with great
          violence and indignity, and brought a long journey on
          foot to Paris. On the road I have suffered a great deal.
          Nor is that all; my house has been destroyed--razed to
          the ground.</para>

          <para>"The crime for which I am imprisoned, Monsieur
          heretofore the Marquis, and for which I shall be summoned
          before the tribunal, and shall lose my life (without your
          so generous help), is, they tell me, treason against the
          majesty of the people, in that I have acted against them
          for an emigrant. It is in vain I represent that I have
          acted for them, and not against, according to your
          commands. It is in vain I represent that, before the
          sequestration of emigrant property, I had remitted the
          imposts they had ceased to pay; that I had collected no
          rent; that I had had recourse to no process. The only
          response is, that I have acted for an emigrant, and where
          is that emigrant?</para>

          <para>"Ah! most gracious Monsieur heretofore the Marquis,
          where is that emigrant? I cry in my sleep where is he? I
          demand of Heaven, will he not come to deliver me? No
          answer. Ah Monsieur heretofore the Marquis, I send my
          desolate cry across the sea, hoping it may perhaps reach
          your ears through the great bank of Tilson known at
          Paris!</para>

          <para>"For the love of Heaven, of justice, of generosity,
          of the honour of your noble name, I supplicate you,
          Monsieur heretofore the Marquis, to succour and release
          me. My fault is, that I have been true to you. Oh
          Monsieur heretofore the Marquis, I pray you be you true
          to me!</para>

          <para>"From this prison here of horror, whence I every
          hour tend nearer and nearer to destruction, I send you,
          Monsieur heretofore the Marquis, the assurance of my
          dolorous and unhappy service.</para>

          <para>"Your afflicted,</para>

          <para>"Gabelle."</para>

          <para>The latent uneasiness in Darnay's mind was roused
          to vigourous life by this letter. The peril of an old
          servant and a good one, whose only crime was fidelity to
          himself and his family, stared him so reproachfully in
          the face, that, as he walked to and fro in the Temple
          considering what to do, he almost hid his face from the
          passersby.</para>

          <para>He knew very well, that in his horror of the deed
          which had culminated the bad deeds and bad reputation of
          the old family house, in his resentful suspicions of his
          uncle, and in the aversion with which his conscience
          regarded the crumbling fabric that he was supposed to
          uphold, he had acted imperfectly. He knew very well, that
          in his love for Lucie, his renunciation of his social
          place, though by no means new to his own mind, had been
          hurried and incomplete. He knew that he ought to have
          systematically worked it out and supervised it, and that
          he had meant to do it, and that it had never been
          done.</para>

          <para>The happiness of his own chosen English home, the
          necessity of being always actively employed, the swift
          changes and troubles of the time which bad followed on
          one another so fast, that the events of this week
          annihilated the immature plans of last week, and the
          events of the week following made all new again; he knew
          very well, that to the force of these circumstances he
          had yielded:--not without disquiet, but still without
          continuous and accumulating resistance. That he had
          watched the times for a time of action, and that they had
          shifted and struggled until the time had gone by, and the
          nobility were trooping from France by every highway and
          byway, and their property was in course of confiscation
          and destruction, and their very names were blotting out,
          was as well known to himself as it could be to any new
          authority in France that might impeach him for it.</para>

          <para>But, he had oppressed no man, he had imprisoned no
          man; he was so far from having harshly exacted payment of
          his dues, that he had relinquished them of his own will,
          thrown himself on a world with no favour in it, won his
          own private place there, and earned his own bread.
          Monsieur Gabelle had held the impoverished and involved
          estate on written instructions, to spare the people, to
          give them what little there was to give--such fuel as the
          heavy creditors would let them have in the winter, and
          such produce as could be saved from the same grip in the
          summer--and no doubt he had put the fact in plea and
          proof, for his own safety, so that it could not but
          appear now.</para>

          <para>This favoured the desperate resolution Charles
          Darnay had begun to make, that he would go to
          Paris.</para>

          <para>Yes. Like the mariner in the old story, the winds
          and streams had driven him within the influence of the
          Loadstone Rock, and it was drawing him to itself, and he
          must go. Everything that arose before his mind drifted
          him on, faster and faster, more and more steadily, to the
          terrible attraction. His latent uneasiness had been, that
          bad aims were being worked out in his own unhappy land by
          bad instruments, and that he who could not fail to know
          that he was better than they, was not there, trying to do
          something to stay bloodshed, and assert the claims of
          mercy and humanity. With this uneasiness half stifled,
          and half reproaching him, he had been brought to the
          pointed comparison of himself with the brave old
          gentleman in whom duty was so strong; upon that
          comparison (injurious to himself) had instantly followed
          the sneers of Monseigneur, which had stung him bitterly,
          and those of Stryver, which above all were coarse and
          galling, for old reasons. Upon those, had followed
          Gabelle's letter: the appeal of an innocent prisoner, in
          danger of death, to his justice, honour, and good
          name.</para>

          <para>His resolution was made. He must go to
          Paris.</para>

          <para>Yes. The Loadstone Rock was drawing him, and he
          must sail on, until he struck. He knew of no rock; he saw
          hardly any danger. The intention with which he had done
          what he had done, even although he had left it
          incomplete, presented it before him in an aspect that
          would be gratefully acknowledged in France on his
          presenting himself to assert it. Then, that glorious
          vision of doing good, which is so often the sanguine
          mirage of so many good minds, arose before him, and he
          even saw himself in the illusion with some influence to
          guide this raging Revolution that was running so
          fearfully wild.</para>

          <para>As he walked to and fro with his resolution made,
          he considered that neither Lucie nor her father must know
          of it until he was gone. Lucie should be spared the pain
          of separation; and her father, always reluctant to turn
          his thoughts towards the dangerous ground of old, should
          come to the knowledge of the step, as a step taken, and
          not in the balance of suspense and doubt. How much of the
          incompleteness of his situation was referable to her
          father, through the painful anxiety to avoid reviving old
          associations of France in his mind, he did not discuss
          with himself. But, that circumstance too, had had its
          influence in his course.</para>

          <para>He walked to and fro, with thoughts very busy,
          until it was time to return to Tellson's and take leave
          of Mr. Lorry. As soon as he arrived in Paris he would
          present himself to this old friend, but he must say
          nothing of his intention now.</para>

          <para>A carriage with post-horses was ready at the Bank
          door, and Jerry was booted and equipped.</para>

          <para>"I have delivered that letter," said Charles Darnay
          to Mr. Lorry. "I would not consent to your being charged
          with any written answer, but perhaps you will take a
          verbal one?"</para>

          <para>"That I will, and readily," said Mr. Lorry, "if it
          is not dangerous."</para>

          <para>"Not at all. Though it is to a prisoner in the
          Abbaye."</para>

          <para>"What is his name?" said Mr. Lorry, with his open
          pocket-book in his hand.</para>

          <para>"Gabelle."</para>

          <para>"Gabelle. And what is the message to the
          unfortunate Gabelle in prison?"</para>

          <para>"Simply, `that he has received the letter, and will
          come.'"</para>

          <para>"Any time mentioned?"</para>

          <para>"He will start upon his journey to-morrow
          night."</para>

          <para>"Any person mentioned?"</para>

          <para>"No."</para>

          <para>He helped Mr. Lorry to wrap himself in a number of
          coats and cloaks, and went out with him from the warm
          atmosphere of the old Bank, into the misty air of
          Fleet-street. "My love to Lucie, and to little Lucie,"
          said Mr. Lorry at parting, "and take precious care of
          them till I come back." Charles Darnay shook his head and
          doubtfully smiled, as the carriage rolled away.</para>

          <para>That night--it was the fourteenth of August--he sat
          up late, and wrote two fervent letters; one was to Lucie,
          explaining the strong obligation he was under to go to
          Paris, and showing her, at length, the reasons that he
          had, for feeling confident that he could become involved
          in no personal danger there; the other was to the Doctor,
          confiding Lucie and their dear child to his care, and
          dwelling on the same topics with the strongest
          assurances. To both, he wrote that he would despatch
          letters in proof of his safety, immediately after his
          arrival.</para>

          <para>It was a hard day, that day of being among them,
          with the first reservation of their joint lives on his
          mind. It was a hard matter to preserve the innocent
          deceit of which they were profoundly unsuspicious. But,
          an affectionate glance at his wife, so happy and busy,
          made him resolute not to tell her what impended (he had
          been half moved to do it, so strange it was to him to act
          in anything without her quiet aid), and the day passed
          quickly. Early in the evening he embraced her, and her
          scarcely less dear namesake, pretending that he would
          return by-and-bye (an imaginary engagement took him out,
          and he had secreted a valise of clothes ready), and so he
          emerged into the heavy mist of the heavy streets, with a
          heavier heart.</para>

          <para>The unseen force was drawing him fast to itself,
          now, and all the tides and winds were setting straight
          and strong towards it. He left his two letters with a
          trusty porter, to be delivered half an hour before
          midnight, and no sooner; took horse for Dover; and began
          his journey. "For the love of Heaven, of justice, of
          generosity, of the honour of your noble name!" was the
          poor prisoner's cry with which he strengthened his
          sinking heart, as he left all that was dear on earth
          behind him, and floated away for the Loadstone
          Rock.</para>

          <para>The end of the second book.</para>
        </chapter>
      </part>

      <part>
        <titlepage>
          <title>Book the Third--the Track of a Storm</title>
        </titlepage>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>I</chapnum>

            <title>In Secret</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>The traveller fared slowly on his way, who fared
          towards Paris from England in the autumn of the year one
          thousand seven hundred and ninety-two. More than enough
          of bad roads, bad equipages, and bad horses, he would
          have encountered to delay him, though the fallen and
          unfortunate King of France had been upon his throne in
          all his glory; but, the changed times were fraught with
          other obstacles than these. Every town-gate and village
          taxing-house had its band of citizen- patriots, with
          their national muskets in a most explosive state of
          readiness, who stopped all comers and goers,
          cross-questioned them, inspected their papers, looked for
          their names in lists of their own, turned them back, or
          sent them on, or stopped them and laid them in hold, as
          their capricious judgment or fancy deemed best for the
          dawning Republic One and Indivisible, of Liberty,
          Equality, Fraternity, or Death.</para>

          <para>A very few French leagues of his journey were
          accomplished, when Charles Darnay began to perceive that
          for him along these country roads there was no hope of
          return until he should have been declared a good citizen
          at Paris. Whatever might befall now, he must on to his
          journey's end. Not a mean village closed upon him, not a
          common barrier dropped across the road behind him, but he
          knew it to be another iron door in the series that was
          barred between him and England. The universal
          watchfulness so encompassed him, that if he had been
          taken in a net, or were being forwarded to his
          destination in a cage, he could not have felt his freedom
          more completely gone.</para>

          <para>This universal watchfulness not only stopped him on
          the highway twenty times in a stage, but retarded his
          progress twenty times in a day, by riding after him and
          taking him back, riding before him and stopping him by
          anticipation, riding with him and keeping him in charge.
          He had been days upon his journey in France alone, when
          he went to bed tired out, in a little town on the high
          road, still a long way from Paris.</para>

          <para>Nothing but the production of the afflicted
          Gabelle's letter from his prison of the Abbaye would have
          got him on so far. Ms difficulty at the guard-house in
          this small place had been such, that he felt his journey
          to have come to a crisis. And he was, therefore, as
          little surprised as a man could be, to find himself
          awakened at the small inn to which he had been remitted
          until morning, in the middle of the night.</para>

          <para>Awakened by a timid local functionary and three
          armed patriots in rough red caps and with pipes in their
          mouths, who sat down on the bed.</para>

          <para>"Emigrant," said the functionary, "I am going to
          send you on to Paris, under an escort."</para>

          <para>"Citizen, I desire nothing more than to get to
          Paris, though I could dispense with the escort."</para>

          <para>"Silence!" growled a red-cap, striking at the
          coverlet with the butt-end of his musket. "Peace,
          aristocrat!"</para>

          <para>"It is as the good patriot says," observed the
          timid functionary. "You are an aristocrat, and must have
          an escort--and must pay for it."</para>

          <para>"I have no choice," said Charles Darnay.</para>

          <para>"Choice! Listen to him!" cried the same scowling
          red-cap. "As if it was not a favour to be protected from
          the lamp-iron!"</para>

          <para>"It is always as the good patriot says," observed
          the functionary. "Rise and dress yourself,
          emigrant."</para>

          <para>Darnay complied, and was taken back to the
          guard-house, where other patriots in rough red caps were
          smoking, drinking, and sleeping, by a watch-fire. Here he
          paid a heavy price for his escort, and hence he started
          with it on the wet, wet roads at three o'clock in the
          morning.</para>

          <para>The escort were two mounted patriots in red caps
          and tri-coloured cockades, armed with national muskets
          and sabres, who rode one on either side of him.</para>

          <para>The escorted governed his own horse, but a loose
          line was attached to his bridle, the end of which one of
          the patriots kept girded round his wrist. In this state
          they set forth with the sharp rain driving in their
          faces: clattering at a heavy dragoon trot over the uneven
          town pavement, and out upon the mire-deep roads. In this
          state they traversed without change, except of horses and
          pace, all the mire- deep leagues that lay between them
          and the capital.</para>

          <para>They travelled in the night, halting an hour or two
          after daybreak, and lying by until the twilight fell. The
          escort were so wretchedly clothed, that they twisted
          straw round their bare legs, and thatched their ragged
          shoulders to keep the wet off. Apart from the personal
          discomfort of being so attended, and apart from such
          considerations of present danger as arose from one of the
          patriots being chronically drunk, and carrying his musket
          very recklessly, Charles Darnay did not allow the
          restraint that was laid upon him to awaken any serious
          fears in his breast; for, he reasoned with himself that
          it could have no reference to the merits of an individual
          case that was not yet stated, and of representations,
          confirmable by the prisoner in the Abbaye, that were not
          yet made.</para>

          <para>But when they came to the town of Beauvais--which
          they did at eventide, when the streets were filled with
          people--he could not conceal from himself that the aspect
          of affairs was very alarming. An ominous crowd gathered
          to see him dismount of the posting-yard, and many voices
          called out loudly, "Down with the emigrant!"</para>

          <para>He stopped in the act of swinging himself out of
          his saddle, and, resuming it as his safest place,
          said:</para>

          <para>"Emigrant, my friends! Do you not see me here, in
          France, of my own will?"</para>

          <para>"You are a cursed emigrant," cried a farrier,
          making at him in a furious manner through the press,
          hammer in hand; "and you are a cursed aristocrat!"</para>

          <para>The postmaster interposed himself between this man
          and the rider's bridle (at which he was evidently
          making), and soothingly said, "Let him be; let him be! He
          will be judged at Paris."</para>

          <para>"Judged!" repeated the farrier, swinging his
          hammer. "Ay! and condemned as a traitor." At this the
          crowd roared approval.</para>

          <para>Checking the postmaster, who was for turning his
          horse's head to the yard (the drunken patriot sat
          composedly in his saddle looking on, with the line round
          his wrist), Darnay said, as soon as he could make his
          voice heard:</para>

          <para>"Friends, you deceive yourselves, or you are
          deceived. I am not a traitor."</para>

          <para>"He lies!" cried the smith. "He is a traitor since
          the decree. His life is forfeit to the people. His cursed
          life is not his own!"</para>

          <para>At the instant when Darnay saw a rush in the eyes
          of the crowd, which another instant would have brought
          upon him, the postmaster turned his horse into the yard,
          the escort rode in close upon his horse's flanks, and the
          postmaster shut and barred the crazy double gates. The
          farrier struck a blow upon them with his hammer, and the
          crowd groaned; but, no more was done.</para>

          <para>"What is this decree that the smith spoke of?"
          Darnay asked the postmaster, when he had thanked him, and
          stood beside him in the yard.</para>

          <para>"Truly, a decree for selling the property of
          emigrants."</para>

          <para>"When passed?"</para>

          <para>"On the fourteenth."</para>

          <para>"The day I left England!"</para>

          <para>"Everybody says it is but one of several, and that
          there will be others--if there are not already-banishing
          all emigrants, and condemning all to death who return.
          That is what he meant when he said your life was not your
          own."</para>

          <para>"But there are no such decrees yet?"</para>

          <para>"What do I know!" said the postmaster, shrugging
          his shoulders; "there may be, or there will be. It is all
          the same. What would you have?"</para>

          <para>They rested on some straw in a loft until the
          middle of the night, and then rode forward again when all
          the town was asleep. Among the many wild changes
          observable on familiar things which made this wild ride
          unreal, not the least was the seeming rarity of sleep.
          After long and lonely spurring over dreary roads, they
          would come to a cluster of poor cottages, not steeped in
          darkness, but all glittering with lights, and would find
          the people, in a ghostly manner in the dead of the night,
          circling hand in hand round a shrivelled tree of Liberty,
          or all drawn up together singing a Liberty song. Happily,
          however, there was sleep in Beauvais that night to help
          them out of it and they passed on once more into solitude
          and loneliness: jingling through the untimely cold and
          wet, among impoverished fields that had yielded no fruits
          of the earth that year, diversified by the blackened
          remains of burnt houses, and by the sudden emergence from
          ambuscade, and sharp reining up across their way, of
          patriot patrols on the watch on all the roads.</para>

          <para>Daylight at last found them before the wall of
          Paris. The barrier was closed and strongly guarded when
          they rode up to it.</para>

          <para>"Where are the papers of this prisoner?" demanded a
          resolute-looking man in authority, who was summoned out
          by the guard.</para>

          <para>Naturally struck by the disagreeable word, Charles
          Darnay requested the speaker to take notice that he was a
          free traveller and French citizen, in charge of an escort
          which the disturbed state of the country had imposed upon
          him, and which he had paid for.</para>

          <para>"Where," repeated the same personage, without
          taking any heed of him whatever, "are the papers of this
          prisoner?"</para>

          <para>The drunken patriot had them in his cap, and
          produced them. Casting his eyes over Gabelle's letter,
          the same personage in authority showed some disorder and
          surprise, and looked at Darnay with a close
          attention.</para>

          <para>He left escort and escorted without saying a word,
          however, and went into the guard-room; meanwhile, they
          sat upon their horses outside the gate. Looking about him
          while in this state of suspense, Charles Darnay observed
          that the gate was held by a mixed guard of soldiers and
          patriots, the latter far outnumbering the former; and
          that while ingress into the city for peasants' carts
          bringing in supplies, and for similar traffic and
          traffickers, was easy enough, egress, even for the
          homeliest people, was very difficult. A numerous medley
          of men and women, not to mention beasts and vehicles of
          various sorts, was waiting to issue forth; but, the
          previous identification was so strict, that they filtered
          through the barrier very slowly. Some of these people
          knew their turn for examination to be so far off, that
          they lay down on the ground to sleep or smoke, while
          others talked together, or loitered about. The red cap
          and tri-colour cockade were universal, both among men and
          women.</para>

          <para>When he had sat in his saddle some half-hour,
          taking note of these things, Darnay found himself
          confronted by the same man in authority, who directed the
          guard to open the barrier. Then he delivered to the
          escort, drunk and sober, a receipt for the escorted, and
          requested him to dismount. He did so, and the two
          patriots, leading his tired horse, turned and rode away
          without entering the city.</para>

          <para>He accompanied his conductor into a guard-room,
          smelling of common wine and tobacco, where certain
          soldiers and patriots, asleep and awake, drunk and sober,
          and in various neutral states between sleeping and
          waking, drunkenness and sobriety, were standing and lying
          about. The light in the guard-house, half derived from
          the waning oil-lamps of the night, and half from the
          overcast day, was in a correspondingly uncertain
          condition. Some registers were lying open on a desk, and
          an officer of a coarse, dark aspect, presided over
          these.</para>

          <para>"Citizen Defarge," said he to Darnay's conductor,
          as he took a slip of paper to write on. "Is this the
          emigrant Evremonde?"</para>

          <para>"This is the man."</para>

          <para>"Your age, Evremonde?"</para>

          <para>"Thirty-seven."</para>

          <para>"Married, Evremonde?"</para>

          <para>"Yes."</para>

          <para>"Where married?"</para>

          <para>"In England."</para>

          <para>"Without doubt. Where is your wife,
          Evremonde?"</para>

          <para>"In England."</para>

          <para>"Without doubt. You are consigned, Evremonde, to
          the prison of La Force."</para>

          <para>"Just Heaven!" exclaimed Darnay. "Under what law,
          and for what offence?"</para>

          <para>The officer looked up from his slip of paper for a
          moment.</para>

          <para>"We have new laws, Evremonde, and new offences,
          since you were here." He said it with a hard smile, and
          went on writing.</para>

          <para>"I entreat you to observe that I have come here
          voluntarily, in response to that written appeal of a
          fellow-countryman which lies before you. I demand no more
          than the opportunity to do so without delay. Is not that
          my right?"</para>

          <para>"Emigrants have no rights, Evremonde," was the
          stolid reply. The officer wrote until he had finished,
          read over to himself what he had written, sanded it, and
          handed it to Defarge, with the words "In secret."</para>

          <para>Defarge motioned with the paper to the prisoner
          that he must accompany him. The prisoner obeyed, and a
          guard of two armed patriots attended them.</para>

          <para>"Is it you," said Defarge, in a low voice, as they
          went down the guardhouse steps and turned into Paris,
          "who married the daughter of Doctor Manette, once a
          prisoner in the Bastille that is no more?"</para>

          <para>"Yes," replied Darnay, looking at him with
          surprise.</para>

          <para>"My name is Defarge, and I keep a wine-shop in the
          Quarter Saint Antoine. Possibly you have heard of
          me."</para>

          <para>"My wife came to your house to reclaim her father?
          Yes!"</para>

          <para>The word "wife" seemed to serve as a gloomy
          reminder to Defarge, to say with sudden impatience, "In
          the name of that sharp female newly-born, and called La
          Guillotine, why did you come to France?"</para>

          <para>"You heard me say why, a minute ago. Do you not
          believe it is the truth?"</para>

          <para>"A bad truth for you," said Defarge, speaking with
          knitted brows, and looking straight before him.</para>

          <para>"Indeed I am lost here. All here is so
          unprecedented, so changed, so sudden and unfair, that I
          am absolutely lost. Will you render me a little
          help?"</para>

          <para>"None." Defarge spoke, always looking straight
          before him.</para>

          <para>"Will you answer me a single question?"</para>

          <para>"Perhaps. According to its nature. You can say what
          it is."</para>

          <para>"In this prison that I am going to so unjustly,
          shall I have some free communication with the world
          outside?"</para>

          <para>"You will see."</para>

          <para>"I am not to be buried there, prejudged, and
          without any means of presenting my case?"</para>

          <para>"You will see. But, what then? Other people have
          been similarly buried in worse prisons, before
          now."</para>

          <para>"But never by me, Citizen Defarge."</para>

          <para>Defarge glanced darkly at him for answer, and
          walked on in a steady and set silence. The deeper he sank
          into this silence, the fainter hope there was--or so
          Darnay thought--of his softening in any slight degree.
          He, therefore, made haste to say:</para>

          <para>"It is of the utmost importance to me (you know,
          Citizen, even better than I, of how much importance),
          that I should be able to communicate to Mr. Lorry of
          Tellson's Bank, an English gentleman who is now in Paris,
          the simple fact, without comment, that I have been thrown
          into the prison of La Force. Will you cause that to be
          done for me?"</para>

          <para>"I will do," Defarge doggedly rejoined, "nothing
          for you. My duty is to my country and the People. I am
          the sworn servant of both, against you. I will do nothing
          for you."</para>

          <para>Charles Darnay felt it hopeless to entreat him
          further, and his pride was touched besides. As they
          walked on in silence, he could not but see how used the
          people were to the spectacle of prisoners passing along
          the streets. The very children scarcely noticed him. A
          few passers turned their heads, and a few shook their
          fingers at him as an aristocrat; otherwise, that a man in
          good clothes should be going to prison, was no more
          remarkable than that a labourer in working clothes should
          be going to work. In one narrow, dark, and dirty street
          through which they passed, an excited orator, mounted on
          a stool, was addressing an excited audience on the cranes
          against the people, of the king and the royal family. The
          few words that he caught from this man's lips, first made
          it known to Charles Darnay that the king was in prison,
          and that the foreign ambassadors had one and all left
          Paris. On the road (except at Beauvais) he had heard
          absolutely nothing. The escort and the universal
          watchfulness had completely isolated him.</para>

          <para>That he had fallen among far greater dangers than
          those which had developed themselves when he left
          England, he of course knew now. That perils had thickened
          about him fast, and might thicken faster and faster yet,
          he of course knew now. He could not but admit to himself
          that he might not have made this journey, if he could
          have foreseen the events of a few days. And yet his
          misgivings were not so dark as, imagined by the light of
          this later time, they would appear. Troubled as the
          future was, it was the unknown future, and in its
          obscurity there was ignorant hope. The horrible massacre,
          days and nights long, which, within a few rounds of the
          clock, was to set a great mark of blood upon the blessed
          garnering time of harvest, was as far out of his
          knowledge as if it had been a hundred thousand years
          away. The "sharp female newly-born, and called La
          Guillotine," was hardly known to him, or to the
          generality of people, by name. The frightful deeds that
          were to be soon done, were probably unimagined at that
          time in the brains of the doers. How could they have a
          place in the shadowy conceptions of a gentle mind?</para>

          <para>Of unjust treatment in detention and hardship, and
          in cruel separation from his wife and child, he
          foreshadowed the likelihood, or the certainty; but,
          beyond this, he dreaded nothing distinctly. With this on
          his mind, which was enough to carry into a dreary prison
          courtyard, he arrived at the prison of La Force.</para>

          <para>A man with a bloated face opened the strong wicket,
          to whom Defarge presented "The Emigrant
          Evremonde."</para>

          <para>"What the Devil! How many more of them!" exclaimed
          the man with the bloated face.</para>

          <para>Defarge took his receipt without noticing the
          exclamation, and withdrew, with his two
          fellow-patriots.</para>

          <para>"What the Devil, I say again!" exclaimed the
          gaoler, left with his wife. "How many more!"</para>

          <para>The gaoler's wife, being provided with no answer to
          the question, merely replied, "One must have patience, my
          dear!" Three turnkeys who entered responsive to a bell
          she rang, echoed the sentiment, and one added, "For the
          love of Liberty;" which sounded in that place like an
          inappropriate conclusion.</para>

          <para>The prison of La Force was a gloomy prison, dark
          and filthy, and with a horrible smell of foul sleep in
          it. Extraordinary how soon the noisome flavour of
          imprisoned sleep, becomes manifest in all such places
          that are ill cared for!</para>

          <para>"In secret, too," grumbled the gaoler, looking at
          the written paper. "As if I was not already full to
          bursting!"</para>

          <para>He stuck the paper on a file, in an ill-humour, and
          Charles Darnay awaited his further pleasure for half an
          hour: sometimes, pacing to and fro in the strong arched
          room: sometimes, resting on a stone seat: in either case
          detained to be imprinted on the memory of the chief and
          his subordinates.</para>

          <para>"Come!" said the chief, at length taking up his
          keys, "come with me, emigrant."</para>

          <para>Through the dismal prison twilight, his new charge
          accompanied him by corridor and staircase, many doors
          clanging and locking behind them, until they came into a
          large, low, vaulted chamber, crowded with prisoners of
          both sexes. The women were seated at a long table,
          reading and writing, knitting, sewing, and embroidering;
          the men were for the most part standing behind their
          chairs, or lingering up and down the room.</para>

          <para>In the instinctive association of prisoners with
          shameful crime and disgrace, the new-comer recoiled from
          this company. But the crowning unreality of his long
          unreal ride, was, their all at once rising to receive
          him, with every refinement of manner known to the time,
          and with all the engaging graces and courtesies of
          life.</para>

          <para>So strangely clouded were these refinements by the
          prison manners and gloom, so spectral did they become in
          the inappropriate squalor and misery through which they
          were seen, that Charles Darnay seemed to stand in a
          company of the dead. Ghosts all! The ghost of beauty, the
          ghost of stateliness, the ghost of elegance, the ghost of
          pride, the ghost of frivolity, the ghost of wit, the
          ghost of youth, the ghost of age, all waiting their
          dismissal from the desolate shore, all turning on him
          eyes that were changed by the death they had died in
          coming there.</para>

          <para>It struck him motionless. The gaoler standing at
          his side, and the other gaolers moving about, who would
          have been well enough as to appearance in the ordinary
          exercise of their functions, looked so extravagantly
          coarse contrasted with sorrowing mothers and blooming
          daughters who were there--with the apparitions of the
          coquette, the young beauty, and the mature woman
          delicately bred--that the inversion of all experience and
          likelihood which the scene of shadows presented, was
          heightened to its utmost. Surely, ghosts all. Surely, the
          long unreal ride some progress of disease that had
          brought him to these gloomy shades!</para>

          <para>"In the name of the assembled companions in
          misfortune," said a gentleman of courtly appearance and
          address, coming forward, "I have the honour of giving you
          welcome to La Force, and of condoling with you on the
          calamity that has brought you among us. May it soon
          terminate happily! It would be an impertinence elsewhere,
          but it is not so here, to ask your name and
          condition?"</para>

          <para>Charles Darnay roused himself, and gave the
          required information, in words as suitable as he could
          find.</para>

          <para>"But I hope," said the gentleman, following the
          chief gaoler with his eyes, who moved across the room,
          "that you are not in secret?"</para>

          <para>"I do not understand the meaning of the term, but I
          have heard them say so."</para>

          <para>"Ah, what a pity! We so much regret it! But take
          courage; several members of our society have been in
          secret, at first, and it has lasted but a short time."
          Then he added, raising his voice, "I grieve to inform the
          society--in secret."</para>

          <para>There was a murmur of commiseration as Charles
          Darnay crossed the room to a grated door where the gaoler
          awaited him, and many voices--among which, the soft and
          compassionate voices of women were conspicuous--gave him
          good wishes and encouragement. He turned at the grated
          door, to render the thanks of his heart; it closed under
          the gaoler's hand; and the apparitions vanished from his
          sight forever.</para>

          <para>The wicket opened on a stone staircase, leading
          upward. When they bad ascended forty steps (the prisoner
          of half an hour already counted them), the gaoler opened
          a low black door, and they passed into a solitary cell.
          It struck cold and damp, but was not dark.</para>

          <para>"Yours," said the gaoler.</para>

          <para>"Why am I confined alone?"</para>

          <para>"How do I know!"</para>

          <para>"I can buy pen, ink, and paper?"</para>

          <para>"Such are not my orders. You will be visited, and
          can ask then. At present, you may buy your food, and
          nothing more."</para>

          <para>There were in the cell, a chair, a table, and a
          straw mattress. As the gaoler made a general inspection
          of these objects, and of the four walls, before going
          out, a wandering fancy wandered through the mind of the
          prisoner leaning against the wall opposite to him, that
          this gaoler was so unwholesomely bloated, both in face
          and person, as to look like a man who had been drowned
          and filled with water. When the gaoler was gone, he
          thought in the same wandering way, "Now am I left, as if
          I were dead." Stopping then, to look down at the
          mattress, he turned from it with a sick feeling, and
          thought, "And here in these crawling creatures is the
          first condition of the body after death."</para>

          <para>"Five paces by four and a half, five paces by four
          and a half, five paces by four and a half." The prisoner
          walked to and fro in his cell, counting its measurement,
          and the roar of the city arose like muffled drums with a
          wild swell of voices added to them. "He made shoes, he
          made shoes, he made shoes." The prisoner counted the
          measurement again, and paced faster, to draw his mind
          with him from that latter repetition. "The ghosts that
          vanished when the wicket closed. There was one among
          them, the appearance of a lady dressed in black, who was
          leaning in the embrasure of a window, and she had a light
          shining upon her golden hair, and she looked like * * * *
          Let us ride on again, for God's sake, through the
          illuminated villages with the people all awake! * * * *
          He made shoes, he made shoes, he made shoes. * * * * Five
          paces by four and a half." With such scraps tossing and
          rolling upward from the depths of his mind, the prisoner
          walked faster and faster, obstinately counting and
          counting; and the roar of the city changed to this
          extent--that it still rolled in like muffled drums, but
          with the wail of voices that he knew, in the swell that
          rose above them.</para>
        </chapter>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>II</chapnum>

            <title>The Grindstone</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>Tellson's Bank, established in the Saint Germain
          Quarter of Paris, was in a wing of a large house,
          approached by a courtyard and shut off from the street by
          a high wall and a strong gate. The house belonged to a
          great nobleman who had lived in it until he made a flight
          from the troubles, in his own cook's dress, and got
          across the borders. A mere beast of the chase flying from
          hunters, he was still in his metempsychosis no other than
          the same Monseigneur, the preparation of whose chocolate
          for whose lips had once occupied three strong men besides
          the cook in question.</para>

          <para>Monseigneur gone, and the three strong men
          absolving themselves from the sin of having drawn his
          high wages, by being more than ready and willing to cut
          his throat on the altar of the dawning Republic one and
          indivisible of Liberty, Equality, Fraternity, or Death,
          Monseigneur's house had been first sequestrated, and then
          confiscated. For, all things moved so fast, and decree
          followed decree with that fierce precipitation, that now
          upon the third night of the autumn month of September,
          patriot emissaries of the law were in possession of
          Monseigneur's house, and had marked it with the
          tri-colour, and were drinking brandy in its state
          apartments.</para>

          <para>A place of business in London like Tellson's place
          of business in Paris, would soon have driven the House
          out of its mind and into the Gazette. For, what would
          staid British responsibility and respectability have said
          to orange-trees in boxes in a Bank courtyard, and even to
          a Cupid over the counter? Yet such things were. Tellson's
          had whitewashed the Cupid, but he was still to be seen on
          the ceiling, in the coolest linen, aiming (as he very
          often does) at money from morning to night. Bankruptcy
          must inevitably have come of this young Pagan, in
          Lombard-street, London, and also of a curtained alcove in
          the rear of the immortal boy, and also of a looking-glass
          let into the wall, and also of clerks not at all old, who
          danced in public on the slightest provocation. Yet, a
          French Tellson's could get on with these things
          exceedingly well, and, as long as the times held
          together, no man had taken fright at them, and drawn out
          his money.</para>

          <para>What money would be drawn out of Tellson's
          henceforth, and what would lie there, lost and forgotten;
          what plate and jewels would tarnish in Tellson's
          hiding-places, while the depositors rusted in prisons,
          and when they should have violently perished; how many
          accounts with Tellson's never to be balanced in this
          world, must be carried over into the next; no man could
          have said, that night, any more than Mr. Jarvis Lorry
          could, though he thought heavily of these questions. He
          sat by a newly-lighted wood fire (the blighted and
          unfruitful year was prematurely cold), and on his honest
          and courageous face there was a deeper shade than the
          pendent lamp could throw, or any object in the room
          distortedly reflect--a shade of horror.</para>

          <para>He occupied rooms in the Bank, in his fidelity to
          the House of which he had grown to be a part, lie strong
          root-ivy. it chanced that they derived a kind of security
          from the patriotic occupation of the main building, but
          the true-hearted old gentleman never calculated about
          that. All such circumstances were indifferent to him, so
          that he did his duty. On the opposite side of the
          courtyard, under a colonnade, was extensive standin--for
          carriages--where, indeed, some carriages of Monseigneur
          yet stood. Against two of the pillars were fastened two
          great flaring flambeaux, and in the light of these,
          standing out in the open air, was a large grindstone: a
          roughly mounted thing which appeared to have hurriedly
          been brought there from some neighbouring smithy, or
          other workshop. Rising and looking out of window at these
          harmless objects, Mr. Lorry shivered, and retired to his
          seat by the fire. He had opened, not only the glass
          window, but the lattice blind outside it, and he had
          closed both again, and he shivered through his
          frame.</para>

          <para>From the streets beyond the high wall and the
          strong gate, there came the usual night hum of the city,
          with now and then an indescribable ring in it, weird and
          unearthly, as if some unwonted sounds of a terrible
          nature were going up to Heaven.</para>

          <para>"Thank God," said Mr. Lorry, clasping his hands,
          "that no one near and dear to me is in this dreadful town
          to-night. May He have mercy on all who are in
          danger!"</para>

          <para>Soon afterwards, the bell at the great gate
          sounded, and he thought, "They have come back!" and sat
          listening. But, there was no loud irruption into the
          courtyard, as he had expected, and he heard the gate
          clash again, and all was quiet.</para>

          <para>The nervousness and dread that were upon him
          inspired that vague uneasiness respecting the Bank, which
          a great change would naturally awaken, with such feelings
          roused. It was well guarded, and he got up to go among
          the trusty people who were watching it, when his door
          suddenly opened, and two figures rushed in, at sight of
          which he fell back in amazement.</para>

          <para>Lucie and her father! Lucie with her arms stretched
          out to him, and with that old look of earnestness so
          concentrated and intensified, that it seemed as though it
          had been stamped upon her face expressly to give force
          and power to it in this one passage of her life.</para>

          <para>"What is this?" cried Mr. Lorry, breathless and
          confused. "What is the matter? Lucie! Manette! What has
          happened? What has brought you here? What is it?"</para>

          <para>With the look fixed upon him, in her paleness and
          wildness, she panted out in his arms, imploringly, "O my
          dear friend! My husband!"</para>

          <para>"Your husband, Lucie?"</para>

          <para>"Charles."</para>

          <para>"What of Charles?"</para>

          <para>"Here.</para>

          <para>"Here, in Paris?"</para>

          <para>"Has been here some days--three or four--I don't
          know how many-- I can't collect my thoughts. An errand of
          generosity brought him here unknown to us; he was stopped
          at the barrier, and sent to prison."</para>

          <para>The old man uttered an irrepressible cry. Almost at
          the same moment, the beg of the great gate rang again,
          and a loud noise of feet and voices came pouring into the
          courtyard.</para>

          <para>"What is that noise?" said the Doctor, turning
          towards the window.</para>

          <para>"Don't look!" cried Mr. Lorry. "Don't look out!
          Manette, for your life, don't touch the blind!"</para>

          <para>The Doctor turned, with his hand upon the fastening
          of the window, and said, with a cool, bold smile:</para>

          <para>"My dear friend, I have a charmed life in this
          city. I have been a Bastille prisoner. There is no
          patriot in Paris--in Paris? In France--who, knowing me to
          have been a prisoner in the Bastille, would touch me,
          except to overwhelm me with embraces, or carry me in
          triumph. My old pain has given me a power that has
          brought us through the barrier, and gained us news of
          Charles there, and brought us here. I knew it would be
          so; I knew I could help Charles out of all danger; I told
          Lucie so.--What is that noise?" His hand was again upon
          the window.</para>

          <para>"Don't look!" cried Mr. Lorry, absolutely
          desperate. "No, Lucie, my dear, nor you!" He got his arm
          round her, and held her. "Don't be so terrified, my love.
          I solemnly swear to you that I know of no harm having
          happened to Charles; that I had no suspicion even of his
          being in this fatal place. What prison is he in?"</para>

          <para>"La Force!"</para>

          <para>"La Force! Lucie, my child, if ever you were brave
          and serviceable in your life--and you were always
          both--you will compose yourself now, to do exactly as I
          bid you; for more depends upon it than you can think, or
          I can say. There is no help for you in any action on your
          part to-night; you cannot possibly stir out. I say this,
          because what I must bid you to do for Charles's sake, is
          the hardest thing to do of all. You must instantly be
          obedient, still, and quiet. You must let me put you in a
          room at the back here. You must leave your father and me
          alone for two minutes, and as there are Life and Death in
          the world you must not delay."</para>

          <para>"I will be submissive to you. I see in your face
          that you know I can do nothing else than this. I know you
          are true."</para>

          <para>The old man kissed her, and hurried her into his
          room, and turned the key; then, came hurrying back to the
          Doctor, and opened the window and partly opened the
          blind, and put his hand upon the Doctor's arm, and looked
          out with him into the courtyard.</para>

          <para>Looked out upon a throng of men and women: not
          enough in number, or near enough, to fill the courtyard:
          not more than forty or fifty in all. The people in
          possession of the house had let them in at the gate, and
          they had rushed in to work at the grindstone; it had
          evidently been set up there for their purpose, as in a
          convenient and retired spot.</para>

          <para>But, such awful workers, and such awful
          work!</para>

          <para>The grindstone had a double handle, and, turning at
          it madly were two men, whose faces, as their long hair
          Rapped back when the whirlings of the grindstone brought
          their faces up, were more horrible and cruel than the
          visages of the wildest savages in their most barbarous
          disguise. False eyebrows and false moustaches were stuck
          upon them, and their hideous countenances were all bloody
          and sweaty, and all awry with howling, and all staring
          and glaring with beastly excitement and want of sleep. As
          these ruffians turned and turned, their matted locks now
          flung forward over their eyes, now flung backward over
          their necks, some women held wine to their mouths that
          they might drink; and what with dropping blood, and what
          with dropping wine, and what with the stream of sparks
          struck out of the stone, all their wicked atmosphere
          seemed gore and fire. The eye could not detect one
          creature in the group free from the smear of blood.
          Shouldering one another to get next at the
          sharpening-stone, were men stripped to the waist, with
          the stain all over their limbs and bodies; men in all
          sorts of rags, with the stain upon those rags; men
          devilishly set off with spoils of women's lace and silk
          and ribbon, with the stain dyeing those trifles through
          and through. Hatchets, knives, bayonets, swords, all
          brought to be sharpened, were all red with it. Some of
          the hacked swords were tied to the wrists of those who
          carried them, with strips of linen and fragments of
          dress: ligatures various in kind, but all deep of the one
          colour. And as the frantic wielders of these weapons
          snatched them from the stream of sparks and tore away
          into the streets, the same red hue was red in their
          frenzied eyes;--eyes which any unbrutalised beholder
          would have given twenty years of life, to petrify with a
          well-directed gun.</para>

          <para>All this was seen in a moment, as the vision of a
          drowning man, or of any human creature at any very great
          pass, could see a world if it were there. They drew back
          from the window, and the Doctor looked for explanation in
          his friend's ashy face.</para>

          <para>"They are," Mr. Lorry whispered the words, glancing
          fearfully round at the locked room, "murdering the
          prisoners. If you are sure of what you say; if you really
          have the power you think you have--as I believe you
          have--make yourself known to these devils, and get taken
          to La Force. It may be too late, I don't know, but let it
          not be a minute later!"</para>

          <para>Doctor Manette pressed his hand, hastened
          bareheaded out of the room, and was in the courtyard when
          Mr. Lorry regained the blind.</para>

          <para>His streaming white hair, his remarkable face, and
          the impetuous confidence of his manner, as he put the
          weapons aside like water, carried him in an instant to
          the heart of the concourse at the stone. For a few
          moments there was a pause, and a hurry, and a murmur, and
          the unintelligible sound of his voice; and then Mr. Lorry
          saw him, surrounded by all, and in the midst of a line of
          twenty men long, all linked shoulder to shoulder, and
          hand to shoulder, hurried out with cries of--"Live the
          Bastille prisoner! Help for the Bastille prisoner's
          kindred in La Force! Room for the Bastille prisoner in
          front there! Save the prisoner Evremonde at La Force!"
          and a thousand answering shouts.</para>

          <para>He closed the lattice again with a fluttering
          heart, closed the window and the curtain, hastened to
          Lucie, and told her that her father was assisted by the
          people, and gone in search of her husband. He found her
          child and Miss Pross with her; but, it never occurred to
          him to be surprised by their appearance until a long time
          afterwards, when he sat watching them in such quiet as
          the night knew.</para>

          <para>Lucie had, by that time, fallen into a stupor on
          the floor at his feet, clinging to his hand. Miss Pross
          had laid the child down on his own bed, and her head had
          gradually fallen on the pillow beside her pretty charge.
          O the long, long night, with the moans of the poor wife!
          And O the long, long night, with no return of her father
          and no tidings!</para>

          <para>Twice more in the darkness the bell at the great
          gate sounded, and the irruption was repeated, and the
          grindstone whirled and spluttered. "What is it?" cried
          Lucie, affrighted. "Hush! The soldiers' swords are
          sharpened there," said Mr. Lorry. "The place is national
          property now, and used as a kind of armoury, my
          love."</para>

          <para>Twice more in all; but, the last spell of work was
          feeble and fitful. Soon afterwards the day began to dawn,
          and he softly detached himself from the clasping hand,
          and cautiously looked out again. A man, so besmeared that
          he might have been a sorely wounded soldier creeping back
          to consciousness on a field of slain, was rising from the
          pavement by the side of the grindstone, and looking about
          him with a vacant air. Shortly, this worn-out murderer
          descried in the imperfect light one of the carriages of
          Monseigneur, and, staggering to that gorgeous vehicle,
          climbed in at the door, and shut himself up to take his
          rest on its dainty cushions.</para>

          <para>The great grindstone, Earth, had turned when Mr.
          Lorry looked out again, and the sun was red on the
          courtyard. But, the lesser grindstone stood alone there
          in the calm morning air, with a red upon it that the sun
          had never given, and would never take away.</para>
        </chapter>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>III</chapnum>

            <title>The Shadow</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>One of the first considerations which arose in the
          business mind of Mr. Lorry when business hours came
          round, was this:--that he had no right to imperil
          Tellson's by sheltering the wife of an emigrant prisoner
          under the Bank roof, His own possessions, safety, life,
          he would have hazarded for Lucie and her child, without a
          moment's demur; but the great trust he held was not his
          own, and as to that business charge he was a strict man
          of business.</para>

          <para>At first, his mind reverted to Defarge, and he
          thought of finding out the wine-shop again and taking
          counsel with its master in reference to the safest
          dwelling-place in the distracted state of the city. But,
          the same consideration that suggested him, repudiated
          him; he lived in the most violent Quarter, and doubtless
          was influential there, and deep in its dangerous
          workings.</para>

          <para>Noon coming, and the Doctor not returning, and
          every minute's delay tending to compromise Tellson's, Mr.
          Lorry advised with Lucie. She said that her father had
          spoken of hiring a lodging for a short term, in that
          Quarter, near the Banking-house. As there was no business
          objection to this, and as he foresaw that even if it were
          all well with Charles, and he were to be released, he
          could not hope to leave the city, Mr. Lorry went out in
          quest of such a lodging, and found a suitable one, high
          up in a removed by-street where the closed blinds in all
          the other windows of a high melancholy square of
          buildings marked deserted homes.</para>

          <para>To this lodging he at once removed Lucie and her
          child, and Miss Pross: giving them what comfort he could,
          and much more than he had himself. He left Jerry with
          them, as a figure to fill a doorway that would bear
          considerable knocking on the head, and retained to his
          own occupations. A disturbed and doleful mind he brought
          to bear upon them, and slowly and heavily the day lagged
          on with him.</para>

          <para>It wore itself out, and wore him out with it, until
          the Bank closed. He was again alone in his room of the
          previous night, considering what to do next, when he
          heard a foot upon the stair. In a few moments, a man
          stood in his presence, who, with a keenly observant look
          at him, addressed him by his name.</para>

          <para>"Your servant," said Mr. Lorry. "Do you know
          me?"</para>

          <para>He was a strongly made man with dark curling hair,
          from forty-five to fifty years of age. For answer he
          repeated, without any change of emphasis, the
          words:</para>

          <para>"Do you know me?"</para>

          <para>"I have seen you somewhere."</para>

          <para>"Perhaps at my wine-shop?"</para>

          <para>Much interested and agitated, Mr. Lorry said: "You
          come from Doctor Manette?"</para>

          <para>"Yes. I come from Doctor Manette."</para>

          <para>"And what says he? What does he send me?"</para>

          <para>Defarge gave into his anxious hand, an open scrap
          of paper. It bore the words in the Doctor's
          writing:</para>

          <para>"Charles is safe, but I cannot safely leave this
          place yet. I have obtained the favour that the bearer has
          a short note from Charles to his wife. Let the bearer see
          his wife."</para>

          <para>It was dated from La Force, within an hour.</para>

          <para>"Will you accompany me," said Mr. Lorry, joyfully
          relieved after reading this note aloud, "to where his
          wife resides?"</para>

          <para>"Yes," returned Defarge.</para>

          <para>Scarcely noticing as yet, in what a curiously
          reserved and mechanical way Defarge spoke, Mr. Lorry put
          on his hat and they went down into the courtyard. There,
          they found two women; one, knitting.</para>

          <para>"Madame Defarge, surely!" said Mr. Lorry, who had
          left her in exactly the same attitude some seventeen
          years ago.</para>

          <para>"It is she," observed her husband.</para>

          <para>"Does Madame go with us?" inquired Mr. Lorry,
          seeing that she moved as they moved.</para>

          <para>"Yes. That she may be able to recognise the faces
          and know the persons. It is for their safety."</para>

          <para>Beginning to be struck by Defarge's manner, Mr.
          Lorry looked dubiously at him, and led the way. Both the
          women followed; the second woman being The
          Vengeance.</para>

          <para>They passed through the intervening streets as
          quickly as they might, ascended the staircase of the new
          domicile, were admitted by Jerry, and found Lucie
          weeping, alone. She was thrown into a transport by the
          tidings Mr. Lorry gave her of her husband, and clasped
          the hand that delivered his note--little thinking what it
          had been doing near him in the night, and might, but for
          a chance, have done to him.</para>

          <para>"DEAREST,--Take courage. I am well, and your father
          has influence around me. You cannot answer this. Kiss our
          child for me."</para>

          <para>That was all the writing. It was so much, however,
          to her who received it, that she turned from Defarge to
          his wife, and kissed one of the hands that knitted. It
          was a passionate, loving, thankful, womanly action, but
          the hand made no response--dropped cold and heavy, and
          took to its knitting again.</para>

          <para>There was something in its touch that gave Lucie a
          check. She stopped in the act of putting the note in her
          bosom, and, with her hands yet at her neck, looked
          terrified at Madame Defarge. Madame Defarge met the
          lifted eyebrows and forehead with a cold, impassive
          stare.</para>

          <para>"My dear," said Mr. Lorry, striking in to explain;
          "there are frequent risings in the streets; and, although
          it is not likely they will ever trouble you, Madame
          Defarge wishes to see those whom she has the power to
          protect at such times, to the end that she may know
          them--that she may identify them. I believe," said Mr.
          Lorry, rather halting in his reassuring words, as the
          stony manner of all the three impressed itself upon him
          more and more, "I state the case, Citizen
          Defarge?"</para>

          <para>Defarge looked gloomily at his wife, and gave no
          other answer than a gruff sound of acquiescence.</para>

          <para>"You had better, Lucie," said Mr. Lorry, doing all
          he could to propitiate, by tone and manner, "have the
          dear child here, and our good Pross. Our good Pross,
          Defarge, is an English lady, and knows no French."</para>

          <para>The lady in question, whose rooted conviction that
          she was more than a match for any foreigner, was not to
          be shaken by distress and, danger, appeared with folded
          arms, and observed in English to The Vengeance, whom her
          eyes first encountered, "Well, I am sure, Boldface! I
          hope YOU are pretty well!" She also bestowed a British
          cough on Madame Defarge; but, neither of the two took
          much heed of her.</para>

          <para>"Is that his child?" said Madame Defarge, stopping
          in her work for the first time, and pointing her
          knitting-needle at little Lucie as if it were the finger
          of Fate.</para>

          <para>"Yes, madame," answered Mr. Lorry; "this is our
          poor prisoner's darling daughter, and only child."</para>

          <para>The shadow attendant on Madame Defarge and her
          party seemed to fall so threatening and dark on the
          child, that her mother instinctively kneeled on the
          ground beside her, and held her to her breast. The shadow
          attendant on Madame Defarge and her party seemed then to
          fall, threatening and dark, on both the mother and the
          child.</para>

          <para>"It is enough, my husband," said Madame Defarge. "I
          have seen them. We may go."</para>

          <para>But, the suppressed manner had enough of menace in
          it--not visible and presented, but indistinct and
          withheld--to alarm Lucie into saying, as she laid her
          appealing hand on Madame Defarge's dress:</para>

          <para>"You will be good to my poor husband. You will do
          him no harm. You will help me to see him if you
          can?"</para>

          <para>"Your husband is not my business here," returned
          Madame Defarge, looking down at her with perfect
          composure. "It is the daughter of your father who is my
          business here."</para>

          <para>"For my sake, then, be merciful to my husband. For
          my child's sake! She will put her hands together and pray
          you to be merciful. We are more afraid of you than of
          these others."</para>

          <para>Madame Defarge received it as a compliment, and
          looked at her husband. Defarge, who had been uneasily
          biting his thumb-nail and looking at her, collected his
          face into a sterner expression.</para>

          <para>"What is it that your husband says in that little
          letter?" asked Madame Defarge, with a lowering smile.
          "Influence; he says something touching influence?"</para>

          <para>"That my father," said Lucie, hurriedly taking the
          paper from her breast, but with her alarmed eyes on her
          questioner and not on it, "has much influence around
          him."</para>

          <para>"Surely it will release him!" said Madame Defarge.
          "Let it do so."</para>

          <para>"As a wife and mother," cried Lucie, most
          earnestly, "I implore you to have pity on me and not to
          exercise any power that you possess, against my innocent
          husband, but to use it in his behalf. O sister-woman,
          think of me. As a wife and mother!"</para>

          <para>Madame Defarge looked, coldly as ever, at the
          suppliant, and said, turning to her friend The
          Vengeance:</para>

          <para>"The wives and mothers we have been used to see,
          since we were as little as this child, and much less,
          have not been greatly considered? We have known THEIR
          husbands and fathers laid in prison and kept from them,
          often enough? All our lives, we have seen our
          sister-women suffer, in themselves and in their children,
          poverty, nakedness, hunger, thirst, sickness, misery,
          oppression and neglect of all kinds?"</para>

          <para>"We have seen nothing else," returned The
          Vengeance.</para>

          <para>"We have borne this a long time," said Madame
          Defarge, turning her eyes again upon Lucie. "Judge you!
          Is it likely that the trouble of one wife and mother
          would be much to us now?"</para>

          <para>She resumed her knitting and went out. The
          Vengeance followed. Defarge went last, and closed the
          door.</para>

          <para>"Courage, my dear Lucie," said Mr. Lorry, as he
          raised her. "Courage, courage! So far all goes well with
          us--much, much better than it has of late gone with many
          poor souls. Cheer up, and have a thankful heart."</para>

          <para>"I am not thankless, I hope, but that dreadful
          woman seems to throw a shadow on me and on all my
          hopes."</para>

          <para>"Tut, tut!" said Mr. Lorry; "what is this
          despondency in the brave little breast? A shadow indeed!
          No substance in it, Lucie."</para>

          <para>But the shadow of the manner of these Defarges was
          dark upon himself, for all that, and in his secret mind
          it troubled him greatly.</para>
        </chapter>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>IV</chapnum>

            <title>Calm in Storm</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>Doctor Manette did not return until the morning of
          the fourth day of his absence. So much of what had
          happened in that dreadful time as could be kept from the
          knowledge of Lucie was so well concealed from her, that
          not until long afterwards, when France and she were far
          apart, did she know that eleven hundred defenceless
          prisoners of both sexes and all ages had been killed by
          the populace; that four days and nights had been darkened
          by this deed of horror; and that the air around her had
          been tainted by the slain. She only knew that there had
          been an attack upon the prisons, that all political
          prisoners had been in danger, and that some had been
          dragged out by the crowd and murdered.</para>

          <para>To Mr. Lorry, the Doctor communicated under an
          injunction of secrecy on which he had no need to dwell,
          that the crowd had taken him through a scene of carnage
          to the prison of La Force. That, in the prison he had
          found a self-appointed Tribunal sitting, before which the
          prisoners were brought singly, and by which they were
          rapidly ordered to be put forth to be massacred, or to be
          released, or (in a few cases) to be sent back to their
          cells. That, presented by his conductors to this
          Tribunal, he had announced himself by name and profession
          as having been for eighteen years a secret and unaccused
          prisoner in the Bastille; that, one of the body so
          sitting in judgment had risen and identified him, and
          that this man was Defarge.</para>

          <para>That, hereupon he had ascertained, through the
          registers on the table, that his son-in-law was among the
          living prisoners, and had pleaded hard to the
          Tribunal--of whom some members were asleep and some
          awake, some dirty with murder and some clean, some sober
          and some not--for his life and liberty. That, in the
          first frantic greetings lavished on himself as a notable
          sufferer under the overthrown system, it had been
          accorded to him to have Charles Darnay brought before the
          lawless Court, and examined. That, he seemed on the point
          of being at once released, when the tide in his favour
          met with some unexplained check (not intelligible to the
          Doctor), which led to a few words of secret conference.
          That, the man sitting as President had then informed
          Doctor Manette that the prisoner must remain in custody,
          but should, for his sake, be held inviolate in safe
          custody. That, immediately, on a signal, the prisoner was
          removed to the interior of the prison again; but, that
          he, the Doctor, had then so strongly pleaded for
          permission to remain and assure himself that his
          son-in-law was, through no malice or mischance, delivered
          to the concourse whose murderous yells outside the gate
          had often drowned the proceedings, that he had obtained
          the permission, and had remained in that Hall of Blood
          until the danger was over.</para>

          <para>The sights he had seen there, with brief snatches
          of food and sleep by intervals, shall remain untold. The
          mad joy over the prisoners who were saved, had astounded
          him scarcely less than the mad ferocity against those who
          were cut to pieces. One prisoner there was, he said, who
          had been discharged into the street free, but at whom a
          mistaken savage had thrust a pike as he passed out. Being
          besought to go to him and dress the wound, the Doctor had
          passed out at the same gate, and had found him in the
          arms of a company of Samaritans, who were seated on the
          bodies of their victims. With an inconsistency as
          monstrous as anything in this awful nightmare, they had
          helped the healer, and tended the wounded man with the
          gentlest solicitude-- had made a litter for him and
          escorted him carefully from the spot-- had then caught up
          their weapons and plunged anew into a butchery so
          dreadful, that the Doctor had covered his eyes with his
          hands, and swooned away in the midst of it.</para>

          <para>As Mr. Lorry received these confidences, and as he
          watched the face of his friend now sixty-two years of
          age, a misgiving arose within him that such dread
          experiences would revive the old danger.</para>

          <para>But, he had never seen his friend in his present
          aspect: he had never at all known him in his present
          character. For the first time the Doctor felt, now, that
          his suffering was strength and power. For the first time
          he felt that in that sharp fire, he had slowly forged the
          iron which could break the prison door of his daughter's
          husband, and deliver him. "It all tended to a good end,
          my friend; it was not mere waste and ruin. As my beloved
          child was helpful in restoring me to myself, I will be
          helpful now in restoring the dearest part of herself to
          her; by the aid of Heaven I will do it!" Thus, Doctor
          Manette. And when Jarvis Lorry saw the kindled eyes, the
          resolute face, the calm strong look and bearing of the
          man whose life always seemed to him to have been stopped,
          like a clock, for so many years, and then set going again
          with an energy which had lain dormant during the
          cessation of its usefulness, he believed.</para>

          <para>Greater things than the Doctor had at that time to
          contend with, would have yielded before his persevering
          purpose. While he kept himself in his place, as a
          physician, whose business was with all degrees of
          mankind, bond and free, rich and poor, bad and good, he
          used his personal influence so wisely, that he was soon
          the inspecting physician of three prisons, and among them
          of La Force. He could now assure Lucie that her husband
          was no longer confined alone, but was mixed with the
          general body of prisoners; he saw her husband weekly, and
          brought sweet messages to her, straight from his lips;
          sometimes her husband himself sent a letter to her
          (though never by the Doctor's hand), but she was not
          permitted to write to him: for, among the many wild
          suspicions of plots in the prisons, the wildest of all
          pointed at emigrants who were known to have made friends
          or permanent connections abroad.</para>

          <para>This new life of the Doctor's was an anxious life,
          no doubt; still, the sagacious Mr. Lorry saw that there
          was a new sustaining pride in it. Nothing unbecoming
          tinged the pride; it was a natural and worthy one; but he
          observed it as a curiosity. The Doctor knew, that up to
          that time, his imprisonment had been associated in the
          minds of his daughter and his friend, with his personal
          affliction, deprivation, and weakness. Now that this was
          changed, and he knew himself to be invested through that
          old trial with forces to which they both looked for
          Charles's ultimate safety and deliverance, he became so
          far exalted by the change, that he took the lead and
          direction, and required them as the weak, to trust to him
          as the strong. The preceding relative positions of
          himself and Lucie were reversed, yet only as the
          liveliest gratitude and affection could reverse them, for
          he could have had no pride but in rendering some service
          to her who had rendered so much to him. "All curious to
          see," thought Mr. Lorry, in his amiably shrewd way, "but
          all natural and right; so, take the lead, my dear friend,
          and keep it; it couldn't be in better hands."</para>

          <para>But, though the Doctor tried hard, and never ceased
          trying, to get Charles Darnay set at liberty, or at least
          to get him brought to trial, the public current of the
          time set too strong and fast for him. The new era began;
          the king was tried, doomed, and beheaded; the Republic of
          Liberty, Equality, Fraternity, or Death, declared for
          victory or death against the world in arms; the black
          flag waved night and day from the great towers of Notre
          Dame; three hundred thousand men, summoned to rise
          against the tyrants of the earth, rose from all the
          varying soils of France, as if the dragon's teeth had
          been sown broadcast, and had yielded fruit equally on
          hill and plain, on rock, in gravel, and alluvial mud,
          under the bright sky of the South and under the clouds of
          the North, in fell and forest, in the vineyards and the
          olive-grounds and among the cropped grass and the stubble
          of the corn, along the fruitful banks of the broad
          rivers, and in the sand of the sea-shore. What private
          solicitude could rear itself against the deluge of the
          Year One of Liberty--the deluge rising from below, not
          falling from above, and with the windows of Heaven shut,
          not opened!</para>

          <para>There was no pause, no pity, no peace, no interval
          of relenting rest, no measurement of time. Though days
          and nights circled as regularly as when time was young,
          and the evening and morning were the first day, other
          count of time there was none. Hold of it was lost in the
          raging fever of a nation, as it is in the fever of one
          patient. Now, breaking the unnatural silence of a whole
          city, the executioner showed the people the head of the
          king--and now, it seemed almost in the same breath, the
          bead of his fair wife which had had eight weary months of
          imprisoned widowhood and misery, to turn it grey.</para>

          <para>And yet, observing the strange law of contradiction
          which obtains in all such cases, the time was long, while
          it flamed by so fast. A revolutionary tribunal in the
          capital, and forty or fifty thousand revolutionary
          committees all over the land; a law of the Suspected,
          which struck away all security for liberty or life, and
          delivered over any good and innocent person to any bad
          and guilty one; prisons gorged with people who had
          committed no offence, and could obtain no hearing; these
          things became the established order and nature of
          appointed things, and seemed to be ancient usage before
          they were many weeks old. Above all, one hideous figure
          grew as familiar as if it had been before the general
          gaze from the foundations of the world--the figure of the
          sharp female called La Guillotine.</para>

          <para>It was the popular theme for jests; it was the best
          cure for headache, it infallibly prevented the hair from
          turning grey, it imparted a peculiar delicacy to the
          complexion, it was the National Razor which shaved close:
          who kissed La Guillotine, looked through the little
          window and sneezed into the sack. It was the sign of the
          regeneration of the human race. It superseded the Cross.
          Models of it were worn on breasts from which the Cross
          was discarded, and it was bowed down to and believed in
          where the Cross was denied.</para>

          <para>It sheared off heads so many, that it, and the
          ground it most polluted, were a rotten red. It was taken
          to pieces, like a toy-puzzle for a young Devil, and was
          put together again when the occasion wanted it. It hushed
          the eloquent, struck down the powerful, abolished the
          beautiful and good. Twenty-two friends of high public
          mark, twenty-one living and one dead, it had lopped the
          heads off, in one morning, in as many minutes. The name
          of the strong man of Old Scripture had descended to the
          chief functionary who worked it; but, so armed, he was
          stronger than his namesake, and blinder, and tore away
          the gates of God's own Temple every day.</para>

          <para>Among these terrors, and the brood belonging to
          them, the Doctor walked with a steady head: confident in
          his power, cautiously persistent in his end, never
          doubting that he would save Lucie's husband at last. Yet
          the current of the time swept by, so strong and deep, and
          carried the time away so fiercely, that Charles had lain
          in prison one year and three months when the Doctor was
          thus steady and confident. So much more wicked and
          distracted had the Revolution grown in that December
          month, that the rivers of the South were encumbered with
          the bodies of the violently drowned by night, and
          prisoners were shot in lines and squares under the
          southern wintry sun. Still, the Doctor walked among the
          terrors with a steady head. No man better known than he,
          in Paris at that day; no man in a stranger situation.
          Silent, humane, indispensable in hospital and prison,
          using his art equally among assassins and victims, he was
          a man apart. In the exercise of his skill, the appearance
          and the story of the Bastille Captive removed him from
          all other men. He was not suspected or brought in
          question, any more than if he bad indeed been recalled to
          life some eighteen years before, or were a Spirit moving
          among mortals.</para>
        </chapter>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>V</chapnum>

            <title>The Wood-Sawyer</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>One year and three months. During all that time
          Lucie was never sure, from hour to hour, but that the
          Guillotine would strike off her husband's head next day.
          Every day, through the stony streets, the tumbrils now
          jolted heavily, filled with Condemned. Lovely girls;
          bright women, brown-haired, black-haired, and grey;
          youths; stalwart men and old; gentle born and peasant
          born; all red wine for La Guillotine, all daily brought
          into light from the dark cellars of the loathsome
          prisons, and carried to her through the streets to slake
          her devouring thirst. Liberty, equality, fraternity, or
          death;--the last, much the easiest to bestow, O
          Guillotine!</para>

          <para>If the suddenness of her calamity, and the whirling
          wheels of the time, had stunned the Doctor's daughter
          into awaiting the result in idle despair, it would but
          have been with her as it was with many. But, from the
          hour when she had taken the white head to her fresh young
          bosom in the garret of Saint Antoine, she had been true
          to her duties. She was truest to them in the season of
          trial, as all the quietly loyal and good will always
          be.</para>

          <para>As soon as they were established in their new
          residence, and her father had entered on the routine of
          his avocations, she arranged the little household as
          exactly as if her husband had been there. Everything had
          its appointed place and its appointed time. Little Lucie
          she taught, as regularly, as if they had all been united
          in their English home. The slight devices with which she
          cheated herself into the show of a belief that they would
          soon be reunited-- the little preparations for his speedy
          return, the setting aside of his chair and his
          books--these, and the solemn prayer at night for one dear
          prisoner especially, among the many unhappy souls in
          prison and the shadow of death--were almost the only
          outspoken reliefs of her heavy mind.</para>

          <para>She did not greatly alter in appearance. The plain
          dark dresses, akin to mourning dresses, which she and her
          child wore, were as neat and as well attended to as the
          brighter clothes of happy days. She lost her colour, and
          the old and intent expression was a constant, not an
          occasional, thing; otherwise, she remained very pretty
          and comely. Sometimes, at night on kissing her father,
          she would burst into the grief she had repressed all day,
          and would say that her sole reliance, under Heaven, was
          on him. He always resolutely answered: "Nothing can
          happen to him without my knowledge, and I know that I can
          save him, Lucie."</para>

          <para>They had not made the round of their changed life
          many weeks, when her father said to her, on coming home
          one evening:</para>

          <para>"My dear, there is an upper window in the prison,
          to which Charles can sometimes gain access at three in
          the afternoon. When he can get to it--which depends on
          many uncertainties and incidents--he might see you in the
          street, he thinks, if you stood in a certain place that I
          can show you. But you will not be able to see him, my
          poor child, and even if you could, it would be unsafe for
          you to make a sign of recognition."</para>

          <para>"O show me the place, my father, and I will go
          there every day."</para>

          <para>From that time, in all weathers, she waited there
          two hours. As the clock struck two, she was there, and at
          four she turned resignedly away. When it was not too wet
          or inclement for her child to be with her, they went
          together; at other times she was alone; but, she never
          missed a single day.</para>

          <para>It was the dark and dirty corner of a small winding
          street. The hovel of a cutter of wood into lengths for
          burning, was the only house at that end; all else was
          wall. On the third day of her being there, he noticed
          her.</para>

          <para>"Good day, citizeness."</para>

          <para>"Good day, citizen."</para>

          <para>This mode of address was now prescribed by decree.
          It had been established voluntarily some time ago, among
          the more thorough patriots; but, was now law for
          everybody.</para>

          <para>"Walking here again, citizeness?"</para>

          <para>"You see me, citizen!"</para>

          <para>The wood-sawyer, who was a little man with a
          redundancy of gesture (he had once been a mender of
          roads), cast a glance at the prison, pointed at the
          prison, and putting his ten fingers before his face to
          represent bars, peeped through them jocosely.</para>

          <para>"But it's not my business," said he. And went on
          sawing his wood.</para>

          <para>Next day he was looking out for her, and accosted
          her the moment she appeared.</para>

          <para>"What? Walking here again, citizeness?"</para>

          <para>"Yes, citizen."</para>

          <para>"Ah! A child too! Your mother, is it not, my little
          citizeness?"</para>

          <para>"Do I say yes, mamma?" whispered little Lucie,
          drawing close to her.</para>

          <para>"Yes, dearest."</para>

          <para>"Yes, citizen."</para>

          <para>"Ah! But it's not my business. My work is my
          business. See my saw! I call it my Little Guillotine. La,
          la, la; La, la, la! And off his head comes!"</para>

          <para>The billet fell as he spoke, and he threw it into a
          basket.</para>

          <para>"I call myself the Samson of the firewood
          guillotine. See here again! Loo, loo, loo; Loo, loo, loo!
          And off HER head comes! Now, a child. Tickle, tickle;
          Pickle, pickle! And off ITS head comes. All the
          family!"</para>

          <para>Lucie shuddered as he threw two more billets into
          his basket, but it was impossible to be there while the
          wood-sawyer was at work, and not be in his sight.
          Thenceforth, to secure his good will, she always spoke to
          him first, and often gave him drink-money, which he
          readily received.</para>

          <para>He was an inquisitive fellow, and sometimes when
          she had quite forgotten him in gazing at the prison roof
          and grates, and in lifting her heart up to her husband,
          she would come to herself to find him looking at her,
          with his knee on his bench and his saw stopped in its
          work. "But it's not my business!" he would generally say
          at those times, and would briskly fall to his sawing
          again.</para>

          <para>In all weathers, in the snow and frost of winter,
          in the bitter winds of spring, in the hot sunshine of
          summer, in the rains of autumn, and again in the snow and
          frost of winter, Lucie passed two hours of every day at
          this place; and every day on leaving it, she kissed the
          prison wall. Her husband saw her (so she learned from her
          father) it might be once in five or six times: it might
          be twice or thrice running: it might be, not for a week
          or a fortnight together. It was enough that he could and
          did see her when the chances served, and on that
          possibility she would have waited out the day, seven days
          a week.</para>

          <para>These occupations brought her round to the December
          month, wherein her father walked among the terrors with a
          steady head. On a lightly-snowing afternoon she arrived
          at the usual corner. It was a day of some wild rejoicing,
          and a festival. She had seen the houses, as she came
          along, decorated with little pikes, and with little red
          caps stuck upon them; also, with tricoloured ribbons;
          also, with the standard inscription (tricoloured letters
          were the favourite), Republic One and Indivisible.
          Liberty, Equality, Fraternity, or Death!</para>

          <para>The miserable shop of the wood-sawyer was so small,
          that its whole surface furnished very indifferent space
          for this legend. He had got somebody to scrawl it up for
          him, however, who had squeezed Death in with most
          inappropriate difficulty. On his house-top, he displayed
          pike and cap, as a good citizen must, and in a window he
          had stationed his saw inscribed as his "Little Sainte
          Guillotine"-- for the great sharp female was by that time
          popularly canonised. His shop was shut and he was not
          there, which was a relief to Lucie, and left her quite
          alone.</para>

          <para>But, he was not far off, for presently she heard a
          troubled movement and a shouting coming along, which
          filled her with fear. A moment afterwards, and a throng
          of people came pouring round the corner by the prison
          wall, in the midst of whom was the wood-sawyer hand in
          hand with The Vengeance. There could not be fewer than
          five hundred people, and they were dancing like five
          thousand demons. There was no other music than their own
          singing. They danced to the popular Revolution song,
          keeping a ferocious time that was like a gnashing of
          teeth in unison. Men and women danced together, women
          danced together, men danced together, as hazard had
          brought them together. At first, they were a mere storm
          of coarse red caps and coarse woollen rags; but, as they
          filled the place, and stopped to dance about Lucie, some
          ghastly apparition of a dance-figure gone raving mad
          arose among them. They advanced, retreated, struck at one
          another's hands, clutched at one another's heads, spun
          round alone, caught one another and spun round in pairs,
          until many of them dropped. While those were down, the
          rest linked hand in hand, and all spun round together:
          then the ring broke, and in separate rings of two and
          four they turned and turned until they all stopped at
          once, began again, struck, clutched, and tore, and then
          reversed the spin, and all spun round another way.
          Suddenly they stopped again, paused, struck out the time
          afresh, formed into lines the width of the public way,
          and, with their heads low down and their hands high up,
          swooped screaming off. No fight could have been half so
          terrible as this dance. It was so emphatically a fallen
          sport--a something, once innocent, delivered over to all
          devilry--a healthy pastime changed into a means of
          angering the blood, bewildering the senses, and steeling
          the heart. Such grace as was visible in it, made it the
          uglier, showing how warped and perverted all things good
          by nature were become. The maidenly bosom bared to this,
          the pretty almost-child's head thus distracted, the
          delicate foot mincing in this slough of blood and dirt,
          were types of the disjointed time.</para>

          <para>This was the Carmagnole. As it passed, leaving
          Lucie frightened and bewildered in the doorway of the
          wood-sawyer's house, the feathery snow fell as quietly
          and lay as white and soft, as if it had never
          been.</para>

          <para>"O my father!" for he stood before her when she
          lifted up the eyes she had momentarily darkened with her
          hand; "such a cruel, bad sight."</para>

          <para>"I know, my dear, I know. I have seen it many
          times. Don't be frightened! Not one of them would harm
          you."</para>

          <para>"I am not frightened for myself, my father. But
          when I think of my husband, and the mercies of these
          people--"</para>

          <para>"We will set him above their mercies very soon. I
          left him climbing to the window, and I came to tell you.
          There is no one here to see. You may kiss your hand
          towards that highest shelving roof."</para>

          <para>"I do so, father, and I send him my Soul with
          it!"</para>

          <para>"You cannot see him, my poor dear?"</para>

          <para>"No, father," said Lucie, yearning and weeping as
          she kissed her hand, "no."</para>

          <para>A footstep in the snow. Madame Defarge. "I salute
          you, citizeness," from the Doctor. "I salute you,
          citizen." This in passing. Nothing more. Madame Defarge
          gone, like a shadow over the white road.</para>

          <para>"Give me your arm, my love. Pass from here with an
          air of cheerfulness and courage, for his sake. That was
          well done;" they had left the spot; "it shall not be in
          vain. Charles is summoned for to-morrow."</para>

          <para>"For to-morrow!"</para>

          <para>"There is no time to lose. I am well prepared, but
          there are precautions to be taken, that could not be
          taken until he was actually summoned before the Tribunal.
          He has not received the notice yet, but I know that he
          will presently be summoned for to-morrow, and removed to
          the Conciergerie; I have timely information. You are not
          afraid?"</para>

          <para>She could scarcely answer, "I trust in you."</para>

          <para>"Do so, implicitly. Your suspense is nearly ended,
          my darling; he shall be restored to you within a few
          hours; I have encompassed him with every protection. I
          must see Lorry."</para>

          <para>He stopped. There was a heavy lumbering of wheels
          within hearing. They both knew too well what it meant.
          One. Two. Three. Three tumbrils faring away with their
          dread loads over the hushing snow.</para>

          <para>"I must see Lorry," the Doctor repeated, turning
          her another way.</para>

          <para>The staunch old gentleman was still in his trust;
          had never left it. He and his books were in frequent
          requisition as to property confiscated and made national.
          What he could save for the owners, he saved. No better
          man living to hold fast by what Tellson's had in keeping,
          and to hold his peace.</para>

          <para>A murky red and yellow sky, and a rising mist from
          the Seine, denoted the approach of darkness. It was
          almost dark when they arrived at the Bank. The stately
          residence of Monseigneur was altogether blighted and
          deserted. Above a heap of dust and ashes in the court,
          ran the letters: National Property. Republic One and
          Indivisible. Liberty, Equality, Fraternity, or
          Death!</para>

          <para>Who could that be with Mr. Lorry--the owner of the
          riding-coat upon the chair--who must not be seen? From
          whom newly arrived, did he come out, agitated and
          surprised, to take his favourite in his arms? To whom did
          he appear to repeat her faltering words, when, raising
          his voice and turning his head towards the door of the
          room from which he had issued, he said: "Removed to the
          Conciergerie, and summoned for to-morrow?"</para>
        </chapter>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>VI</chapnum>

            <title>Triumph</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>The dread tribunal of five Judges, Public
          Prosecutor, and determined Jury, sat every day. Their
          lists went forth every evening, and were read out by the
          gaolers of the various prisons to their prisoners. The
          standard gaoler-joke was, "Come out and listen to the
          Evening Paper, you inside there!"</para>

          <para>"Charles Evremonde, called Darnay!"</para>

          <para>So at last began the Evening Paper at La
          Force.</para>

          <para>When a name was called, its owner stepped apart
          into a spot reserved for those who were announced as
          being thus fatally recorded. Charles Evremonde, called
          Darnay, had reason to know the usage; he had seen
          hundreds pass away so.</para>

          <para>His bloated gaoler, who wore spectacles to read
          with, glanced over them to assure himself that he had
          taken his place, and went through the list, making a
          similar short pause at each name. There were twenty-three
          names, but only twenty were responded to; for one of the
          prisoners so summoned had died in gaol and been
          forgotten, and two had already been guillotined and
          forgotten. The list was read, in the vaulted chamber
          where Darnay had seen the associated prisoners on the
          night of his arrival. Every one of those had perished in
          the massacre; every human creature he had since cared for
          and parted with, had died on the scaffold.</para>

          <para>There were hurried words of farewell and kindness,
          but the parting was soon over. It was the incident of
          every day, and the society of La Force were engaged in
          the preparation of some games of forfeits and a little
          concert, for that evening. They crowded to the grates and
          shed tears there; but, twenty places in the projected
          entertainments had to be refilled, and the time was, at
          best, short to the lock-up hour, when the common rooms
          and corridors would be delivered over to the great dogs
          who kept watch there through the night. The prisoners
          were far from insensible or unfeeling; their ways arose
          out of the condition of the time. Similarly, though with
          a subtle difference, a species of fervour or
          intoxication, known, without doubt, to have led some
          persons to brave the guillotine unnecessarily, and to die
          by it, was not mere boastfulness, but a wild infection of
          the wildly shaken public mind. In seasons of pestilence,
          some of us will have a secret attraction to the disease--
          a terrible passing inclination to die of it. And all of
          us have like wonders hidden in our breasts, only needing
          circumstances to evoke them.</para>

          <para>The passage to the Conciergerie was short and dark;
          the night in its vermin-haunted cells was long and cold.
          Next day, fifteen prisoners were put to the bar before
          Charles Darnay's name was called. All the fifteen were
          condemned, and the trials of the whole occupied an hour
          and a half.</para>

          <para>"Charles Evremonde, called Darnay," was at length
          arraigned.</para>

          <para>His judges sat upon the Bench in feathered hats;
          but the rough red cap and tricoloured cockade was the
          head-dress otherwise prevailing. Looking at the Jury and
          the turbulent audience, he might have thought that the
          usual order of things was reversed, and that the felons
          were trying the honest men. The lowest, cruelest, and
          worst populace of a city, never without its quantity of
          low, cruel, and bad, were the directing spirits of the
          scene: noisily commenting, applauding, disapproving,
          anticipating, and precipitating the result, without a
          check. Of the men, the greater part were armed in various
          ways; of the women, some wore knives, some daggers, some
          ate and drank as they looked on, many knitted. Among
          these last, was one, with a spare piece of knitting under
          her arm as she worked. She was in a front row, by the
          side of a man whom he had never seen since his arrival at
          the Barrier, but whom he directly remembered as Defarge.
          He noticed that she once or twice whispered in his ear,
          and that she seemed to be his wife; but, what he most
          noticed in the two figures was, that although they were
          posted as close to himself as they could be, they never
          looked towards him. They seemed to be waiting for
          something with a dogged determination, and they looked at
          the Jury, but at nothing else. Under the President sat
          Doctor Manette, in his usual quiet dress. As well as the
          prisoner could see, he and Mr. Lorry were the only men
          there, unconnected with the Tribunal, who wore their
          usual clothes, and had not assumed the coarse garb of the
          Carmagnole.</para>

          <para>Charles Evremonde, called Darnay, was accused by
          the public prosecutor as an emigrant, whose life was
          forfeit to the Republic, under the decree which banished
          all emigrants on pain of Death. It was nothing that the
          decree bore date since his return to France. There he
          was, and there was the decree; he had been taken in
          France, and his head was demanded.</para>

          <para>"Take off his head!" cried the audience. "An enemy
          to the Republic!"</para>

          <para>The President rang his bell to silence those cries,
          and asked the prisoner whether it was not true that he
          had lived many years in England?</para>

          <para>Undoubtedly it was.</para>

          <para>Was he not an emigrant then? What did he call
          himself?</para>

          <para>Not an emigrant, he hoped, within the sense and
          spirit of the law.</para>

          <para>Why not? the President desired to know.</para>

          <para>Because he had voluntarily relinquished a title
          that was distasteful to him, and a station that was
          distasteful to him, and had left his country--he
          submitted before the word emigrant in the present
          acceptation by the Tribunal was in use--to live by his
          own industry in England, rather than on the industry of
          the overladen people of France.</para>

          <para>What proof had he of this?</para>

          <para>He handed in the names of two witnesses; Theophile
          Gabelle, and Alexandre Manette.</para>

          <para>But he had married in England? the President
          reminded him.</para>

          <para>True, but not an English woman.</para>

          <para>A citizeness of France?</para>

          <para>Yes. By birth.</para>

          <para>Her name and family?</para>

          <para>"Lucie Manette, only daughter of Doctor Manette,
          the good physician who sits there."</para>

          <para>This answer had a happy effect upon the audience.
          Cries in exaltation of the well-known good physician rent
          the hall. So capriciously were the people moved, that
          tears immediately rolled down several ferocious
          countenances which had been glaring at the prisoner a
          moment before, as if with impatience to pluck him out
          into the streets and kill him.</para>

          <para>On these few steps of his dangerous way, Charles
          Darnay had set his foot according to Doctor Manette's
          reiterated instructions. The same cautious counsel
          directed every step that lay before him, and had prepared
          every inch of his road.</para>

          <para>The President asked, why had he returned to France
          when he did, and not sooner?</para>

          <para>He had not returned sooner, he replied, simply
          because he had no means of living in France, save those
          he had resigned; whereas, in England, he lived by giving
          instruction in the French language and literature. He had
          returned when he did, on the pressing and written
          entreaty of a French citizen, who represented that his
          life was endangered by his absence. He had come back, to
          save a citizen's life, and to bear his testimony, at
          whatever personal hazard, to the truth. Was that criminal
          in the eyes of the Republic?</para>

          <para>The populace cried enthusiastically, "No!" and the
          President rang his bell to quiet them. Which it did not,
          for they continued to cry "No!" until they left off, of
          their own will.</para>

          <para>The President required the name of that citizen.
          The accused explained that the citizen was his first
          witness. He also referred with confidence to the
          citizen's letter, which had been taken from him at the
          Barrier, but which he did not doubt would be found among
          the papers then before the President.</para>

          <para>The Doctor had taken care that it should be
          there--had assured him that it would be there--and at
          this stage of the proceedings it was produced and read.
          Citizen Gabelle was called to confirm it, and did so.
          Citizen Gabelle hinted, with infinite delicacy and
          politeness, that in the pressure of business imposed on
          the Tribunal by the multitude of enemies of the Republic
          with which it had to deal, he had been slightly
          overlooked in his prison of the Abbaye--in fact, had
          rather passed out of the Tribunal's patriotic
          remembrance--until three days ago; when he had been
          summoned before it, and had been set at liberty on the
          Jury's declaring themselves satisfied that the accusation
          against him was answered, as to himself, by the surrender
          of the citizen Evremonde, called Darnay.</para>

          <para>Doctor Manette was next questioned. His high
          personal popularity, and the clearness of his answers,
          made a great impression; but, as he proceeded, as he
          showed that the Accused was his first friend on his
          release from his long imprisonment; that, the accused had
          remained in England, always faithful and devoted to his
          daughter and himself in their exile; that, so far from
          being in favour with the Aristocrat government there, he
          had actually been tried for his life by it, as the foe of
          England and friend of the United States--as he brought
          these circumstances into view, with the greatest
          discretion and with the straightforward force of truth
          and earnestness, the Jury and the populace became one. At
          last, when he appealed by name to Monsieur Lorry, an
          English gentleman then and there present, who, like
          himself, had been a witness on that English trial and
          could corroborate his account of it, the Jury declared
          that they had heard enough, and that they were ready with
          their votes if the President were content to receive
          them.</para>

          <para>At every vote (the Jurymen voted aloud and
          individually), the populace set up a shout of applause.
          All the voices were in the prisoner's favour, and the
          President declared him free.</para>

          <para>Then, began one of those extraordinary scenes with
          which the populace sometimes gratified their fickleness,
          or their better impulses towards generosity and mercy, or
          which they regarded as some set-off against their swollen
          account of cruel rage. No man can decide now to which of
          these motives such extraordinary scenes were referable;
          it is probable, to a blending of all the three, with the
          second predominating. No sooner was the acquittal
          pronounced, than tears were shed as freely as blood at
          another time, and such fraternal embraces were bestowed
          upon the prisoner by as many of both sexes as could rush
          at him, that after his long and unwholesome confinement
          he was in danger of fainting from exhaustion; none the
          less because he knew very well, that the very same
          people, carried by another current, would have rushed at
          him with the very same intensity, to rend him to pieces
          and strew him over the streets.</para>

          <para>His removal, to make way for other accused persons
          who were to be tried, rescued him from these caresses for
          the moment. Five were to be tried together, next, as
          enemies of the Republic, forasmuch as they had not
          assisted it by word or deed. So quick was the Tribunal to
          compensate itself and the nation for a chance lost, that
          these five came down to him before he left the place,
          condemned to die within twenty-four hours. The first of
          them told him so, with the customary prison sign of
          Death--a raised finger--and they all added in words,
          "Long live the Republic!"</para>

          <para>The five had had, it is true, no audience to
          lengthen their proceedings, for when he and Doctor
          Manette emerged from the gate, there was a great crowd
          about it, in which there seemed to be every face he had
          seen in Court--except two, for which he looked in vain.
          On his coming out, the concourse made at him anew,
          weeping, embracing, and shouting, all by turns and all
          together, until the very tide of the river on the bank of
          which the mad scene was acted, seemed to run mad, like
          the people on the shore.</para>

          <para>They put him into a great chair they had among
          them, and which they had taken either out of the Court
          itself, or one of its rooms or passages. Over the chair
          they had thrown a red flag, and to the back of it they
          had bound a pike with a red cap on its top. In this car
          of triumph, not even the Doctor's entreaties could
          prevent his being carried to his home on men's shoulders,
          with a confused sea of red caps heaving about him, and
          casting up to sight from the stormy deep such wrecks of
          faces, that he more than once misdoubted his mind being
          in confusion, and that he was in the tumbril on his way
          to the Guillotine.</para>

          <para>In wild dreamlike procession, embracing whom they
          met and pointing him out, they carried him on. Reddening
          the snowy streets with the prevailing Republican colour,
          in winding and tramping through them, as they had
          reddened them below the snow with a deeper dye, they
          carried him thus into the courtyard of the building where
          he lived. Her father had gone on before, to prepare her,
          and when her husband stood upon his feet, she dropped
          insensible in his arms.</para>

          <para>As he held her to his heart and turned her
          beautiful head between his face and the brawling crowd,
          so that his tears and her lips might come together
          unseen, a few of the people fell to dancing. Instantly,
          all the rest fell to dancing, and the courtyard
          overflowed with the Carmagnole. Then, they elevated into
          the vacant chair a young woman from the crowd to be
          carried as the Goddess of Liberty, and then swelling and
          overflowing out into the adjacent streets, and along the
          river's bank, and over the bridge, the Carmagnole
          absorbed them every one and whirled them away.</para>

          <para>After grasping the Doctor's hand, as he stood
          victorious and proud before him; after grasping the hand
          of Mr. Lorry, who came panting in breathless from his
          struggle against the waterspout of the Carmagnole; after
          kissing little Lucie, who was lifted up to clasp her arms
          round his neck; and after embracing the ever zealous and
          faithful Pross who lifted her; he took his wife in his
          arms, and carried her up to their rooms.</para>

          <para>"Lucie! My own! I am safe."</para>

          <para>"O dearest Charles, let me thank God for this on my
          knees as I have prayed to Him."</para>

          <para>They all reverently bowed their heads and hearts.
          When she was again in his arms, he said to her:</para>

          <para>"And now speak to your father, dearest. No other
          man in all this France could have done what he has done
          for me."</para>

          <para>She laid her head upon her father's breast, as she
          had laid his poor head on her own breast, long, long ago.
          He was happy in the return he had made her, he was
          recompensed for his suffering, be was proud of his
          strength. "You must not be weak, my darling," he
          remonstrated; "don't tremble so. I have saved
          him."</para>
        </chapter>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>VII</chapnum>

            <title>A Knock at the Door</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>"I have saved him." It was not another of the
          dreams in which he had often come back; he was really
          here. And yet his wife trembled, and a vague but heavy
          fear was upon her.</para>

          <para>All the air round was so thick and dark, the people
          were so passionately revengeful and fitful, the innocent
          were so constantly put to death on vague suspicion and
          black malice, it was so impossible to forget that many as
          blameless as her husband and as dear to others as he was
          to her, every day shared the fate from which he had been
          clutched, that her heart could not be as lightened of its
          load as she felt it ought to be. The shadows of the
          wintry afternoon were beginning to fall, and even now the
          dreadful carts were rolling through the streets. Her mind
          pursued them, looking for him among the Condemned; and
          then she clung closer to his real presence and trembled
          more.</para>

          <para>Her father, cheering her, showed a compassionate
          superiority to this woman's weakness, which was wonderful
          to see. No garret, no shoemaking, no One Hundred and
          Five, North Tower, now! He had accomplished the task he
          had set himself, his promise was redeemed, he had saved
          Charles. Let them all lean upon him.</para>

          <para>Their housekeeping was of a very frugal kind: not
          only because that was the safest way of life, involving
          the least offence to the people, but because they were
          not rich, and Charles, throughout his imprisonment, had
          had to pay heavily for his bad food, and for his guard,
          and towards the living of the poorer prisoners. Partly on
          this account, and partly to avoid a domestic spy, they
          kept no servant; the citizen and citizeness who acted as
          porters at the courtyard gate, rendered them occasional
          service; and Jerry (almost wholly transferred to them by
          Mr. Lorry) had become their daily retainer, and had his
          bed there every night.</para>

          <para>It was an ordinance of the Republic One and
          Indivisible of Liberty, Equality, Fraternity, or Death,
          that on the door or doorpost of every house, the name of
          every inmate must be legibly inscribed in letters of a
          certain size, at a certain convenient height from the
          ground. Mr. Jerry Cruncher's name, therefore, duly
          embellished the doorpost down below; and, as the
          afternoon shadows deepened, the owner of that name
          himself appeared, from overlooking a painter whom Doctor
          Manette had employed to add to the list the name of
          Charles Evremonde, called Darnay.</para>

          <para>In the universal fear and distrust that darkened
          the time, all the usual harmless ways of life were
          changed. In the Doctor's little household, as in very
          many others, the articles of daily consumption that were
          wanted were purchased every evening, in small quantities
          and at various small shops. To avoid attracting notice,
          and to give as little occasion as possible for talk and
          envy, was the general desire.</para>

          <para>For some months past, Miss Pross and Mr. Cruncher
          had discharged the office of purveyors; the former
          carrying the money; the latter, the basket. Every
          afternoon at about the time when the public lamps were
          lighted, they fared forth on this duty, and made and
          brought home such purchases as were needful. Although
          Miss Pross, through her long association with a French
          family, might have known as much of their language as of
          her own, if she had had a mind, she had no mind in that
          direction; consequently she knew no more of that
          "nonsense" (as she was pleased to call it) than Mr.
          Cruncher did. So her manner of marketing was to plump a
          noun-substantive at the head of a shopkeeper without any
          introduction in the nature of an article, and, if it
          happened not to be the name of the thing she wanted, to
          look round for that thing, lay hold of it, and hold on by
          it until the bargain was concluded. She always made a
          bargain for it, by holding up, as a statement of its just
          price, one finger less than the merchant held up,
          whatever his number might be.</para>

          <para>"Now, Mr. Cruncher," said Miss Pross, whose eyes
          were red with felicity; "if you are ready, I am."</para>

          <para>Jerry hoarsely professed himself at Miss Pross's
          service. He had worn all his rust off long ago, but
          nothing would file his spiky head down.</para>

          <para>"There's all manner of things wanted," said Miss
          Pross, "and we shall have a precious time of it. We want
          wine, among the rest. Nice toasts these Redheads will be
          drinking, wherever we buy it."</para>

          <para>"It will be much the same to your knowledge, miss,
          I should think," retorted Jerry, "whether they drink your
          health or the Old Un's."</para>

          <para>"Who's he?" said Miss Pross.</para>

          <para>Mr. Cruncher, with some diffidence, explained
          himself as meaning "Old Nick's."</para>

          <para>"Ha!" said Miss Pross, "it doesn't need an
          interpreter to explain the meaning of these creatures.
          They have but one, and it's Midnight Murder, and
          Mischief."</para>

          <para>"Hush, dear! Pray, pray, be cautious!" cried
          Lucie.</para>

          <para>"Yes, yes, yes, I'll be cautious," said Miss Pross;
          "but I may say among ourselves, that I do hope there will
          be no oniony and tobaccoey smotherings in the form of
          embracings all round, going on in the streets. Now,
          Ladybird, never you stir from that fire till I come back!
          Take care of the dear husband you have recovered, and
          don't move your pretty head from his shoulder as you have
          it now, till you see me again! May I ask a question,
          Doctor Manette, before I go?"</para>

          <para>"I think you may take that liberty," the Doctor
          answered, smiling.</para>

          <para>"For gracious sake, don't talk about Liberty; we
          have quite enough of that," said Miss Pross.</para>

          <para>"Hush, dear! Again?" Lucie remonstrated.</para>

          <para>"Well, my sweet," said Miss Pross, nodding her head
          emphatically, "the short and the long of it is, that I am
          a subject of His Most Gracious Majesty King George the
          Third;" Miss Pross curtseyed at the name; "and as such,
          my maxim is, Confound their politics, Frustrate their
          knavish tricks, On him our hopes we fix, God save the
          King!"</para>

          <para>Mr. Cruncher, in an access of loyalty, growlingly
          repeated the words after Miss Pross, Re somebody at
          church.</para>

          <para>"I am glad you have so much of the Englishman in
          you, though I wish you had never taken that cold in your
          voice," said Miss Pross, approvingly. "But the question,
          Doctor Manette. Is there"--it was the good creature's way
          to affect to make light of anything that was a great
          anxiety with them all, and to come at it in this chance
          manner--"is there any prospect yet, of our getting out of
          this place?"</para>

          <para>"I fear not yet. It would be dangerous for Charles
          yet."</para>

          <para>"Heigh-ho-hum!" said Miss Pross, cheerfully
          repressing a sigh as she glanced at her darling's golden
          hair in the light of the fire, "then we must have
          patience and wait: that's all. We must hold up our heads
          and fight low, as my brother Solomon used to say. Now,
          Mr. Cruncher!--Don't you move, Ladybird!"</para>

          <para>They went out, leaving Lucie, and her husband, her
          father, and the child, by a bright fire. Mr. Lorry was
          expected back presently from the Banking House. Miss
          Pross had lighted the lamp, but had put it aside in a
          corner, that they might enjoy the fire-light undisturbed.
          Little Lucie sat by her grandfather with her hands
          clasped through his arm: and he, in a tone not rising
          much above a whisper, began to ten her a story of a great
          and powerful Fairy who had opened a prison-wall and let
          out a captive who had once done the Fairy a service. All
          was subdued and quiet, and Lucie was more at ease than
          she had been.</para>

          <para>"What is that?" she cried, all at once.</para>

          <para>"My dear!" said her father, stopping in his story,
          and laying his hand on hers, "command yourself. What a
          disordered state you are in! The least
          thing--nothing--startles you! YOU, your father's
          daughter!"</para>

          <para>"I thought, my father," said Lucie, excusing
          herself, with a pale face and in a faltering voice, "that
          I heard strange feet upon the stairs."</para>

          <para>"My love, the staircase is as still as
          Death."</para>

          <para>As he said the word, a blow was struck upon the
          door.</para>

          <para>"Oh father, father. What can this be! Hide Charles.
          Save him!"</para>

          <para>"My child," said the Doctor, rising, and laying his
          hand upon her shoulder, "I HAVE saved him. What weakness
          is this, my dear! Let me go to the door."</para>

          <para>He took the lamp in his hand, crossed the two
          intervening outer rooms, and opened it. A rude clattering
          of feet over the floor, and four rough men in red caps,
          armed with sabres and pistols, entered the room.</para>

          <para>"The Citizen Evremonde, called Darnay," said the
          first.</para>

          <para>"Who seeks him?" answered Darnay.</para>

          <para>"I seek him. We seek him. I know you, Evremonde; I
          saw you before the Tribunal to-day. You are again the
          prisoner of the Republic."</para>

          <para>The four surrounded him, where he stood with his
          wife and child clinging to him.</para>

          <para>"Tell me how and why am I again a prisoner?"</para>

          <para>"It is enough that you return straight to the
          Conciergerie, and will know to-morrow. You are summoned
          for to-morrow."</para>

          <para>Doctor Manette, whom this visitation had so turned
          into stone, that be stood with the lamp in his band, as
          if be woe a statue made to hold it, moved after these
          words were spoken, put the lamp down, and confronting the
          speaker, and taking him, not ungently, by the loose front
          of his red woollen shirt, said:</para>

          <para>"You know him, you have said. Do you know
          me?"</para>

          <para>"Yes, I know you, Citizen Doctor."</para>

          <para>"We all know you, Citizen Doctor," said the other
          three.</para>

          <para>He looked abstractedly from one to another, and
          said, in a lower voice, after a pause:</para>

          <para>"Will you answer his question to me then? How does
          this happen?"</para>

          <para>"Citizen Doctor," said the first, reluctantly, "he
          has been denounced to the Section of Saint Antoine. This
          citizen," pointing out the second who had entered, "is
          from Saint Antoine."</para>

          <para>The citizen here indicated nodded his head, and
          added:</para>

          <para>"He is accused by Saint Antoine."</para>

          <para>"Of what?" asked the Doctor.</para>

          <para>"Citizen Doctor," said the first, with his former
          reluctance, "ask no more. If the Republic demands
          sacrifices from you, without doubt you as a good patriot
          will be happy to make them. The Republic goes before all.
          The People is supreme. Evremonde, we are pressed."</para>

          <para>"One word," the Doctor entreated. "Will you tell me
          who denounced him?"</para>

          <para>"It is against rule," answered the first; "but you
          can ask Him of Saint Antoine here."</para>

          <para>The Doctor turned his eyes upon that man. Who moved
          uneasily on his feet, rubbed his beard a little, and at
          length said:</para>

          <para>"Well! Truly it is against rule. But he is
          denounced--and gravely--by the Citizen and Citizeness
          Defarge. And by one other."</para>

          <para>"What other?"</para>

          <para>"Do YOU ask, Citizen Doctor?"</para>

          <para>"Yes."</para>

          <para>"Then," said he of Saint Antoine, with a strange
          look, "you will be answered to-morrow. Now, I am
          dumb!"</para>
        </chapter>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>VIII</chapnum>

            <title>A Hand at Cards</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>Happily unconscious of the new calamity at home,
          Miss Pross threaded her way along the narrow streets and
          crossed the river by the bridge of the Pont-Neuf,
          reckoning in her mind the number of indispensable
          purchases she had to make. Mr. Cruncher, with the basket,
          walked at her side. They both looked to the right and to
          the left into most of the shops they passed, had a wary
          eye for all gregarious assemblages of people, and turned
          out of their road to avoid any very excited group of
          talkers. It was a raw evening, and the misty river,
          blurred to the eye with blazing lights and to the ear
          with harsh noises, showed where the barges were stationed
          in which the smiths worked, making guns for the Army of
          the Republic. Woe to the man who played tricks with THAT
          Army, or got undeserved promotion in it! Better for him
          that his beard had never grown, for the National Razor
          shaved him close.</para>

          <para>Having purchased a few small articles of grocery,
          and a measure of oil for the lamp, Miss Pross bethought
          herself of the wine they wanted. After peeping into
          several wine-shops, she stopped at the sign of the Good
          Republican Brutus of Antiquity, not far from the National
          Palace, once (and twice) the Tuileries, where the aspect
          of things rather took her fancy. It had a quieter look
          than any other place of the same description they had
          passed, and, though red with patriotic caps, was not so
          red as the rest. Sounding Mr. Cruncher, and finding him
          of her opinion, Miss Pross resorted to the Good
          Republican Brutus of Antiquity, attended by her
          cavalier.</para>

          <para>Slightly observant of the smoky lights; of the
          people, pipe in mouth, playing with limp cards and yellow
          dominoes; of the one bare- breasted, bare-armed,
          soot-begrimed workman reading a journal aloud, and of the
          others listening to him; of the weapons worn, or laid
          aside to be resumed; of the two or three customers fallen
          forward asleep, who in the popular high-shouldered shaggy
          black spencer looked, in that attitude, like slumbering
          bears or dogs; the two outlandish customers approached
          the counter, and showed what they wanted.</para>

          <para>As their wine was measuring out, a man parted from
          another man in a corner, and rose to depart. In going, he
          had to face Miss Pross. No sooner did he face her, than
          Miss Pross uttered a scream, and clapped her
          hands.</para>

          <para>In a moment, the whole company were on their feet.
          That somebody was assassinated by somebody vindicating a
          difference of opinion was the likeliest occurrence.
          Everybody looked to see somebody fall, but only saw a man
          and a woman standing staring at each other; the man with
          all the outward aspect of a Frenchman and a thorough
          Republican; the woman, evidently English.</para>

          <para>What was said in this disappointing anti-climax, by
          the disciples of the Good Republican Brutus of Antiquity,
          except that it was something very voluble and loud, would
          have been as so much Hebrew or Chaldean to Miss Pross and
          her protector, though they had been all ears. But, they
          bad no ears for anything in their surprise. For, it must
          be recorded, that not only was Miss Pross lost in
          amazement and agitation, but, Mr. Cruncher--though it
          seemed on his own separate and individual account--was in
          a state of the greatest wonder.</para>

          <para>"What is the matter?" said the man who had caused
          Miss Pross to scream; speaking in a vexed, abrupt voice
          (though in a low tone), and in English.</para>

          <para>"Oh, Solomon, dear Solomon!" cried Miss Pross,
          clapping her hands again. "After not setting eyes upon
          you or hearing of you for so long a time, do I find you
          here!"</para>

          <para>"Don't call me Solomon. Do you want to be the death
          of me?" asked the man, in a furtive, frightened
          way.</para>

          <para>"Brother, brother!" cried Miss Pross, bursting into
          tears. "Have I ever been so hard with you that you ask me
          such a cruel question?"</para>

          <para>"Then hold your meddlesome tongue," said Solomon,
          "and come out, if you want to speak to me. Pay for your
          wine, and come out. Who's this man?"</para>

          <para>Miss Pross, shaking her loving and dejected head at
          her by no means affectionate brother, said through her
          tears, "Mr. Cruncher."</para>

          <para>"Let him come out too," said Solomon. "Does he
          think me a ghost?"</para>

          <para>Apparently, Mr. Cruncher did, to judge from his
          looks. He said not a word, however, and Miss Pross,
          exploring the depths of her reticule through her tears
          with great difficulty paid for her wine. As she did so,
          Solomon turned to the followers of the Good Republican
          Brutus of Antiquity, and offered a few words of
          explanation in the French language, which caused them all
          to relapse into their former places and pursuits.</para>

          <para>"Now," said Solomon, stopping at the dark street
          corner, "what do you want?"</para>

          <para>"How dreadfully unkind in a brother nothing has
          ever turned my love away from!" cried Miss Pross, "to
          give me such a greeting, and show me no
          affection."</para>

          <para>"There. Confound it! There," said Solomon, making a
          dab at Miss Pross's lips with his own. "Now are you
          content?"</para>

          <para>Miss Pross only shook her head and wept in
          silence.</para>

          <para>"If you expect me to be surprised," said her
          brother Solomon, "I am not surprised; I knew you were
          here; I know of most people who are here. If you really
          don't want to endanger my existence--which I half believe
          you do--go your ways as soon as possible, and let me go
          mine. I am busy. I am an official."</para>

          <para>"My English brother Solomon," mourned Miss Pross,
          casting up her tear-fraught eyes, "that had the makings
          in him of one of the best and greatest of men in his
          native country, an official among foreigners, and such
          foreigners! I would almost sooner have seen the dear boy
          lying in his--"</para>

          <para>"I said so!" cried her brother, interrupting. "I
          knew it. You want to be the death of me. I shall be
          rendered Suspected, by my own sister. Just as I am
          getting on!"</para>

          <para>"The gracious and merciful Heavens forbid!" cried
          Miss Pross. "Far rather would I never see you again, dear
          Solomon, though I have ever loved you truly, and ever
          shall. Say but one affectionate word to me, and tell me
          there is nothing angry or estranged between us, and I
          will detain you no longer."</para>

          <para>Good Miss Pross! As if the estrangement between
          them had come of any culpability of hers. As if Mr. Lorry
          had not known it for a fact, years ago, in the quiet
          corner in Soho, that this precious brother had spent her
          money and left her!</para>

          <para>He was saying the affectionate word, however, with
          a far more grudging condescension and patronage than he
          could have shown if their relative merits and positions
          had been reversed (which is invariably the case, all the
          world over), when Mr. Cruncher, touching him on the
          shoulder, hoarsely and unexpectedly interposed with the
          following singular question:</para>

          <para>"I say! Might I ask the favour? As to whether your
          name is John Solomon, or Solomon John?"</para>

          <para>The official turned towards him with sudden
          distrust. He had not previously uttered a word.</para>

          <para>"Come!" said Mr. Cruncher. "Speak out, you know."
          (Which, by the way, was more than he could do himself.)
          "John Solomon, or Solomon John? She calls you Solomon,
          and she must know, being your sister. And _I_ know you're
          John, you know. Which of the two goes first? And
          regarding that name of Pross, likewise. That warn't your
          name over the water."</para>

          <para>"What do you mean?"</para>

          <para>"Well, I don't know all I mean, for I can't call to
          mind what your name was, over the water."</para>

          <para>"No?"</para>

          <para>"No. But I'll swear it was a name of two
          syllables."</para>

          <para>"Indeed?"</para>

          <para>"Yes. T'other one's was one syllable. I know you.
          You was a spy-- witness at the Bailey. What, in the name
          of the Father of Lies, own father to yourself, was you
          called at that time?"</para>

          <para>"Barsad," said another voice, striking in.</para>

          <para>"That's the name for a thousand pound!" cried
          Jerry.</para>

          <para>The speaker who struck in, was Sydney Carton. He
          had his hands behind him under the skirts of his
          riding-coat, and he stood at Mr. Cruncher's elbow as
          negligently as he might have stood at the Old Bailey
          itself.</para>

          <para>"Don't be alarmed, my dear Miss Pross. I arrived at
          Mr. Lorry's, to his surprise, yesterday evening; we
          agreed that I would not present myself elsewhere until
          all was well, or unless I could be useful; I present
          myself here, to beg a little talk with your brother. I
          wish you had a better employed brother than Mr. Barsad. I
          wish for your sake Mr. Barsad was not a Sheep of the
          Prisons."</para>

          <para>Sheep was a cant word of the time for a spy, under
          the gaolers. The spy, who was pale, turned paler, and
          asked him how he dared--</para>

          <para>"I'll tell you," said Sydney. "I lighted on you,
          Mr. Barsad, coming out of the prison of the Conciergerie
          while I was contemplating the walls, an hour or more ago.
          You have a face to be remembered, and I remember faces
          well. Made curious by seeing you in that connection, and
          having a reason, to which you are no stranger, for
          associating you with the misfortunes of a friend now very
          unfortunate, I walked in your direction. I walked into
          the wine-shop here, close after you, and sat near you. I
          had no difficulty in deducing from your unreserved
          conversation, and the rumour openly going about among
          your admirers, the nature of your calling. And gradually,
          what I had done at random, seemed to shape itself into a
          purpose, Mr. Barsad."</para>

          <para>"What purpose?" the spy asked.</para>

          <para>"It would be troublesome, and might be dangerous,
          to explain in the street. Could you favour me, in
          confidence, with some minutes of your company--at the
          office of Tellson's Bank, for instance?"</para>

          <para>"Under a threat?"</para>

          <para>"Oh! Did I say that?"</para>

          <para>"Then, why should I go there?"</para>

          <para>"Really, Mr. Barsad, I can't say, if you
          can't."</para>

          <para>"Do you mean that you won't say, sir?" the spy
          irresolutely asked.</para>

          <para>"You apprehend me very clearly, Mr. Barsad. I
          won't."</para>

          <para>Carton's negligent recklessness of manner came
          powerfully in aid of his quickness and skill, in such a
          business as be had in his secret mind, and with such a
          man as he had to do with. His practised eye saw it, and
          made the most of it.</para>

          <para>"Now, I told you so," said the spy, casting a
          reproachful look at his sister; "if any trouble comes of
          this, it's your doing."</para>

          <para>"Come, come, Mr. Barsad!" exclaimed Sydney. "Don't
          be ungrateful. But for my great respect for your sister,
          I might not have led up so pleasantly to a little
          proposal that I wish to make for our mutual satisfaction.
          Do you go with me to the Bank?"</para>

          <para>"I'll hear what you have got to say. Yes, I'll go
          with you."</para>

          <para>"I propose that we first conduct your sister safely
          to the corner of her own street. Let me take your arm,
          Miss Pross. This is not a good city, at this time, for
          you to be out in, unprotected; and as your escort knows
          Mr. Barsad, I will invite him to Mr. Lorry's with us. Are
          we ready? Come then!"</para>

          <para>Miss Pross recalled soon afterwards, and to the end
          of her life remembered, that as she pressed her hands on
          Sydney's arm and looked up in his face, imploring him to
          do no hurt to Solomon, there was a braced purpose in the
          arm and a kind of inspiration in the eyes, which not only
          contradicted his light manner, but changed and raised the
          man. She was too much occupied then with fears for the
          brother who so little deserved her affection, and with
          Sydney's friendly reassurances, adequately to heed what
          she observed.</para>

          <para>They left her at the corner of the street, and
          Carton led the way to Mr. Lorry's, which was within a few
          minutes' walk. John Barsad, or Solomon Pross, walked at
          his side.</para>

          <para>Mr. Lorry had just finished his dinner, and was
          sitting before a cheery little log or two of
          fire--perhaps looking into their blaze for the picture of
          that younger elderly gentleman from Tellson's, who had
          looked into the red coals at the Royal George at Dover,
          now a good many years ago. He turned his head as they
          entered, and showed the surprise with which he saw a
          stranger.</para>

          <para>"Miss Pross's brother, sir," said Sydney. "Mr.
          Barsad."</para>

          <para>"Barsad?" repeated the old gentleman, "Barsad? I
          have an association with the name--and with the
          face."</para>

          <para>"I told you you had a remarkable face, Mr. Barsad,"
          observed Carton, coolly. "Pray sit down."</para>

          <para>As he took a chair himself, he supplied the link
          that Mr. Lorry wanted, by saying to him with a frown,
          "Witness at that trial." Mr. Lorry immediately
          remembered, and regarded his new visitor with an
          undisguised look of abhorrence.</para>

          <para>"Mr. Barsad has been recognised by Miss Pross as
          the affectionate brother you have heard of," said Sydney,
          "and has acknowledged the relationship. I pass to worse
          news. Darnay has been arrested again."</para>

          <para>Struck with consternation, the old gentleman
          exclaimed, "What do you tell me! I left him safe and free
          within these two hours, and am about to return to
          him!"</para>

          <para>"Arrested for all that. When was it done, Mr.
          Barsad?"</para>

          <para>"Just now, if at all."</para>

          <para>"Mr. Barsad is the best authority possible, sir,"
          said Sydney, "and I have it from Mr. Barsad's
          communication to a friend and brother Sheep over a bottle
          of wine, that the arrest has taken place. He left the
          messengers at the gate, and saw them admitted by the
          porter. There is no earthly doubt that he is
          retaken."</para>

          <para>Mr. Lorry's business eye read in the speaker's face
          that it was loss of time to dwell upon the point.
          Confused, but sensible that something might depend on his
          presence of mind, he commanded himself, and was silently
          attentive.</para>

          <para>"Now, I trust," said Sydney to him, "that the name
          and influence of Doctor Manette may stand him in as good
          stead to-morrow--you said he would be before the Tribunal
          again to-morrow, Mr. Barsad?--"</para>

          <para>"Yes; I believe so."</para>

          <para>"--In as good stead to-morrow as to-day. But it may
          not be so. I own to you, I am shaken, Mr. Lorry, by
          Doctor Manette's not having had the power to prevent this
          arrest."</para>

          <para>"He may not have known of it beforehand," said Mr.
          Lorry.</para>

          <para>"But that very circumstance would be alarming, when
          we remember how identified he is with his
          son-in-law."</para>

          <para>"That's true," Mr. Lorry acknowledged, with his
          troubled hand at his chin, and his troubled eyes on
          Carton.</para>

          <para>"In short," said Sydney, "this is a desperate time,
          when desperate games are played for desperate stakes. Let
          the Doctor play the winning game; I will play the losing
          one. No man's life here is worth purchase. Any one
          carried home by the people to-day, may be condemned
          tomorrow. Now, the stake I have resolved to play for, in
          case of the worst, is a friend in the Conciergerie. And
          the friend I purpose to myself to win, is Mr.
          Barsad."</para>

          <para>"You need have good cards, sir," said the
          spy.</para>

          <para>"I'll run them over. I'll see what I hold,--Mr.
          Lorry, you know what a brute I am; I wish you'd give me a
          little brandy."</para>

          <para>It was put before him, and he drank off a
          glassful--drank off another glassful--pushed the bottle
          thoughtfully away.</para>

          <para>"Mr. Barsad," he went on, in the tone of one who
          really was looking over a hand at cards: "Sheep of the
          prisons, emissary of Republican committees, now turnkey,
          now prisoner, always spy and secret informer, so much the
          more valuable here for being English that an Englishman
          is less open to suspicion of subornation in those
          characters than a Frenchman, represents himself to his
          employers under a false name. That's a very good card.
          Mr. Barsad, now in the employ of the republican French
          government, was formerly in the employ of the
          aristocratic English government, the enemy of France and
          freedom. That's an excellent card. Inference clear as day
          in this region of suspicion, that Mr. Barsad, still in
          the pay of the aristocratic English government, is the
          spy of Pitt, the treacherous foe of the Republic
          crouching in its bosom, the English traitor and agent of
          all mischief so much spoken of and so difficult to find.
          That's a card not to be beaten. Have you followed my
          hand, Mr. Barsad?"</para>

          <para>"Not to understand your play," returned the spy,
          somewhat uneasily.</para>

          <para>"I play my Ace, Denunciation of Mr. Barsad to the
          nearest Section Committee. Look over your hand, Mr.
          Barsad, and see what you have. Don't hurry."</para>

          <para>He drew the bottle near, poured out another
          glassful of brandy, and drank it off. He saw that the spy
          was fearful of his drinking himself into a fit state for
          the immediate denunciation of him. Seeing it, he poured
          out and drank another glassful.</para>

          <para>"Look over your hand carefully, Mr. Barsad. Take
          time."</para>

          <para>It was a poorer hand than he suspected. Mr. Barsad
          saw losing cards in it that Sydney Carton knew nothing
          of. Thrown out of his honourable employment in England,
          through too much unsuccessful hard swearing there--not
          because he was not wanted there; our English reasons for
          vaunting our superiority to secrecy and spies are of very
          modern date--he knew that he had crossed the Channel, and
          accepted service in France: first, as a tempter and an
          eavesdropper among his own countrymen there: gradually,
          as a tempter and an eavesdropper among the natives. He
          knew that under the overthrown government he had been a
          spy upon Saint Antoine and Defarge's wine-shop; had
          received from the watchful police such heads of
          information concerning Doctor Manette's imprisonment,
          release, and history, as should serve him for an
          introduction to familiar conversation with the Defarges;
          and tried them on Madame Defarge, and had broken down
          with them signally. He always remembered with fear and
          trembling, that that terrible woman had knitted when he
          talked with her, and had looked ominously at him as her
          fingers moved. He had since seen her, in the Section of
          Saint Antoine, over and over again produce her knitted
          registers, and denounce people whose lives the guillotine
          then surely swallowed up. He knew, as every one employed
          as he was did, that he was never safe; that flight was
          impossible; that he was tied fast under the shadow of the
          axe; and that in spite of his utmost tergiversation and
          treachery in furtherance of the reigning terror, a word
          might bring it down upon him. Once denounced, and on such
          grave grounds as had just now been suggested to his mind,
          he foresaw that the dreadful woman of whose unrelenting
          character he had seen many proofs, would produce against
          him that fatal register, and would quash his last chance
          of life. Besides that all secret men are men soon
          terrified, here were surely cards enough of one black
          suit, to justify the holder in growing rather livid as he
          turned them over.</para>

          <para>"You scarcely seem to like your hand," said Sydney,
          with the greatest composure. "Do you play?"</para>

          <para>"I think, sir," said the spy, in the meanest
          manner, as he turned to Mr. Lorry, "I may appeal to a
          gentleman of your years and benevolence, to put it to
          this other gentleman, so much your junior, whether he can
          under any circumstances reconcile it to his station to
          play that Ace of which he has spoken. I admit that _I_ am
          a spy, and that it is considered a discreditable
          station--though it must be filled by somebody; but this
          gentleman is no spy, and why should he so demean himself
          as to make himself one?"</para>

          <para>"I play my Ace, Mr. Barsad," said Carton, taking
          the answer on himself, and looking at his watch, "without
          any scruple, in a very few minutes."</para>

          <para>"I should have hoped, gentlemen both," said the
          spy, always striving to hook Mr. Lorry into the
          discussion, "that your respect for my sister--"</para>

          <para>"I could not better testify my respect for your
          sister than by finally relieving her of her brother,"
          said Sydney Carton.</para>

          <para>"You think not, sir?"</para>

          <para>"I have thoroughly made up my mind about
          it."</para>

          <para>The smooth manner of the spy, curiously in
          dissonance with his ostentatiously rough dress, and
          probably with his usual demeanour, received such a check
          from the inscrutability of Carton,--who was a mystery to
          wiser and honester men than he,--that it faltered here
          and failed him. While he was at a loss, Carton said,
          resuming his former air of contemplating cards:</para>

          <para>"And indeed, now I think again, I have a strong
          impression that I have another good card here, not yet
          enumerated. That friend and fellow-Sheep, who spoke of
          himself as pasturing in the country prisons; who was
          he?"</para>

          <para>"French. You don't know him," said the spy,
          quickly.</para>

          <para>"French, eh?" repeated Carton, musing, and not
          appearing to notice him at all, though he echoed his
          word. "Well; he may be."</para>

          <para>"Is, I assure you," said the spy; "though it's not
          important."</para>

          <para>"Though it's not important," repeated Carton, in
          the same mechanical way--"though it's not important--No,
          it's not important. No. Yet I know the face."</para>

          <para>"I think not. I am sure not. It can't be," said the
          spy.</para>

          <para>"It-can't-be," muttered Sydney Carton,
          retrospectively, and idling his glass (which fortunately
          was a small one) again. "Can't-be. Spoke good French. Yet
          like a foreigner, I thought?"</para>

          <para>"Provincial," said the spy.</para>

          <para>"No. Foreign!" cried Carton, striking his open hand
          on the table, as a light broke clearly on his mind. "Cly!
          Disguised, but the same man. We had that man before us at
          the Old Bailey."</para>

          <para>"Now, there you are hasty, sir," said Barsad, with
          a smile that gave his aquiline nose an extra inclination
          to one side; "there you really give me an advantage over
          you. Cly (who I will unreservedly admit, at this distance
          of time, was a partner of mine) has been dead several
          years. I attended him in his last illness. He was buried
          in London, at the church of Saint Pancras-in-the-Fields.
          His unpopularity with the blackguard multitude at the
          moment prevented my following his remains, but I helped
          to lay him in his coffin."</para>

          <para>Here, Mr. Lorry became aware, from where he sat, of
          a most remarkable goblin shadow on the wall. Tracing it
          to its source, he discovered it to be caused by a sudden
          extraordinary rising and stiffening of all the risen and
          stiff hair on Mr. Cruncher's head.</para>

          <para>"Let us be reasonable," said the spy, "and let us
          be fair. To show you how mistaken you are, and what an
          unfounded assumption yours is, I will lay before you a
          certificate of Cly's burial, which I happened to have
          carried in my pocket-book," with a hurried hand he
          produced and opened it, "ever since. There it is. Oh,
          look at it, look at it! You may take it in your hand;
          it's no forgery."</para>

          <para>Here, Mr. Lorry perceived the reflection on the
          wall to elongate, and Mr. Cruncher rose and stepped
          forward. His hair could not have been more violently on
          end, if it had been that moment dressed by the Cow with
          the crumpled horn in the house that Jack built.</para>

          <para>Unseen by the spy, Mr. Cruncher stood at his side,
          and touched him on the shoulder like a ghostly
          bailiff.</para>

          <para>"That there Roger Cly, master," said Mr. Cruncher,
          with a taciturn and iron-bound visage. "So YOU put him in
          his coffin?"</para>

          <para>"I did."</para>

          <para>"Who took him out of it?"</para>

          <para>Barsad leaned back in his chair, and stammered,
          "What do you mean?"</para>

          <para>"I mean," said Mr. Cruncher, "that he warn't never
          in it. No! Not he! I'll have my head took off, if he was
          ever in it."</para>

          <para>The spy looked round at the two gentlemen; they
          both looked in unspeakable astonishment at Jerry.</para>

          <para>"I tell you," said Jerry, "that you buried
          paving-stones and earth in that there coffin. Don't go
          and tell me that you buried Cly. It was a take in. Me and
          two more knows it."</para>

          <para>"How do you know it?"</para>

          <para>"What's that to you? Ecod!" growled Mr. Cruncher,
          "it's you I have got a old grudge again, is it, with your
          shameful impositions upon tradesmen! I'd catch hold of
          your throat and choke you for half a guinea."</para>

          <para>Sydney Carton, who, with Mr. Lorry, had been lost
          in amazement at this turn of the business, here requested
          Mr. Cruncher to moderate and explain himself.</para>

          <para>"At another time, sir," he returned, evasively,
          "the present time is ill-conwenient for explainin'. What
          I stand to, is, that he knows well wot that there Cly was
          never in that there coffin. Let him say he was, in so
          much as a word of one syllable, and I'll either catch
          hold of his throat and choke him for half a guinea;" Mr.
          Cruncher dwelt upon this as quite a liberal offer; "or
          I'll out and announce him."</para>

          <para>"Humph! I see one thing," said Carton. "I hold
          another card, Mr. Barsad. Impossible, here in raging
          Paris, with Suspicion filling the air, for you to outlive
          denunciation, when you are in communication with another
          aristocratic spy of the same antecedents as yourself,
          who, moreover, has the mystery about him of having
          feigned death and come to life again! A plot in the
          prisons, of the foreigner against the Republic. A strong
          card--a certain Guillotine card! Do you play?"</para>

          <para>"No!" returned the spy. "I throw up. I confess that
          we were so unpopular with the outrageous mob, that I only
          got away from England at the risk of being ducked to
          death, and that Cly was so ferreted up and down, that he
          never would have got away at all but for that sham.
          Though how this man knows it was a sham, is a wonder of
          wonders to me."</para>

          <para>"Never you trouble your head about this man,"
          retorted the contentious Mr. Cruncher; "you'll have
          trouble enough with giving your attention to that
          gentleman. And look here! Once more!"-- Mr. Cruncher
          could not be restrained from making rather an
          ostentatious parade of his liberality--"I'd catch hold of
          your throat and choke you for half a guinea."</para>

          <para>The Sheep of the prisons turned from him to Sydney
          Carton, and said, with more decision, "It has come to a
          point. I go on duty soon, and can't overstay my time. You
          told me you had a proposal; what is it? Now, it is of no
          use asking too much of me. Ask me to do anything in my
          office, putting my head in great extra danger, and I had
          better trust my life to the chances of a refusal than the
          chances of consent. In short, I should make that choice.
          You talk of desperation. We are all desperate here.
          Remember! I may denounce you if I think proper, and I can
          swear my way through stone walls, and so can others. Now,
          what do you want with me?"</para>

          <para>"Not very much. You are a turnkey at the
          Conciergerie?"</para>

          <para>"I tell you once for all, there is no such thing as
          an escape possible," said the spy, firmly.</para>

          <para>"Why need you tell me what I have not asked? You
          are a turnkey at the Conciergerie?"</para>

          <para>"I am sometimes."</para>

          <para>"You can be when you choose?"</para>

          <para>"I can pass in and out when I choose."</para>

          <para>Sydney Carton filled another glass with brandy,
          poured it slowly out upon the hearth, and watched it as
          it dropped. It being all spent, he said, rising:</para>

          <para>"So far, we have spoken before these two, because
          it was as well that the merits of the cards should not
          rest solely between you and me. Come into the dark room
          here, and let us have one final word alone."</para>
        </chapter>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>IX</chapnum>

            <title>The Game Made</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>While Sydney Carton and the Sheep of the prisons
          were in the adjoining dark room, speaking so low that not
          a sound was heard, Mr. Lorry looked at Jerry in
          considerable doubt and mistrust. That honest tradesman's
          manner of receiving the look, did not inspire confidence;
          he changed the leg on which he rested, as often as if he
          had fifty of those limbs, and were trying them all; he
          examined his finger-nails with a very questionable
          closeness of attention; and whenever Mr. Lorry's eye
          caught his, he was taken with that peculiar kind of short
          cough requiring the hollow of a hand before it, which is
          seldom, if ever, known to be an infirmity attendant on
          perfect openness of character.</para>

          <para>"Jerry," said Mr. Lorry. "Come here."</para>

          <para>Mr. Cruncher came forward sideways, with one of his
          shoulders in advance of him.</para>

          <para>"What have you been, besides a messenger?"</para>

          <para>After some cogitation, accompanied with an intent
          look at his patron, Mr. Cruncher conceived the luminous
          idea of replying, "Agicultooral character."</para>

          <para>"My mind misgives me much," said Mr. Lorry, angrily
          shaking a forefinger at him, "that you have used the
          respectable and great house of Tellson's as a blind, and
          that you have had an unlawful occupation of an infamous
          description. If you have, don't expect me to befriend you
          when you get back to England. If you have, don't expect
          me to keep your secret. Tellson's shall not be imposed
          upon."</para>

          <para>"I hope, sir," pleaded the abashed Mr. Cruncher,
          "that a gentleman like yourself wot I've had the honour
          of odd jobbing till I'm grey at it, would think twice
          about harming of me, even if it wos so--I don't say it
          is, but even if it wos. And which it is to be took into
          account that if it wos, it wouldn't, even then, be all o'
          one side. There'd be two sides to it. There might be
          medical doctors at the present hour, a picking up their
          guineas where a honest tradesman don't pick up his
          fardens--fardens! no, nor yet his half fardens-- half
          fardens! no, nor yet his quarter--a banking away like
          smoke at Tellson's, and a cocking their medical eyes at
          that tradesman on the sly, a going in and going out to
          their own carriages--ah! equally like smoke, if not more
          so. Well, that 'ud be imposing, too, on Tellson's. For
          you cannot sarse the goose and not the gander. And here's
          Mrs. Cruncher, or leastways wos in the Old England times,
          and would be to-morrow, if cause given, a floppin' again
          the business to that degree as is ruinating--stark
          ruinating! Whereas them medical doctors' wives don't
          flop--catch 'em at it! Or, if they flop, their toppings
          goes in favour of more patients, and how can you rightly
          have one without t'other? Then, wot with undertakers, and
          wot with parish clerks, and wot with sextons, and wot
          with private watchmen (all awaricious and all in it), a
          man wouldn't get much by it, even if it wos so. And wot
          little a man did get, would never prosper with him, Mr.
          Lorry. He'd never have no good of it; he'd want all along
          to be out of the line, if he, could see his way out,
          being once in-- even if it wos so."</para>

          <para>"Ugh!" cried Mr. Lorry, rather relenting,
          nevertheless, "I am shocked at the sight of you."</para>

          <para>"Now, what I would humbly offer to you, sir,"
          pursued Mr. Cruncher, "even if it wos so, which I don't
          say it is--"</para>

          <para>"Don't prevaricate," said Mr. Lorry.</para>

          <para>"No, I will NOT, sir," returned Mr. Crunches as if
          nothing were further from his thoughts or
          practice--"which I don't say it is--wot I would humbly
          offer to you, sir, would be this. Upon that there stool,
          at that there Bar, sets that there boy of mine, brought
          up and growed up to be a man, wot will errand you,
          message you, general- light-job you, till your heels is
          where your head is, if such should be your wishes. If it
          wos so, which I still don't say it is (for I will not
          prewaricate to you, sir), let that there boy keep his
          father's place, and take care of his mother; don't blow
          upon that boy's father--do not do it, sir--and let that
          father go into the line of the reg'lar diggin', and make
          amends for what he would have undug--if it wos so-by
          diggin' of 'em in with a will, and with conwictions
          respectin' the futur' keepin' of 'em safe. That, Mr.
          Lorry," said Mr. Cruncher, wiping his forehead with his
          arm, as an announcement that he had arrived at the
          peroration of his discourse, "is wot I would respectfully
          offer to you, sir. A man don't see all this here a goin'
          on dreadful round him, in the way of Subjects without
          heads, dear me, plentiful enough fur to bring the price
          down to porterage and hardly that, without havin' his
          serious thoughts of things. And these here would be mine,
          if it wos so, entreatin' of you fur to bear in mind that
          wot I said just now, I up and said in the good cause when
          I might have kep' it back."</para>

          <para>"That at least is true, said Mr. Lorry. "Say no
          more now. It may be that I shall yet stand your friend,
          if you deserve it, and repent in action--not in words. I
          want no more words."</para>

          <para>Mr. Cruncher knuckled his forehead, as Sydney
          Carton and the spy returned from the dark room. "Adieu,
          Mr. Barsad," said the former; "our arrangement thus made,
          you have nothing to fear from me."</para>

          <para>He sat down in a chair on the hearth, over against
          Mr. Lorry. When they were alone, Mr. Lorry asked him what
          he had done?</para>

          <para>"Not much. If it should go ill with the prisoner, I
          have ensured access to him, once."</para>

          <para>Mr. Lorry's countenance fell.</para>

          <para>"It is all I could do," said Carton. "To propose
          too much, would be to put this man's head under the axe,
          and, as he himself said, nothing worse could happen to
          him if he were denounced. It was obviously the weakness
          of the position. There is no help for it."</para>

          <para>"But access to him," said Mr. Lorry, "if it should
          go ill before the Tribunal, will not save him."</para>

          <para>"I never said it would."</para>

          <para>Mr. Lorry's eyes gradually sought the fire; his
          sympathy with his darling, and the heavy disappointment
          of his second arrest, gradually weakened them; he was an
          old man now, overborne with anxiety of late, and his
          tears fell.</para>

          <para>"You are a good man and a true friend," said
          Carton, in an altered voice. "Forgive me if I notice that
          you are affected. I could not see my father weep, and sit
          by, careless. And I could not respect your sorrow more,
          if you were my father. You are free from that misfortune,
          however."</para>

          <para>Though he said the last words, with a slip into his
          usual manner, there was a true feeling and respect both
          in his tone and in his touch, that Mr. Lorry, who had
          never seen the better side of him, was wholly unprepared
          for. He gave him his band, and Carton gently pressed
          it.</para>

          <para>"To return to poor Darnay," said Carton. "Don't
          tell Her of this interview, or this arrangement. It would
          not enable Her to go to see him. She might think it was
          contrived, in case of the worse, to convey to him the
          means of anticipating the sentence."</para>

          <para>Mr. Lorry had not thought of that, and he looked
          quickly at Carton to see if it were in his mind. It
          seemed to be; he returned the look, and evidently
          understood it.</para>

          <para>"She might think a thousand things," Carton said,
          "and any of them would only add to her trouble. Don't
          speak of me to her. As I said to you when I first came, I
          had better not see her. I can put my hand out, to do any
          little helpful work for her that my hand can find to do,
          without that. You are going to her, I hope? She must be
          very desolate to-night."</para>

          <para>"I am going now, directly."</para>

          <para>"I am glad of that. She has such a strong
          attachment to you and reliance on you. How does she
          look?"</para>

          <para>"Anxious and unhappy, but very beautiful."</para>

          <para>"Ah!"</para>

          <para>It was a long, grieving sound, like a sigh--almost
          like a sob. It attracted Mr. Lorry's eyes to Carton's
          face, which was turned to the fire. A light, or a shade
          (the old gentleman could not have said which), passed
          from it as swiftly as a change will sweep over a
          hill-side on a wild bright day, and he lifted his foot to
          put back one of the little flaming logs, which was
          tumbling forward. He wore the white riding-coat and
          top-boots, then in vogue, and the light of the fire
          touching their light surfaces made him look very pale,
          with his long brown hair, all untrimmed, hanging loose
          about him. His indifference to fire was sufficiently
          remarkable to elicit a word of remonstrance from Mr.
          Lorry; his boot was still upon the hot embers of the
          flaming log, when it had broken under the weight of Ms
          foot.</para>

          <para>"I forgot it," he said.</para>

          <para>Mr. Lorry's eyes were again attracted to his face.
          Taking note of the wasted air which clouded the naturally
          handsome features, and having the expression of
          prisoners' faces fresh in his mind, he was strongly
          reminded of that expression.</para>

          <para>"And your duties here have drawn to an end, sir?"
          said Carton, turning to him.</para>

          <para>"Yes. As I was telling you last night when Lucie
          came in so unexpectedly, I have at length done all that I
          can do here. I hoped to have left them in perfect safety,
          and then to have quitted Paris. I have my Leave to Pass.
          I was ready to go."</para>

          <para>They were both silent.</para>

          <para>"Yours is a long life to look back upon, sir?" said
          Carton, wistfully.</para>

          <para>"I am in my seventy-eighth year."</para>

          <para>"You have been useful all your life; steadily and
          constantly occupied; trusted, respected, and looked up
          to?"</para>

          <para>"I have been a man of business, ever since I have
          been a man. indeed, I may say that I was a man of
          business when a boy."</para>

          <para>"See what a place you fill at seventy-eight. How
          many people will miss you when you leave it
          empty!"</para>

          <para>"A solitary old bachelor," answered Mr. Lorry,
          shaking his head. "There is nobody to weep for
          me."</para>

          <para>"How can you say that? Wouldn't She weep for you?
          Wouldn't her child?"</para>

          <para>"Yes, yes, thank God. I didn't quite mean what I
          said."</para>

          <para>"It IS a thing to thank God for; is it not?"</para>

          <para>"Surely, surely."</para>

          <para>"If you could say, with truth, to your own solitary
          heart, to-night, 'I have secured to myself the love and
          attachment, the gratitude or respect, of no human
          creature; I have won myself a tender place in no regard;
          I have done nothing good or serviceable to be remembered
          by!' your seventy-eight years would be seventy-eight
          heavy curses; would they not?"</para>

          <para>"You say truly, Mr. Carton; I think they would
          be."</para>

          <para>Sydney turned his eyes again upon the fire, and,
          after a silence of a few moments, said:</para>

          <para>"I should like to ask you:--Does your childhood
          seem far off? Do the days when you sat at your mother's
          knee, seem days of very long ago?"</para>

          <para>Responding to his softened manner, Mr. Lorry
          answered:</para>

          <para>"Twenty years back, yes; at this time of my life,
          no. For, as I draw closer and closer to the end, I travel
          in the circle, nearer and nearer to the beginning. It
          seems to be one of the kind smoothings and preparings of
          the way. My heart is touched now, by many remembrances
          that had long fallen asleep, of my pretty young mother
          (and I so old!), and by many associations of the days
          when what we call the World was not so real with me, and
          my faults were not confirmed in me."</para>

          <para>"I understand the feeling!" exclaimed Carton, with
          a bright flush. "And you are the better for it?"</para>

          <para>"I hope so."</para>

          <para>Carton terminated the conversation here, by rising
          to help him on with his outer coat; "But you," said Mr.
          Lorry, reverting to the theme, "you are young."</para>

          <para>"Yes," said Carton. "I am not old, but my young way
          was never the way to age. Enough of me."</para>

          <para>"And of me, I am sure," said Mr. Lorry. "Are you
          going out?"</para>

          <para>"I'll walk with you to her gate. You know my
          vagabond and restless habits. If I should prowl about the
          streets a long time, don't be uneasy; I shall reappear in
          the morning. You go to the Court to-morrow?"</para>

          <para>"Yes, unhappily."</para>

          <para>"I shall be there, but only as one of the crowd. My
          Spy will find a place for me. Take my arm, sir."</para>

          <para>Mr. Lorry did so, and they went down-stairs and out
          in the streets. A few minutes brought them to Mr. Lorry's
          destination. Carton left him there; but lingered at a
          little distance, and turned back to the gate again when
          it was shut, and touched it. He had heard of her going to
          the prison every day. "She came out here," he said,
          looking about him, "turned this way, must have trod on
          these stones often. Let me follow in her steps."</para>

          <para>It was ten o'clock at night when he stood before
          the prison of La Force, where she had stood hundreds of
          times. A little wood-sawyer, having closed his shop, was
          smoking his pipe at his shop-door.</para>

          <para>"Good night, citizen," said Sydney Carton, pausing
          in going by; for, the man eyed him inquisitively.</para>

          <para>"Good night, citizen."</para>

          <para>"How goes the Republic?"</para>

          <para>"You mean the Guillotine. Not ill. Sixty-three
          to-day. We shall mount to a hundred soon. Samson and his
          men complain sometimes, of being exhausted. Ha, ha, ha!
          He is so droll, that Samson. Such a Barber!"</para>

          <para>"Do you often go to see him--"</para>

          <para>"Shave? Always. Every day. What a barber! You have
          seen him at work?"</para>

          <para>"Never."</para>

          <para>"Go and see him when he has a good batch. Figure
          this to yourself, citizen; he shaved the sixty-three
          to-day, in less than two pipes! Less than two pipes. Word
          of honour!"</para>

          <para>As the grinning little man held out the pipe he was
          smoking, to explain how he timed the executioner, Carton
          was so sensible of a rising desire to strike the life out
          of him, that he turned away.</para>

          <para>"But you are not English," said the wood-sawyer,
          "though you wear English dress?"</para>

          <para>"Yes," said Carton, pausing again, and answering
          over his shoulder.</para>

          <para>"You speak like a Frenchman."</para>

          <para>"I am an old student here."</para>

          <para>"Aha, a perfect Frenchman! Good night,
          Englishman."</para>

          <para>"Good night, citizen."</para>

          <para>"But go and see that droll dog," the little man
          persisted, calling after him. "And take a pipe with
          you!"</para>

          <para>Sydney had not gone far out of sight, when he
          stopped in the middle of the street under a glimmering
          lamp, and wrote with his pencil on a scrap of paper.
          Then, traversing with the decided step of one who
          remembered the way well, several dark and dirty
          streets--much dirtier than usual, for the best public
          thoroughfares remained uncleansed in those times of
          terror--he stopped at a chemist's shop, which the owner
          was closing with his own hands. A small, dim, crooked
          shop, kept in a tortuous, up-hill thoroughfare, by a
          small, dim, crooked man.</para>

          <para>Giving this citizen, too, good night, as he
          confronted him at his counter, he laid the scrap of paper
          before him. "Whew!" the chemist whistled softly, as he
          read it. "Hi! hi! hi!"</para>

          <para>Sydney Carton took no heed, and the chemist
          said:</para>

          <para>"For you, citizen?"</para>

          <para>"For me."</para>

          <para>"You will be careful to keep them separate,
          citizen? You know the consequences of mixing
          them?"</para>

          <para>"Perfectly."</para>

          <para>Certain small packets were made and given to him.
          He put them, one by one, in the breast of his inner coat,
          counted out the money for them, and deliberately left the
          shop. "There is nothing more to do," said he, glancing
          upward at the moon, "until to-morrow. I can't
          sleep."</para>

          <para>It was not a reckless manner, the manner in which
          he said these words aloud under the fast-sailing clouds,
          nor was it more expressive of negligence than defiance.
          It was the settled manner of a tired man, who had
          wandered and struggled and got lost, but who at length
          struck into his road and saw its end.</para>

          <para>Long ago, when he had been famous among his
          earliest competitors as a youth of great promise, be had
          followed his father to the grave. His mother had died,
          years before. These solemn words, which had been read at
          his father's grave, arose in his mind as he went down the
          dark streets, among the heavy shadows, with the moon and
          the clouds sailing on high above him. "I am the
          resurrection and the life, saith the Lord: he that
          believeth in me, though he were dead, yet shall he live:
          and whosoever liveth and believeth in me, shall never
          die."</para>

          <para>In a city dominated by the axe, alone at night,
          with natural sorrow rising in him for the sixty-three who
          had been that day put to death, and for to-morrow's
          victims then awaiting their doom in the prisons, and
          still of to-morrow's and to-morrow's, the chain of
          association that brought the words home, like a rusty old
          ship's anchor from the deep, might have been easily
          found. He did not seek it, but repeated them and went
          on.</para>

          <para>With a solemn interest in the lighted windows where
          the people were going to rest, forgetful through a few
          calm hours of the horrors surrounding them; in the towers
          of the churches, where no prayers were said, for the
          popular revulsion had even travelled that length of
          self-destruction from years of priestly impostors,
          plunderers, and profligates; in the distant
          burial-places, reserved, as they wrote upon the gates,
          for Eternal Sleep; in the abounding gaols; and in the
          streets along which the sixties rolled to a death which
          had become so common and material, that no sorrowful
          story of a haunting Spirit ever arose among the people
          out of all the working of the Guillotine; with a solemn
          interest in the whole life and death of the city settling
          down to its short nightly pause in fury; Sydney Carton
          crossed the Seine again for the lighter streets.</para>

          <para>Few coaches were abroad, for riders in coaches were
          liable to be suspected, and gentility hid its head in red
          nightcaps, and put on heavy shoes, and trudged. But, the
          theatres were all well filled, and the people poured
          cheerfully out as he passed, and went chatting home. At
          one of the theatre doors, there was a little girl with a
          mother, looking for a way across the street through the
          mud. He carried the child over, and before, the timid arm
          was loosed from his neck asked her for a kiss.</para>

          <para>"I am the resurrection and the life, saith the
          Lord: he that believeth in me, though he were dead, yet
          shall he live: and whosoever liveth and believeth in me,
          shall never die."</para>

          <para>Now, that the streets were quiet, and the night
          wore on, the words were in the echoes of his feet, and
          were in the air. Perfectly calm and steady, he sometimes
          repeated them to himself as he walked; but, he heard them
          always.</para>

          <para>The night wore out, and, as he stood upon the
          bridge listening to the water as it splashed the
          river-walls of the Island of Paris, where the picturesque
          confusion of houses and cathedral shone bright in the
          light of the moon, the day came coldly, looking like a
          dead face out of the sky. Then, the night, with the moon
          and the stars, turned pale and died, and for a little
          while it seemed as if Creation were delivered over to
          Death's dominion.</para>

          <para>But, the glorious sun, rising, seemed to strike
          those words, that burden of the night, straight and warm
          to his heart in its long bright rays. And looking along
          them, with reverently shaded eyes, a bridge of light
          appeared to span the air between him and the sun, while
          the river sparkled under it.</para>

          <para>The strong tide, so swift, so deep, and certain,
          was like a congenial friend, in the morning stillness. He
          walked by the stream, far from the houses, and in the
          light and warmth of the sun fell asleep on the bank. When
          he awoke and was afoot again, he lingered there yet a
          little longer, watching an eddy that turned and turned
          purposeless, until the stream absorbed it, and carried it
          on to the sea.--"Like me."</para>

          <para>A trading-boat, with a sail of the softened colour
          of a dead leaf, then glided into his view, floated by
          him, and died away. As its silent track in the water
          disappeared, the prayer that had broken up out of his
          heart for a merciful consideration of all his poor
          blindnesses and errors, ended in the words, "I am the
          resurrection and the life."</para>

          <para>Mr. Lorry was already out when he got back, and it
          was easy to surmise where the good old man was gone.
          Sydney Carton drank nothing but a tittle coffee, ate some
          bread, and, having washed and changed to refresh himself,
          went out to the place of trial.</para>

          <para>The court was all astir and a-buzz, when the black
          sheep--whom many fell away from in dread--pressed him
          into an obscure corner among the crowd. Mr. Lorry was
          there, and Doctor Manette was there. She was there,
          sitting beside her father.</para>

          <para>When her husband was brought in, she turned a look
          upon him, so sustaining, so encouraging, so full of
          admiring love and pitying tenderness, yet so courageous
          for his sake, that it called the healthy blood into his
          face, brightened his glance, and animated his heart. If
          there had been any eyes to notice the influence of her
          look, on Sydney Carton, it would have been seen to be the
          same influence exactly.</para>

          <para>Before that unjust Tribunal, there was little or no
          order of procedure, ensuring to any accused person any
          reasonable hearing. There could have been no such
          Revolution, if all laws, forms, and ceremonies, had not
          first been so monstrously abused, that the suicidal
          vengeance of the Revolution was to scatter them all to
          the winds.</para>

          <para>Every eye was turned to the jury. The same
          determined patriots and good republicans as yesterday and
          the day before, and to-morrow and the day after. Eager
          and prominent among them, one man with a craving face,
          and his fingers perpetually hovering about his lips,
          whose appearance gave great satisfaction to the
          spectators. A life- thirsting, cannibal-looking,
          bloody-minded juryman, the Jacques Three of St. Antoine.
          The whole jury, as a jury of dogs empannelled to try the
          deer.</para>

          <para>Every eye then turned to the five judges and the
          public prosecutor. No favourable leaning in that quarter
          to-day. A fell, uncompromising, murderous
          business-meaning there. Every eye then sought some other
          eye in the crowd, and gleamed at it approvingly; and
          heads nodded at one another, before bending forward with
          a strained attention.</para>

          <para>Charles Evremonde, called Darnay. Released
          yesterday. Reaccused and retaken yesterday. Indictment
          delivered to him last night. Suspected and Denounced
          enemy of the Republic, Aristocrat, one of a family of
          tyrants, one of a race proscribed, for that they had used
          their abolished privileges to the infamous oppression of
          the people. Charles Evremonde, called Darnay, in right of
          such proscription, absolutely Dead in Law.</para>

          <para>To this effect, in as few or fewer words, the
          Public Prosecutor.</para>

          <para>The President asked, was the Accused openly
          denounced or secretly?</para>

          <para>"Openly, President."</para>

          <para>"By whom?"</para>

          <para>"Three voices. Ernest Defarge, wine-vendor of St.
          Antoine."</para>

          <para>"Good."</para>

          <para>"Therese Defarge, his wife."</para>

          <para>"Good."</para>

          <para>"Alexandre Manette, physician."</para>

          <para>A great uproar took place in the court, and in the
          midst of it, Doctor Manette was seen, pale and trembling,
          standing where he had been seated.</para>

          <para>"President, I indignantly protest to you that this
          is a forgery and a fraud. You know the accused to be the
          husband of my daughter. My daughter, and those dear to
          her, are far dearer to me than my life. Who and where is
          the false conspirator who says that I denounce the
          husband of my child!"</para>

          <para>"Citizen Manette, be tranquil. To fail in
          submission to the authority of the Tribunal would be to
          put yourself out of Law. As to what is dearer to you than
          life, nothing can be so dear to a good citizen as the
          Republic."</para>

          <para>Loud acclamations hailed this rebuke. The President
          rang his bell, and with warmth resumed.</para>

          <para>"If the Republic should demand of you the sacrifice
          of your child herself, you would have no duty but to
          sacrifice her. Listen to what is to follow. In the
          meanwhile, be silent!"</para>

          <para>Frantic acclamations were again raised. Doctor
          Manette sat down, with his eyes looking around, and his
          lips trembling; his daughter drew closer to him. The
          craving man on the jury rubbed his hands together, and
          restored the usual hand to his mouth.</para>

          <para>Defarge was produced, when the court was quiet
          enough to admit of his being heard, and rapidly expounded
          the story of the imprisonment, and of his having been a
          mere boy in the Doctor's service, and of the release, and
          of the state of the prisoner when released and delivered
          to him. This short examination followed, for the court
          was quick with its work.</para>

          <para>"You did good service at the taking of the
          Bastille, citizen?"</para>

          <para>"I believe so."</para>

          <para>Here, an excited woman screeched from the crowd:
          "You were one of the best patriots there. Why not say so?
          You were a cannoneer that day there, and you were among
          the first to enter the accursed fortress when it fell.
          Patriots, I speak the truth!"</para>

          <para>It was The Vengeance who, amidst the warm
          commendations of the audience, thus assisted the
          proceedings. The President rang his bell; but, The
          Vengeance, warming with encouragement, shrieked, "I defy
          that bell!" wherein she was likewise much
          commended.</para>

          <para>"Inform the Tribunal of what you did that day
          within the Bastille, citizen."</para>

          <para>"I knew," said Defarge, looking down at his wife,
          who stood at the bottom of the steps on which he was
          raised, looking steadily up at him; "I knew that this
          prisoner, of whom I speak, had been confined in a cell
          known as One Hundred and Five, North Tower. I knew it
          from himself. He knew himself by no other name than One
          Hundred and Five, North Tower, when he made shoes under
          my care. As I serve my gun that day, I resolve, when the
          place shall fall, to examine that cell. It falls. I mount
          to the cell, with a fellow-citizen who is one of the
          Jury, directed by a gaoler. I examine it, very closely.
          In a hole in the chimney, where a stone has been worked
          out and replaced, I find a written paper. This is that
          written paper. I have made it my business to examine some
          specimens of the writing of Doctor Manette. This is the
          writing of Doctor Manette. I confide this paper, in the
          writing of Doctor Manette, to the hands of the
          President."</para>

          <para>"Let it be read."</para>

          <para>In a dead silence and stillness--the prisoner under
          trial looking lovingly at his wife, his wife only looking
          from him to look with solicitude at her father, Doctor
          Manette keeping his eyes fixed on the reader, Madame
          Defarge never taking hers from the prisoner, Defarge
          never taking his from his feasting wife, and all the
          other eyes there intent upon the Doctor, who saw none of
          them--the paper was read, as follows.</para>
        </chapter>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>X</chapnum>

            <title>The Substance of the Shadow</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>"I, Alexandre Manette, unfortunate physician,
          native of Beauvais, and afterwards resident in Paris,
          write this melancholy paper in my doleful cell in the
          Bastille, during the last month of the year, 1767. I
          write it at stolen intervals, under every difficulty. I
          design to secrete it in the wall of the chimney, where I
          have slowly and laboriously made a place of concealment
          for it. Some pitying hand may find it there, when I and
          my sorrows are dust.</para>

          <para>"These words are formed by the rusty iron point
          with which I write with difficulty in scrapings of soot
          and charcoal from the chimney, mixed with blood, in the
          last month of the tenth year of my captivity. Hope has
          quite departed from my breast. I know from terrible
          warnings I have noted in myself that my reason will not
          long remain unimpaired, but I solemnly declare that I am
          at this time in the possession of my right mind--that my
          memory is exact and circumstantial--and that I write the
          truth as I shall answer for these my last recorded words,
          whether they be ever read by men or not, at the Eternal
          Judgment-seat.</para>

          <para>"One cloudy moonlight night, in the third week of
          December (I think the twenty-second of the month) in the
          year 1757, I was walking on a retired part of the quay by
          the Seine for the refreshment of the frosty air, at an
          hour's distance from my place of residence in the Street
          of the School of Medicine, when a carriage came along
          behind me, driven very fast. As I stood aside to let that
          carriage pass, apprehensive that it might otherwise run
          me down, a head was put out at the window, and a voice
          called to the driver to stop.</para>

          <para>"The carriage stopped as soon as the driver could
          rein in his horses, and the same voice called to me by my
          name. I answered. The carriage was then so far in advance
          of me that two gentlemen had time to open the door and
          alight before I came up with it.</para>

          <para>I observed that they were both wrapped in cloaks,
          and appeared to conceal themselves. As they stood side by
          side near the carriage door, I also observed that they
          both looked of about my own age, or rather younger, and
          that they were greatly alike, in stature, manner, voice,
          and (as far as I could see) face too.</para>

          <para>"`You are Doctor Manette?' said one.</para>

          <para>"I am."</para>

          <para>"`Doctor Manette, formerly of Beauvais,' said the
          other; `the young physician, originally an expert
          surgeon, who within the last year or two has made a
          rising reputation in Paris?'</para>

          <para>"`Gentlemen,' I returned, `I am that Doctor Manette
          of whom you speak so graciously.'</para>

          <para>"`We have been to your residence,' said the first,
          `and not being so fortunate as to find you there, and
          being informed that you were probably walking in this
          direction, we followed, in the hope of overtaking you.
          Will you please to enter the carriage?'</para>

          <para>"The manner of both was imperious, and they both
          moved, as these words were spoken, so as to place me
          between themselves and the carriage door. They were
          armed. I was not.</para>

          <para>"`Gentlemen,' said I, `pardon me; but I usually
          inquire who does me the honour to seek my assistance, and
          what is the nature of the case to which I am
          summoned.'</para>

          <para>"The reply to this was made by him who had spoken
          second. 'Doctor, your clients are people of condition. As
          to the nature of the case, our confidence in your skill
          assures us that you will ascertain it for yourself better
          than we can describe it. Enough. Will you please to enter
          the carriage?'</para>

          <para>"I could do nothing but comply, and I entered it in
          silence. They both entered after me--the last springing
          in, after putting up the steps. The carriage turned
          about, and drove on at its former speed.</para>

          <para>"I repeat this conversation exactly as it occurred.
          I have no doubt that it is, word for word, the same. I
          describe everything exactly as it took place,
          constraining my mind not to wander from the task. Where I
          make the broken marks that follow here, I leave off for
          the time, and put my paper in its hiding-place.</para>

          <para>* * * *</para>

          <para>"The carriage left the streets behind, passed the
          North Barrier, and emerged upon the country road. At
          two-thirds of a league from the Barrier--I did not
          estimate the distance at that time, but afterwards when I
          traversed it--it struck out of the main avenue, and
          presently stopped at a solitary house, We all three
          alighted, and walked, by a damp soft footpath in a garden
          where a neglected fountain had overflowed, to the door of
          the house. It was not opened immediately, in answer to
          the ringing of the bell, and one of my two conductors
          struck the man who opened it, with his heavy riding
          glove, across the face.</para>

          <para>"There was nothing in this action to attract my
          particular attention, for I had seen common people struck
          more commonly than dogs. But, the other of the two, being
          angry likewise, struck the man in like manner with his
          arm; the look and bearing of the brothers were then so
          exactly alike, that I then first perceived them to be
          twin brothers.</para>

          <para>"From the time of our alighting at the outer gate
          (which we found locked, and which one of the brothers had
          opened to admit us, and had relocked), I had heard cries
          proceeding from an upper chamber. I was conducted to this
          chamber straight, the cries growing louder as we ascended
          the stairs, and I found a patient in a high fever of the
          brain, lying on a bed.</para>

          <para>"The patient was a woman of great beauty, and
          young; assuredly not much past twenty. Her hair was torn
          and ragged, and her arms were bound to her sides with
          sashes and handkerchiefs. I noticed that these bonds were
          all portions of a gentleman's dress. On one of them,
          which was a fringed scarf for a dress of ceremony, I saw
          the armorial bearings of a Noble, and the letter
          E.</para>

          <para>"I saw this, within the first minute of my
          contemplation of the patient; for, in her restless
          strivings she had turned over on her face on the edge of
          the bed, had drawn the end of the scarf into her mouth,
          and was in danger of suffocation. My first act was to put
          out my hand to relieve her breathing; and in moving the
          scarf aside, the embroidery in the corner caught my
          sight.</para>

          <para>"I turned her gently over, placed my hands upon her
          breast to calm her and keep her down, and looked into her
          face. Her eyes were dilated and wild, and she constantly
          uttered piercing shrieks, and repeated the words, `My
          husband, my father, and my brother!' and then counted up
          to twelve, and said, `Hush!' For an instant, and no more,
          she would pause to listen, and then the piercing shrieks
          would begin again, and she would repeat the cry, `My
          husband, my father, and my brother!' and would count up
          to twelve, and say, `Hush!' There was no variation in the
          order, or the manner. There was no cessation, but the
          regular moment's pause, in the utterance of these
          sounds.</para>

          <para>"`How long,' I asked, `has this lasted?'</para>

          <para>"To distinguish the brothers, I will call them the
          elder and the younger; by the elder, I mean him who
          exercised the most authority. It was the elder who
          replied, `Since about this hour last night.'</para>

          <para>"`She has a husband, a father, and a
          brother?'</para>

          <para>"`A brother.'</para>

          <para>"`I do not address her brother?'</para>

          <para>"He answered with great contempt, `No.'</para>

          <para>"`She has some recent association with the number
          twelve?'</para>

          <para>"The younger brother impatiently rejoined, `With
          twelve o'clock?'</para>

          <para>"`See, gentlemen,' said I, still keeping my hands
          upon her breast, 'how useless I am, as you have brought
          me! If I had known what I was coming to see, I could have
          come provided. As it is, time must be lost. There are no
          medicines to be obtained in this lonely place.'</para>

          <para>"The elder brother looked to the younger, who said
          haughtily, `There is a case of medicines here;' and
          brought it from a closet, and put it on the table.</para>

          <para>* * * *</para>

          <para>"I opened some of the bottles, smelt them, and put
          the stoppers to my lips. If I had wanted to use anything
          save narcotic medicines that were poisons in themselves,
          I would not have administered any of those.</para>

          <para>"`Do you doubt them?' asked the younger
          brother.</para>

          <para>"`You see, monsieur, I am going to use them,' I
          replied, and said no more.</para>

          <para>"I made the patient swallow, with great difficulty,
          and after many efforts, the dose that I desired to give.
          As I intended to repeat it after a while, and as it was
          necessary to watch its influence, I then sat down by the
          side of the bed. There was a timid and suppressed woman
          in attendance (wife of the man down-stairs), who had
          retreated into a corner. The house was damp and decayed,
          indifferently furnished--evidently, recently occupied and
          temporarily used. Some thick old hangings had been nailed
          up before the windows, to deaden the sound of the
          shrieks. They continued to be uttered in their regular
          succession, with the cry, `My husband, my father, and my
          brother!' the counting up to twelve, and `Hush!' The
          frenzy was so violent, that I had not unfastened the
          bandages restraining the arms; but, I had looked to them,
          to see that they were not painful. The only spark of
          encouragement in the case, was, that my hand upon the
          sufferer's breast had this much soothing influence, that
          for minutes at a time it tranquillised the figure. It had
          no effect upon the cries; no pendulum could be more
          regular.</para>

          <para>"For the reason that my hand had this effect (I
          assume), I had sat by the side of the bed for half an
          hour, with the two brothers looking on, before the elder
          said:</para>

          <para>"`There is another patient.'</para>

          <para>"I was startled, and asked, `Is it a pressing
          case?'</para>

          <para>"`You had better see,' he carelessly answered; and
          took up a light.</para>

          <para>* * * *</para>

          <para>"The other patient lay in a back room across a
          second staircase, which was a species of loft over a
          stable. There was a low plastered ceiling to a part of
          it; the rest was open, to the ridge of the tiled roof,
          and there were beams across. Hay and straw were stored in
          that portion of the place, fagots for firing, and a heap
          of apples in sand. I had to pass through that part, to
          get at the other. My memory is circumstantial and
          unshaken. I try it with these details, and I see them
          all, in this my cell in the Bastille, near the close of
          the tenth year of my captivity, as I saw them all that
          night.</para>

          <para>"On some hay on the ground, with a cushion thrown
          under his head, lay a handsome peasant boy--a boy of not
          more than seventeen at the most. He lay on his back, with
          his teeth set, his right hand clenched on his breast, and
          his glaring eyes looking straight upward. I could not see
          where his wound was, as I kneeled on one knee over him;
          but, I could see that he was dying of a wound from a
          sharp point.</para>

          <para>"`I am a doctor, my poor fellow,' said I. `Let me
          examine it.'</para>

          <para>"`I do not want it examined,' he answered; `let it
          be.'</para>

          <para>"It was under his hand, and I soothed him to let me
          move his hand away. The wound was a sword-thrust,
          received from twenty to twenty- four hours before, but no
          skill could have saved him if it had been looked to
          without delay. He was then dying fast. As I turned my
          eyes to the elder brother, I saw him looking down at this
          handsome boy whose life was ebbing out, as if he were a
          wounded bird, or hare, or rabbit; not at all as if he
          were a fellow-creature.</para>

          <para>"`How has this been done, monsieur?' said I.</para>

          <para>"`A crazed young common dog! A serf! Forced my
          brother to draw upon him, and has fallen by my brother's
          sword--like a gentleman.'</para>

          <para>"There was no touch of pity, sorrow, or kindred
          humanity, in this answer. The speaker seemed to
          acknowledge that it was inconvenient to have that
          different order of creature dying there, and that it
          would have been better if he had died in the usual
          obscure routine of his vermin kind. He was quite
          incapable of any compassionate feeling about the boy, or
          about his fate.</para>

          <para>"The boy's eyes had slowly moved to him as he had
          spoken, and they now slowly moved to me.</para>

          <para>"`Doctor, they are very proud, these Nobles; but we
          common dogs are proud too, sometimes. They plunder us,
          outrage us, beat us, kill us; but we have a little pride
          left, sometimes. She--have you seen her, Doctor?'</para>

          <para>"The shrieks and the cries were audible there,
          though subdued by the distance. He referred to them, as
          if she were lying in our presence.</para>

          <para>"I said, `I have seen her.'</para>

          <para>"`She is my sister, Doctor. They have had their
          shameful rights, these Nobles, in the modesty and virtue
          of our sisters, many years, but we have had good girls
          among us. I know it, and have heard my father say so. She
          was a good girl. She was betrothed to a good young man,
          too: a tenant of his. We were all tenants of his--that
          man's who stands there. The other is his brother, the
          worst of a bad race.'</para>

          <para>"It was with the greatest difficulty that the boy
          gathered bodily force to speak; but, his spirit spoke
          with a dreadful emphasis.</para>

          <para>"`We were so robbed by that man who stands there,
          as an we common dogs are by those superior Beings--taxed
          by him without mercy, obliged to work for him without
          pay, obliged to grind our corn at his mill, obliged to
          feed scores of his tame birds on our wretched crops, and
          forbidden for our lives to keep a single tame bird of our
          own, pillaged and plundered to that degree that when we
          chanced to have a bit of meat, we ate it in fear, with
          the door barred and the shutters closed, that his people
          should not see it and take it from us--I say, we were so
          robbed, and hunted, and were made so poor, that our
          father told us it was a dreadful thing to bring a child
          into the world, and that what we should most pray for,
          was, that our women might be barren and our miserable
          race die out!'</para>

          <para>"I had never before seen the sense of being
          oppressed, bursting forth like a fire. I had supposed
          that it must be latent in the people somewhere; but, I
          had never seen it break out, until I saw it in the dying
          boy.</para>

          <para>"`Nevertheless, Doctor, my sister married. He was
          ailing at that time, poor fellow, and she married her
          lover, that she might tend and comfort him in our
          cottage--our dog-hut, as that man would call it. She had
          not been married many weeks, when that man's brother saw
          her and admired her, and asked that man to lend her to
          him--for what are husbands among us! He was willing
          enough, but my sister was good and virtuous, and hated
          his brother with a hatred as strong as mine. What did the
          two then, to persuade her husband to use his influence
          with her, to make her willing?'</para>

          <para>"The boy's eyes, which had been fixed on mine,
          slowly turned to the looker-on, and I saw in the two
          faces that all he said was true. The two opposing kinds
          of pride confronting one another, I can see, even in this
          Bastille; the gentleman's, all negligent indifference;
          the peasants, all trodden-down sentiment, and passionate
          revenge.</para>

          <para>"`You know, Doctor, that it is among the Rights of
          these Nobles to harness us common dogs to carts, and
          drive us. They so harnessed him and drove him. You know
          that it is among their Rights to keep us in their grounds
          all night, quieting the frogs, in order that their noble
          sleep may not be disturbed. They kept him out in the
          unwholesome mists at night, and ordered him back into his
          harness in the day. But he was not persuaded. No! Taken
          out of harness one day at noon, to feed--if he could find
          food--he sobbed twelve times, once for every stroke of
          the bell, and died on her bosom.'</para>

          <para>"Nothing human could have held life in the boy but
          his determination to tell all his wrong. He forced back
          the gathering shadows of death, as he forced his clenched
          right hand to remain clenched, and to cover his
          wound.</para>

          <para>"`Then, with that man's permission and even with
          his aid, his brother took her away; in spite of what I
          know she must have told his brother--and what that is,
          will not be long unknown to you, Doctor, if it is
          now--his brother took her away--for his pleasure and
          diversion, for a little while. I saw her pass me on the
          road. When I took the tidings home, our father's heart
          burst; he never spoke one of the words that fined it. I
          took my young sister (for I have another) to a place
          beyond the reach of this man, and where, at least, she
          will never be HIS vassal. Then, I tracked the brother
          here, and last night climbed in--a common dog, but sword
          in hand.--Where is the loft window? It was somewhere
          here?'</para>

          <para>"The room was darkening to his sight; the world was
          narrowing around him. I glanced about me, and saw that
          the hay and straw were trampled over the floor, as if
          there had been a struggle.</para>

          <para>"`She heard me, and ran in. I told her not to come
          near us till he was dead. He came in and first tossed me
          some pieces of money; then struck at me with a whip. But
          I, though a common dog, so struck at him as to make him
          draw. Let him break into as many pieces as he will, the
          sword that he stained with my common blood; he drew to
          defend himself--thrust at me with all his skill for his
          life.'</para>

          <para>"My glance had fallen, but a few moments before, on
          the fragments of a broken sword, lying among the hay.
          That weapon was a gentleman's. In another place, lay an
          old sword that seemed to have been a soldier's.</para>

          <para>"`Now, lift me up, Doctor; lift me up. Where is
          he?'</para>

          <para>"`He is not here,' I said, supporting the boy, and
          thinking that he referred to the brother.</para>

          <para>"`He! Proud as these nobles are, he is afraid to
          see me. Where is the man who was here? turn my face to
          him.'</para>

          <para>"I did so, raising the boy's head against my knee.
          But, invested for the moment with extraordinary power, he
          raised himself completely: obliging me to rise too, or I
          could not have still supported him.</para>

          <para>"`Marquis,' said the boy, turned to him with his
          eyes opened wide, and his right hand raised, `in the days
          when all these things are to be answered for, I summon
          you and yours, to the last of your bad race, to answer
          for them. I mark this cross of blood upon you, as a sign
          that I do it. In the days when all these things are to be
          answered for, I summon your brother, the worst of the bad
          race, to answer for them separately. I mark this cross of
          blood upon him, as a sign that I do it.'</para>

          <para>"Twice, he put his hand to the wound in his breast,
          and with his forefinger drew a cross in the air. He stood
          for an instant with the finger yet raised, and as it
          dropped, he dropped with it, and I laid him down
          dead.</para>

          <para>* * * *</para>

          <para>"When I returned to the bedside of the young woman,
          I found her raving in precisely the same order of
          continuity. I knew that this might last for many hours,
          and that it would probably end in the silence of the
          grave.</para>

          <para>"I repeated the medicines I had given her, and I
          sat at the side of the bed until the night was far
          advanced. She never abated the piercing quality of her
          shrieks, never stumbled in the distinctness or the order
          of her words. They were always `My husband, my father,
          and my brother! One, two, three, four, five, six, seven,
          eight, nine, ten, eleven, twelve. Hush!'</para>

          <para>"This lasted twenty-six hours from the time when I
          first saw her. I had come and gone twice, and was again
          sitting by her, when she began to falter. I did what
          little could be done to assist that opportunity, and
          by-and-bye she sank into a lethargy, and lay like the
          dead.</para>

          <para>"It was as if the wind and rain had lulled at last,
          after a long and fearful storm. I released her arms, and
          called the woman to assist me to compose her figure and
          the dress she had tom. It was then that I knew her
          condition to be that of one in whom the first
          expectations of being a mother have arisen; and it was
          then that I lost the little hope I had had of her.</para>

          <para>"`Is she dead?' asked the Marquis, whom I will
          still describe as the elder brother, coming booted into
          the room from his horse.</para>

          <para>"`Not dead,' said I; `but like to die.'</para>

          <para>"`What strength there is in these common bodies!'
          he said, looking down at her with some curiosity.</para>

          <para>"`There is prodigious strength,' I answered him,
          `in sorrow and despair.'</para>

          <para>"He first laughed at my words, and then frowned at
          them. He moved a chair with his foot near to mine,
          ordered the woman away, and said in a subdued
          voice,</para>

          <para>"`Doctor, finding my brother in this difficulty
          with these hinds, I recommended that your aid should be
          invited. Your reputation is high, and, as a young man
          with your fortune to make, you are probably mindful of
          your interest. The things that you see here, are things
          to be seen, and not spoken of.'</para>

          <para>"I listened to the patient's breathing, and avoided
          answering.</para>

          <para>"`Do you honour me with your attention,
          Doctor?'</para>

          <para>"`Monsieur,' said I, `in my profession, the
          communications of patients are always received in
          confidence.' I was guarded in my answer, for I was
          troubled in my mind with what I had heard and
          seen.</para>

          <para>"Her breathing was so difficult to trace, that I
          carefully tried the pulse and the heart. There was life,
          and no more. Looking round as I resumed my seat, I found
          both the brothers intent upon me.</para>

          <para>* * * *</para>

          <para>"I write with so much difficulty, the cold is so
          severe, I am so fearful of being detected and consigned
          to an underground cell and total darkness, that I must
          abridge this narrative. There is no confusion or failure
          in my memory; it can recall, and could detail, every word
          that was ever spoken between me and those
          brothers.</para>

          <para>"She lingered for a week. Towards the last, I could
          understand some few syllables that she said to me, by
          placing my ear close to her lips. She asked me where she
          was, and I told her; who I was, and I told her. It was in
          vain that I asked her for her family name. She faintly
          shook her head upon the pillow, and kept her secret, as
          the boy had done.</para>

          <para>"I had no opportunity of asking her any question,
          until I had told the brothers she was sinking fast, and
          could not live another day. Until then, though no one was
          ever presented to her consciousness save the woman and
          myself, one or other of them had always jealously sat
          behind the curtain at the head of the bed when I was
          there. But when it came to that, they seemed careless
          what communication I might hold with her; as if--the
          thought passed through my mind--I were dying too.</para>

          <para>"I always observed that their pride bitterly
          resented the younger brother's (as I call him) having
          crossed swords with a peasant, and that peasant a boy.
          The only consideration that appeared to affect the mind
          of either of them was the consideration that this was
          highly degrading to the family, and was ridiculous. As
          often as I caught the younger brother's eyes, their
          expression reminded me that he disliked me deeply, for
          knowing what I knew from the boy. He was smoother and
          more polite to me than the elder; but I saw this. I also
          saw that I was an incumbrance in the mind of the elder,
          too.</para>

          <para>"My patient died, two hours before midnight--at a
          time, by my watch, answering almost to the minute when I
          had first seen her. I was alone with her, when her
          forlorn young head drooped gently on one side, and all
          her earthly wrongs and sorrows ended.</para>

          <para>"The brothers were waiting in a room down-stairs,
          impatient to ride away. I had heard them, alone at the
          bedside, striking their boots with their riding-whips,
          and loitering up and down.</para>

          <para>"`At last she is dead?' said the elder, when I went
          in.</para>

          <para>"'She is dead,' said I.</para>

          <para>"`I congratulate you, my brother,'were his words as
          he turned round.</para>

          <para>"He had before offered me money, which I had
          postponed taking. He now gave me a rouleau of gold. I
          took it from his hand, but laid it on the table. I had
          considered the question, and had resolved to accept
          nothing.</para>

          <para>"`Pray excuse me,' said I. `Under the
          circumstances, no.'</para>

          <para>"They exchanged looks, but bent their heads to me
          as I bent mine to them, and we parted without another
          word on either side.</para>

          <para>* * * *</para>

          <para>"I am weary, weary, weary-worn down by misery. I
          cannot read what I have written with this gaunt
          hand.</para>

          <para>"Early in the morning, the rouleau of gold was left
          at my door in a little box, with my name on the outside.
          From the first, I had anxiously considered what I ought
          to do. I decided, that day, to write privately to the
          Minister, stating the nature of the two cases to which I
          had been summoned, and the place to which I had gone: in
          effect, stating all the circumstances. I knew what Court
          influence was, and what the immunities of the Nobles
          were, and I expected that the matter would never be heard
          of; but, I wished to relieve my own mind. I had kept the
          matter a profound secret, even from my wife; and this,
          too, I resolved to state in my letter. I had no
          apprehension whatever of my real danger; but I was
          conscious that there might be danger for others, if
          others were compromised by possessing the knowledge that
          I possessed.</para>

          <para>"I was much engaged that day, and could not
          complete my letter that night. I rose long before my
          usual time next morning to finish it. It was the last day
          of the year. The letter was lying before me just
          completed, when I was told that a lady waited, who wished
          to see me.</para>

          <para>* * * *</para>

          <para>"I am growing more and more unequal to the task I
          have set myself. It is so cold, so dark, my senses are so
          benumbed, and the gloom upon me is so dreadful.</para>

          <para>"The lady was young, engaging, and handsome, but
          not marked for long life. She was in great agitation. She
          presented herself to me as the wife of the Marquis St.
          Evremonde. I connected the title by which the boy had
          addressed the elder brother, with the initial letter
          embroidered on the scarf, and had no difficulty in
          arriving at the conclusion that I had seen that nobleman
          very lately.</para>

          <para>"My memory is still accurate, but I cannot write
          the words of our conversation. I suspect that I am
          watched more closely than I was, and I know not at what
          times I may be watched. She had in part suspected, and in
          part discovered, the main facts of the cruel story, of
          her husband's share in it, and my being resorted to. She
          did not know that the girl was dead. Her hope had been,
          she said in great distress, to show her, in secret, a
          woman's sympathy. Her hope had been to avert the wrath of
          Heaven from a House that had long been hateful to the
          suffering many.</para>

          <para>"She had reasons for believing that there was a
          young sister living, and her greatest desire was, to help
          that sister. I could tell her nothing but that there was
          such a sister; beyond that, I knew nothing. Her
          inducement to come to me, relying on my confidence, had
          been the hope that I could tell her the name and place of
          abode. Whereas, to this wretched hour I am ignorant of
          both.</para>

          <para>* * * *</para>

          <para>"These scraps of paper fail me. One was taken from
          me, with a warning, yesterday. I must finish my record
          to-day.</para>

          <para>"She was a good, compassionate lady, and not happy
          in her marriage. How could she be! The brother distrusted
          and disliked her, and his influence was all opposed to
          her; she stood in dread of him, and in dread of her
          husband too. When I handed her down to the door, there
          was a child, a pretty boy from two to three years old, in
          her carriage.</para>

          <para>"`For his sake, Doctor,' she said, pointing to him
          in tears, `I would do all I can to make what poor amends
          I can. He will never prosper in his inheritance
          otherwise. I have a presentiment that if no other
          innocent atonement is made for this, it will one day be
          required of him. What I have left to call my own--it is
          little beyond the worth of a few jewels--I will make it
          the first charge of his life to bestow, with the
          compassion and lamenting of his dead mother, on this
          injured family, if the sister can be discovered.'</para>

          <para>"She kissed the boy, and said, caressing him, `It
          is for thine own dear sake. Thou wilt be faithful, little
          Charles?' The child answered her bravely, `Yes!' I kissed
          her hand, and she took him in her arms, and went away
          caressing him. I never saw her more.</para>

          <para>"As she had mentioned her husband's name in the
          faith that I knew it, I added no mention of it to my
          letter. I sealed my letter, and, not trusting it out of
          my own hands, delivered it myself that day.</para>

          <para>"That night, the last night of the year, towards
          nine o'clock, a man in a black dress rang at my gate,
          demanded to see me, and softly followed my servant,
          Ernest Defarge, a youth, up-stairs. When my servant came
          into the room where I sat with my wife--O my wife,
          beloved of my heart! My fair young English wife!--we saw
          the man, who was supposed to be at the gate, standing
          silent behind him.</para>

          <para>"An urgent case in the Rue St. Honore, he said. It
          would not detain me, he had a coach in waiting.</para>

          <para>"It brought me here, it brought me to my grave.
          When I was clear of the house, a black muffler was drawn
          tightly over my mouth from behind, and my arms were
          pinioned. The two brothers crossed the road from a dark
          corner, and identified me with a single gesture. The
          Marquis took from his pocket the letter I had written,
          showed it me, burnt it in the light of a lantern that was
          held, and extinguished the ashes with his foot. Not a
          word was spoken. I was brought here, I was brought to my
          living grave.</para>

          <para>"If it had pleased GOD to put it in the hard heart
          of either of the brothers, in all these frightful years,
          to grant me any tidings of my dearest wife--so much as to
          let me know by a word whether alive or dead--I might have
          thought that He had not quite abandoned them. But, now I
          believe that the mark of the red cross is fatal to them,
          and that they have no part in His mercies. And them and
          their descendants, to the last of their race, I,
          Alexandre Manette, unhappy prisoner, do this last night
          of the year 1767, in my unbearable agony, denounce to the
          times when all these things shall be answered for. I
          denounce them to Heaven and to earth."</para>

          <para>A terrible sound arose when the reading of this
          document was done. A sound of craving and eagerness that
          had nothing articulate in it but blood. The narrative
          called up the most revengeful passions of the time, and
          there was not a head in the nation but must have dropped
          before it.</para>

          <para>Little need, in presence of that tribunal and that
          auditory, to show how the Defarges had not made the paper
          public, with the other captured Bastille memorials borne
          in procession, and had kept it, biding their time. Little
          need to show that this detested family name had long been
          anathematised by Saint Antoine, and was wrought into the
          fatal register. The man never trod ground whose virtues
          and services would have sustained him in that place that
          day, against such denunciation.</para>

          <para>And all the worse for the doomed man, that the
          denouncer was a well-known citizen, his own attached
          friend, the father of his wife. One of the frenzied
          aspirations of the populace was, for imitations of the
          questionable public virtues of antiquity, and for
          sacrifices and self-immolations on the people's altar.
          Therefore when the President said (else had his own head
          quivered on his shoulders), that the good physician of
          the Republic would deserve better still of the Republic
          by rooting out an obnoxious family of Aristocrats, and
          would doubtless feel a sacred glow and joy in making his
          daughter a widow and her child an orphan, there was wild
          excitement, patriotic fervour, not a touch of human
          sympathy.</para>

          <para>"Much influence around him, has that Doctor?"
          murmured Madame Defarge, smiling to The Vengeance. "Save
          him now, my Doctor, save him!"</para>

          <para>At every juryman's vote, there was a roar. Another
          and another. Roar and roar.</para>

          <para>Unanimously voted. At heart and by descent an
          Aristocrat, an enemy of the Republic, a notorious
          oppressor of the People. Back to the Conciergerie, and
          Death within four-and-twenty hours!</para>
        </chapter>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>XI</chapnum>

            <title>Dusk</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>The wretched wife of the innocent man thus doomed
          to die, fell under the sentence, as if she had been
          mortally stricken. But, she uttered no sound; and so
          strong was the voice within her, representing that it was
          she of all the world who must uphold him in his misery
          and not augment it, that it quickly raised her, even from
          that shock.</para>

          <para>The Judges having to take part in a public
          demonstration out of doors, the Tribunal adjourned. The
          quick noise and movement of the court's emptying itself
          by many passages had not ceased, when Lucie stood
          stretching out her arms towards her husband, with nothing
          in her face but love and consolation.</para>

          <para>"If I might touch him! If I might embrace him once!
          O, good citizens, if you would have so much compassion
          for us!"</para>

          <para>There was but a gaoler left, along with two of the
          four men who had taken him last night, and Barsad. The
          people had all poured out to the show in the streets.
          Barsad proposed to the rest, "Let her embrace him then;
          it is but a moment." It was silently acquiesced in, and
          they passed her over the seats in the hall to a raised
          place, where he, by leaning over the dock, could fold her
          in his arms.</para>

          <para>"Farewell, dear darling of my soul. My parting
          blessing on my love. We shall meet again, where the weary
          are at rest!"</para>

          <para>They were her husband's words, as he held her to
          his bosom.</para>

          <para>"I can bear it, dear Charles. I am supported from
          above: don't suffer for me. A parting blessing for our
          chad."</para>

          <para>"I send it to her by you. I kiss her by you. I say
          farewell to her by you."</para>

          <para>"My husband. No! A moment!" He was tearing himself
          apart from her. "We shall not be separated long. I feel
          that this will break my heart by-and-bye; but I will do
          my duty while I can, and when I leave her, God will raise
          up friends for her, as He did for me."</para>

          <para>Her father had followed her, and would have fallen
          on his knees to both of them, but that Darnay put out a
          hand and seized him, crying:</para>

          <para>"No, no! What have you done, what have you done,
          that you should kneel to us! We know now, what a struggle
          you made of old. We know, now what you underwent when you
          suspected my descent, and when you knew it. We know now,
          the natural antipathy you strove against, and conquered,
          for her dear sake. We thank you with all our hearts, and
          all our love and duty. Heaven be with you!"</para>

          <para>Her father's only answer was to draw his hands
          through his white hair, and wring them with a shriek of
          anguish.</para>

          <para>"It could not be otherwise," said the prisoner.
          "All things have worked together as they have fallen out.
          it was the always-vain endeavour to discharge my poor
          mother's trust that first brought my fatal presence near
          you. Good could never come of such evil, a happier end
          was not in nature to so unhappy a beginning. Be
          comforted, and forgive me. Heaven bless you!"</para>

          <para>As he was drawn away, his wife released him, and
          stood looking after him with her hands touching one
          another in the attitude of prayer, and with a radiant
          look upon her face, in which there was even a comforting
          smile. As he went out at the prisoners' door, she turned,
          laid her head lovingly on her father's breast, tried to
          speak to him, and fell at his feet.</para>

          <para>Then, issuing from the obscure corner from which he
          had never moved, Sydney Carton came and took her up. Only
          her father and Mr. Lorry were with her. His arm trembled
          as it raised her, and supported her head. Yet, there was
          an air about him that was not all of pity--that had a
          flush of pride in it.</para>

          <para>"Shall I take her to a coach? I shall never feel
          her weight."</para>

          <para>He carried her lightly to the door, and laid her
          tenderly down in a coach. Her father and their old friend
          got into it, and he took his seat beside the
          driver.</para>

          <para>When they arrived at the gateway where he had
          paused in the dark not many hours before, to picture to
          himself on which of the rough stones of the street her
          feet had trodden, he lifted her again, and carried her up
          the staircase to their rooms. There, he laid her down on
          a couch, where her child and Miss Pross wept over
          her.</para>

          <para>"Don't recall her to herself," he said, softly, to
          the latter, "she is better so. Don't revive her to
          consciousness, while she only faints."</para>

          <para>"Oh, Carton, Carton, dear Carton!" cried little
          Lucie, springing up and throwing her arms passionately
          round him, in a burst of grief. "Now that you have come,
          I think you will do something to help mamma, something to
          save papa! O, look at her, dear Carton! Can you, of all
          the people who love her, bear to see her so?"</para>

          <para>He bent over the child, and laid her blooming cheek
          against his face. He put her gently from him, and looked
          at her unconscious mother.</para>

          <para>"Before I go," he said, and paused--"I may kiss
          her?"</para>

          <para>It was remembered afterwards that when he bent down
          and touched her face with his lips, he murmured some
          words. The child, who was nearest to him, told them
          afterwards, and told her grandchildren when she was a
          handsome old lady, that she heard him say, "A life you
          love."</para>

          <para>When he had gone out into the next room, he turned
          suddenly on Mr. Lorry and her father, who were following,
          and said to the latter:</para>

          <para>"You had great influence but yesterday, Doctor
          Manette; let it at least be tried. These judges, and all
          the men in power, are very friendly to you, and very
          recognisant of your services; are they not?"</para>

          <para>"Nothing connected with Charles was concealed from
          me. I had the strongest assurances that I should save
          him; and I did." He returned the answer in great trouble,
          and very slowly.</para>

          <para>"Try them again. The hours between this and
          to-morrow afternoon are few and short, but try."</para>

          <para>"I intend to try. I will not rest a moment."</para>

          <para>"That's well. I have known such energy as yours do
          great things before now--though never," he added, with a
          smile and a sigh together, "such great things as this.
          But try! Of little worth as life is when we misuse it, it
          is worth that effort. It would cost nothing to lay down
          if it were not."</para>

          <para>"I will go," said Doctor Manette, "to the
          Prosecutor and the President straight, and I will go to
          others whom it is better not to name. I will write too,
          and--But stay! There is a Celebration in the streets, and
          no one will be accessible until dark."</para>

          <para>"That's true. Well! It is a forlorn hope at the
          best, and not much the forlorner for being delayed till
          dark. I should like to know how you speed; though, mind!
          I expect nothing! When are you likely to have seen these
          dread powers, Doctor Manette?"</para>

          <para>"Immediately after dark, I should hope. Within an
          hour or two from this."</para>

          <para>"It will be dark soon after four. Let us stretch
          the hour or two. If I go to Mr. Lorry's at nine, shall I
          hear what you have done, either from our friend or from
          yourself?"</para>

          <para>"Yes."</para>

          <para>"May you prosper!"</para>

          <para>Mr. Lorry followed Sydney to the outer door, and,
          touching him on the shoulder as he was going away, caused
          him to turn.</para>

          <para>"I have no hope," said Mr. Lorry, in a low and
          sorrowful whisper.</para>

          <para>"Nor have I."</para>

          <para>"If any one of these men, or all of these men, were
          disposed to spare him--which is a large supposition; for
          what is his life, or any man's to them!--I doubt if they
          durst spare him after the demonstration in the
          court."</para>

          <para>"And so do I. I heard the fall of the axe in that
          sound."</para>

          <para>Mr. Lorry leaned his arm upon the door-post, and
          bowed his face upon it.</para>

          <para>"Don't despond," said Carton, very gently; "don't
          grieve. I encouraged Doctor Manette in this idea, because
          I felt that it might one day be consolatory to her.
          Otherwise, she might think `his life was want only thrown
          away or wasted,' and that might trouble her."</para>

          <para>"Yes, yes, yes," returned Mr. Lorry, drying his
          eyes, "you are right. But he will perish; there is no
          real hope."</para>

          <para>"Yes. He will perish: there is no real hope,"
          echoed Carton.</para>

          <para>And walked with a settled step, down-stairs.</para>
        </chapter>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>XII</chapnum>

            <title>Darkness</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>Sydney Carton paused in the street, not quite
          decided where to go. "At Tellson's banking-house at
          nine," he said, with a musing face. "Shall I do well, in
          the mean time, to show myself? I think so. It is best
          that these people should know there is such a man as I
          here; it is a sound precaution, and may be a necessary
          preparation. But care, care, care! Let me think it
          out!"</para>

          <para>Checking his steps which had begun to tend towards
          an object, he took a turn or two in the already darkening
          street, and traced the thought in his mind to its
          possible consequences. His first impression was
          confirmed. "It is best," he said, finally resolved, "that
          these people should know there is such a man as I here."
          And he turned his face towards Saint Antoine.</para>

          <para>Defarge had described himself, that day, as the
          keeper of a wine-shop in the Saint Antoine suburb. It was
          not difficult for one who knew the city well, to find his
          house without asking any question. Having ascertained its
          situation, Carton came out of those closer streets again,
          and dined at a place of refreshment and fell sound asleep
          after dinner. For the first time in many years, he had no
          strong drink. Since last night he had taken nothing but a
          little light thin wine, and last night he had dropped the
          brandy slowly down on Mr. Lorry's hearth like a man who
          had done with it.</para>

          <para>It was as late as seven o'clock when he awoke
          refreshed, and went out into the streets again. As he
          passed along towards Saint Antoine, he stopped at a
          shop-window where there was a mirror, and slightly
          altered the disordered arrangement of his loose cravat,
          and his coat- collar, and his wild hair. This done, he
          went on direct to Defarge's, and went in.</para>

          <para>There happened to be no customer in the shop but
          Jacques Three, of the restless fingers and the croaking
          voice. This man, whom he had seen upon the Jury, stood
          drinking at the little counter, in conversation with the
          Defarges, man and wife. The Vengeance assisted in the
          conversation, like a regular member of the
          establishment.</para>

          <para>As Carton walked in, took his seat and asked (in
          very indifferent French) for a small measure of wine,
          Madame Defarge cast a careless glance at him, and then a
          keener, and then a keener, and then advanced to him
          herself, and asked him what it was he had ordered.</para>

          <para>He repeated what he had already said.</para>

          <para>"English?" asked Madame Defarge, inquisitively
          raising her dark eyebrows.</para>

          <para>After looking at her, as if the sound of even a
          single French word were slow to express itself to him, he
          answered, in his former strong foreign accent. "Yes,
          madame, yes. I am English!"</para>

          <para>Madame Defarge returned to her counter to get the
          wine, and, as he took up a Jacobin journal and feigned to
          pore over it puzzling out its meaning, he heard her say,
          "I swear to you, like Evremonde!"</para>

          <para>Defarge brought him the wine, and gave him Good
          Evening.</para>

          <para>"How?"</para>

          <para>"Good evening."</para>

          <para>"Oh! Good evening, citizen," filling his glass.
          "Ah! and good wine. I drink to the Republic."</para>

          <para>Defarge went back to the counter, and said,
          "Certainly, a little like." Madame sternly retorted, "I
          tell you a good deal like." Jacques Three pacifically
          remarked, "He is so much in your mind, see you, madame."
          The amiable Vengeance added, with a laugh, "Yes, my
          faith! And you are looking forward with so much pleasure
          to seeing him once more to-morrow!"</para>

          <para>Carton followed the lines and words of his paper,
          with a slow forefinger, and with a studious and absorbed
          face. They were all leaning their arms on the counter
          close together, speaking low. After a silence of a few
          moments, during which they all looked towards him without
          disturbing his outward attention from the Jacobin editor,
          they resumed their conversation.</para>

          <para>"It is true what madame says," observed Jacques
          Three. "Why stop? There is great force in that. Why
          stop?"</para>

          <para>"Well, well," reasoned Defarge, "but one must stop
          somewhere. After all, the question is still
          where?"</para>

          <para>"At extermination," said madame.</para>

          <para>"Magnificent!" croaked Jacques Three. The
          Vengeance, also, highly approved.</para>

          <para>"Extermination is good doctrine, my wife," said
          Defarge, rather troubled; "in general, I say nothing
          against it. But this Doctor has suffered much; you have
          seen him to-day; you have observed his face when the
          paper was read."</para>

          <para>"I have observed his face!" repeated madame,
          contemptuously and angrily. "Yes. I have observed his
          face. I have observed his face to be not the face of a
          true friend of the Republic. Let him take care of his
          face!"</para>

          <para>"And you have observed, my wife," said Defarge, in
          a deprecatory manner, "the anguish of his daughter, which
          must be a dreadful anguish to him!"</para>

          <para>"I have observed his daughter," repeated madame;
          "yes, I have observed his daughter, more times than one.
          I have observed her to-day, and I have observed her other
          days. I have observed her in the court, and I have
          observed her in the street by the prison. Let me but lift
          my finger--!" She seemed to raise it (the listener's eyes
          were always on his paper), and to let it fall with a
          rattle on the ledge before her, as if the axe had
          dropped.</para>

          <para>"The citizeness is superb!" croaked the
          Juryman.</para>

          <para>"She is an Angel!" said The Vengeance, and embraced
          her.</para>

          <para>"As to thee," pursued madame, implacably,
          addressing her husband, "if it depended on thee--which,
          happily, it does not--thou wouldst rescue this man even
          now."</para>

          <para>"No!" protested Defarge. "Not if to lift this glass
          would do it! But I would leave the matter there. I say,
          stop there."</para>

          <para>"See you then, Jacques," said Madame Defarge,
          wrathfully; "and see you, too, my little Vengeance; see
          you both! Listen! For other crimes as tyrants and
          oppressors, I have this race a long time on my register,
          doomed to destruction and extermination. Ask my husband,
          is that so."</para>

          <para>"It is so," assented Defarge, without being
          asked.</para>

          <para>"In the beginning of the great days, when the
          Bastille falls, he finds this paper of to-day, and he
          brings it home, and in the middle of the night when this
          place is clear and shut, we read it, here on this spot,
          by the light of this lamp. Ask him, is that so."</para>

          <para>"It is so," assented Defarge.</para>

          <para>"That night, I tell him, when the paper is read
          through, and the lamp is burnt out, and the day is
          gleaming in above those shutters and between those iron
          bars, that I have now a secret to communicate. Ask him,
          is that so."</para>

          <para>"It is so," assented Defarge again.</para>

          <para>"I communicate to him that secret. I smite this
          bosom with these two hands as I smite it now, and I tell
          him, `Defarge, I was brought up among the fishermen of
          the sea-shore, and that peasant family so injured by the
          two Evremonde brothers, as that Bastille paper describes,
          is my family. Defarge, that sister of the mortally
          wounded boy upon the ground was my sister, that husband
          was my sister's husband, that unborn child was their
          child, that brother was my brother, that father was my
          father, those dead are my dead, and that summons to
          answer for those things descends to me!' Ask him, is that
          so."</para>

          <para>"It is so," assented Defarge once more.</para>

          <para>"Then tell Wind and Fire where to stop," returned
          madame; "but don't tell me."</para>

          <para>Both her hearers derived a horrible enjoyment from
          the deadly nature of her wrath--the listener could feel
          how white she was, without seeing her--and both highly
          commended it. Defarge, a weak minority, interposed a few
          words for the memory of the compassionate wife of the
          Marquis; but only elicited from his own wife a repetition
          of her last reply. "Tell the Wind and the Fire where to
          stop; not me!"</para>

          <para>Customers entered, and the group was broken up. The
          English customer paid for what he had had, perplexedly
          counted his change, and asked, as a stranger, to be
          directed towards the National Palace. Madame Defarge took
          him to the door, and put her arm on his, in pointing out
          the road. The English customer was not without his
          reflections then, that it might be a good deed to seize
          that arm, lift it, and strike under it sharp and
          deep.</para>

          <para>But, he went his way, and was soon swallowed up in
          the shadow of the prison wan. At the appointed hour, he
          emerged from it to present himself in Mr. Lorry's room
          again, where he found the old gentleman walking to and
          fro in restless anxiety. He said he had been with Lucie
          until just now, and had only left her for a few minutes,
          to come and keep his appointment. Her father had not been
          seen, since he quitted the banking-house towards four
          o'clock. She had some faint hopes that his mediation
          might save Charles, but they were very slight. He had
          been more than five hours gone: where could he be?</para>

          <para>Mr. Lorry waited until ten; but, Doctor Manette not
          returning, and he being unwilling to leave Lucie any
          longer, it was arranged that he should go back to her,
          and come to the banking-house again at midnight. In the
          meanwhile, Carton would wait alone by the fire for the
          Doctor.</para>

          <para>He waited and waited, and the clock struck twelve;
          but Doctor Manette did not come back. Mr. Lorry returned,
          and found no tidings of him, and brought none. Where
          could he be?</para>

          <para>They were discussing this question, and were almost
          building up some weak structure of hope on his prolonged
          absence, when they heard him on the stairs. The instant
          he entered the room, it was plain that all was
          lost.</para>

          <para>Whether he had really been to any one, or whether
          be had been all that time traversing the streets, was
          never known. As he stood staring at them, they asked him
          no question, for his face told them everything.</para>

          <para>"I cannot find it," said he, "and I must have it.
          Where is it?"</para>

          <para>His head and throat were bare, and, as he spoke
          with a helpless look straying all around, he took his
          coat off, and let it drop on the floor.</para>

          <para>"Where is my bench? I have been looking everywhere
          for my bench, and I can't find it. What have they done
          with my work? Time presses: I must finish those
          shoes."</para>

          <para>They looked at one another, and their hearts died
          within them.</para>

          <para>"Come, come!" said he, in a whimpering miserable
          way; "let me get to work. Give me my work."</para>

          <para>Receiving no answer, he tore his hair, and beat his
          feet upon the ground, like a distracted child.</para>

          <para>"Don't torture a poor forlorn wretch," he implored
          them, with a dreadful cry; "but give me my work! What is
          to become of us, if those shoes are not done
          to-night?"</para>

          <para>Lost, utterly lost!</para>

          <para>It was so clearly beyond hope to reason with him,
          or try to restore him, that--as if by agreement--they
          each put a hand upon his shoulder, and soothed him to sit
          down before the fire, with a promise that he should have
          his work presently. He sank into the chair, and brooded
          over the embers, and shed tears. As if all that had
          happened since the garret time were a momentary fancy, or
          a dream, Mr. Lorry saw him shrink into the exact figure
          that Defarge had had in keeping.</para>

          <para>Affected, and impressed with terror as they both
          were, by this spectacle of ruin, it was not a time to
          yield to such emotions. His lonely daughter, bereft of
          her final hope and reliance, appealed to them both too
          strongly. Again, as if by agreement, they looked at one
          another with one meaning in their faces. Carton was the
          first to speak:</para>

          <para>"The last chance is gone: it was not much. Yes; he
          had better be taken to her. But, before you go, will you,
          for a moment, steadily attend to me? Don't ask me why I
          make the stipulations I am going to make, and exact the
          promise I am going to exact; I have a reason-- a good
          one."</para>

          <para>"I do not doubt it," answered Mr. Lorry. "Say
          on."</para>

          <para>The figure in the chair between them, was all the
          time monotonously rocking itself to and fro, and moaning.
          They spoke in such a tone as they would have used if they
          had been watching by a sick-bed in the night.</para>

          <para>Carton stooped to pick up the coat, which lay
          almost entangling his feet. As he did so, a small case in
          which the Doctor was accustomed to carry the lists of his
          day's duties, fen lightly on the floor. Carton took it
          up, and there was a folded paper in it. "We should look
          at this!" he said. Mr. Lorry nodded his consent. He
          opened it, and exclaimed, "Thank GOD!"</para>

          <para>"What is it?" asked Mr. Lorry, eagerly.</para>

          <para>"A moment! Let me speak of it in its place. First,"
          he put his hand in his coat, and took another paper from
          it, "that is the certificate which enables me to pass out
          of this city. Look at it. You see-- Sydney Carton, an
          Englishman?"</para>

          <para>Mr. Lorry held it open in his hand, gazing in his
          earnest face.</para>

          <para>"Keep it for me until to-morrow. I shall see him
          to-morrow, you remember, and I had better not take it
          into the prison."</para>

          <para>"Why not?"</para>

          <para>"I don't know; I prefer not to do so. Now, take
          this paper that Doctor Manette has carried about him. It
          is a similar certificate, enabling him and his daughter
          and her child, at any time, to pass the barrier and the
          frontier! You see?"</para>

          <para>"Yes!"</para>

          <para>"Perhaps he obtained it as his last and utmost
          precaution against evil, yesterday. When is it dated? But
          no matter; don't stay to look; put it up carefully with
          mine and your own. Now, observe! I never doubted until
          within this hour or two, that he had, or could have such
          a paper. It is good, until recalled. But it may be soon
          recalled, and, I have reason to think, will be."</para>

          <para>"They are not in danger?"</para>

          <para>"They are in great danger. They are in danger of
          denunciation by Madame Defarge. I know it from her own
          lips. I have overheard words of that woman's, to-night,
          which have presented their danger to me in strong
          colours. I have lost no time, and since then, I have seen
          the spy. He confirms me. He knows that a wood-sawyer,
          living by the prison wall, is under the control of the
          Defarges, and has been rehearsed by Madame Defarge as to
          his having seen Her"--he never mentioned Lucie's
          name--"making signs and signals to prisoners. It is easy
          to foresee that the pretence will be the common one, a
          prison plot, and that it will involve her life--and
          perhaps her child's--and perhaps her father's--for both
          have been seen with her at that place. Don't look so
          horrified. You will save them all."</para>

          <para>"Heaven grant I may, Carton! But how?"</para>

          <para>"I am going to tell you how. It will depend on you,
          and it could depend on no better man. This new
          denunciation will certainly not take place until after
          to-morrow; probably not until two or three days
          afterwards; more probably a week afterwards. You know it
          is a capital crime, to mourn for, or sympathise with, a
          victim of the Guillotine. She and her father would
          unquestionably be guilty of this crime, and this woman
          (the inveteracy of whose pursuit cannot be described)
          would wait to add that strength to her case, and make
          herself doubly sure. You follow me?"</para>

          <para>"So attentively, and with so much confidence in
          what you say, that for the moment I lose sight," touching
          the back of the Doctor's chair, even of this
          distress."</para>

          <para>"You have money, and can buy the means of
          travelling to the seacoast as quickly as the journey can
          be made. Your preparations have been completed for some
          days, to return to England. Early to-morrow have your
          horses ready, so that they may be in starting trim at two
          o'clock in the afternoon."</para>

          <para>"It shall be done!"</para>

          <para>His manner was so fervent and inspiring, that Mr.
          Lorry caught the flame, and was as quick as youth.</para>

          <para>"You are a noble heart. Did I say we could depend
          upon no better man? Tell her, to-night, what you know of
          her danger as involving her child and her father. Dwell
          upon that, for she would lay her own fair head beside her
          husband's cheerfully." He faltered for an instant; then
          went on as before. "For the sake of her child and her
          father, press upon her the necessity of leaving Paris,
          with them and you, at that hour. Tell her that it was her
          husband's last arrangement. Tell her that more depends
          upon it than she dare believe, or hope. You think that
          her father, even in this sad state, will submit himself
          to her; do you not?"</para>

          <para>"I am sure of it."</para>

          <para>"I thought so. Quietly and steadily have all these
          arrangements made in the courtyard here, even to the
          taking of your own seat in the carriage. The moment I
          come to you, take me in, and drive away."</para>

          <para>"I understand that I wait for you under all
          circumstances?"</para>

          <para>"You have my certificate in your hand with the
          rest, you know, and will reserve my place. Wait for
          nothing but to have my place occupied, and then for
          England!"</para>

          <para>"Why, then," said Mr. Lorry, grasping his eager but
          so firm and steady hand, "it does not all depend on one
          old man, but I shall have a young and ardent man at my
          side."</para>

          <para>"By the help of Heaven you shall! Promise me
          solemnly that nothing will influence you to alter the
          course on which we now stand pledged to one
          another."</para>

          <para>"Nothing, Carton."</para>

          <para>"Remember these words to-morrow: change the course,
          or delay in it-- for any reason--and no life can possibly
          be saved, and many lives must inevitably be
          sacrificed."</para>

          <para>"I will remember them. I hope to do my part
          faithfully."</para>

          <para>"And I hope to do mine. Now, good bye!"</para>

          <para>Though he said it with a grave smile of
          earnestness, and though he even put the old man's hand to
          his lips, he did not part from him then. He helped him so
          far to arouse the rocking figure before the dying embers,
          as to get a cloak and hat put upon it, and to tempt it
          forth to find where the bench and work were hidden that
          it still moaningly besought to have. He walked on the
          other side of it and protected it to the courtyard of the
          house where the afflicted heart--so happy in the
          memorable time when he had revealed his own desolate
          heart to it--outwatched the awful night. He entered the
          courtyard and remained there for a few moments alone,
          looking up at the light in the window of her room. Before
          he went away, he breathed a blessing towards it, and a
          Farewell.</para>
        </chapter>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>XIII</chapnum>

            <title>Fifty-two</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>In the black prison of the Conciergerie, the doomed
          of the day awaited their fate. They were in number as the
          weeks of the year. Fifty-two were to roll that afternoon
          on the life-tide of the city to the boundless everlasting
          sea. Before their cells were quit of them, new occupants
          were appointed; before their blood ran into the blood
          spilled yesterday, the blood that was to mingle with
          theirs to-morrow was already set apart.</para>

          <para>Two score and twelve were told off. From the
          farmer-general of seventy, whose riches could not buy his
          life, to the seamstress of twenty, whose poverty and
          obscurity could not save her. Physical diseases,
          engendered in the vices and neglects of men, will seize
          on victims of all degrees; and the frightful moral
          disorder, born of unspeakable suffering, intolerable
          oppression, and heartless indifference, smote equally
          without distinction.</para>

          <para>Charles Darnay, alone in a cell, had sustained
          himself with no flattering delusion since he came to it
          from the Tribunal. In every line of the narrative he had
          heard, he had heard his condemnation. He had fully
          comprehended that no personal influence could possibly
          save him, that he was virtually sentenced by the
          millions, and that units could avail him nothing.</para>

          <para>Nevertheless, it was not easy, with the face of his
          beloved wife fresh before him, to compose his mind to
          what it must bear. His hold on life was strong, and it
          was very, very hard, to loosen; by gradual efforts and
          degrees unclosed a little here, it clenched the tighter
          there; and when he brought his strength to bear on that
          hand and it yielded, this was closed again. There was a
          hurry, too, in all his thoughts, a turbulent and heated
          working of his heart, that contended against resignation.
          If, for a moment, he did feel resigned, then his wife and
          child who had to live after him, seemed to protest and to
          make it a selfish thing.</para>

          <para>But, all this was at first. Before long, the
          consideration that there was no disgrace in the fate he
          must meet, and that numbers went the same road
          wrongfully, and trod it firmly every day, sprang up to
          stimulate him. Next followed the thought that much of the
          future peace of mind enjoyable by the dear ones, depended
          on his quiet fortitude. So, by degrees he calmed into the
          better state, when he could raise his thoughts much
          higher, and draw comfort down.</para>

          <para>Before it had set in dark on the night of his
          condemnation, he had travelled thus far on his last way.
          Being allowed to purchase the means of writing, and a
          light, he sat down to write until such time as the prison
          lamps should be extinguished.</para>

          <para>He wrote a long letter to Lucie, showing her that
          he had known nothing of her father's imprisonment, until
          he had heard of it from herself, and that he had been as
          ignorant as she of his father's and uncle's
          responsibility for that misery, until the paper had been
          read. He had already explained to her that his
          concealment from herself of the name he had relinquished,
          was the one condition--fully intelligible now--that her
          father had attached to their betrothal, and was the one
          promise he had still exacted on the morning of their
          marriage. He entreated her, for her father's sake, never
          to seek to know whether her father had become oblivious
          of the existence of the paper, or had had it recalled to
          him (for the moment, or for good), by the story of the
          Tower, on that old Sunday under the dear old plane-tree
          in the garden. If he had preserved any definite
          remembrance of it, there could be no doubt that he had
          supposed it destroyed with the Bastille, when he had
          found no mention of it among the relics of prisoners
          which the populace had discovered there, and which had
          been described to all the world. He besought her--though
          he added that he knew it was needless--to console her
          father, by impressing him through every tender means she
          could think of, with the truth that he had done nothing
          for which he could justly reproach himself, but had
          uniformly forgotten himself for their joint sakes. Next
          to her preservation of his own last grateful love and
          blessing, and her overcoming of her sorrow, to devote
          herself to their dear child, he adjured her, as they
          would meet in Heaven, to comfort her father.</para>

          <para>To her father himself, he wrote in the same strain;
          but, he told her father that he expressly confided his
          wife and child to his care. And he told him this, very
          strongly, with the hope of rousing him from any
          despondency or dangerous retrospect towards which he
          foresaw he might be tending.</para>

          <para>To Mr. Lorry, he commended them all, and explained
          his worldly affairs. That done, with many added sentences
          of grateful friendship and warm attachment, all was done.
          He never thought of Carton. His mind was so full of the
          others, that he never once thought of him.</para>

          <para>He had time to finish these letters before the
          lights were put out. When he lay down on his straw bed,
          he thought he had done with this world.</para>

          <para>But, it beckoned him back in his sleep, and showed
          itself in shining forms. Free and happy, back in the old
          house in Soho (though it had nothing in it like the real
          house), unaccountably released and light of heart, he was
          with Lucie again, and she told him it was all a dream,
          and he had never gone away. A pause of forgetfulness, and
          then he had even suffered, and had come back to her, dead
          and at peace, and yet there was no difference in him.
          Another pause of oblivion, and he awoke in the sombre
          morning, unconscious where he was or what had happened,
          until it flashed upon his mind, "this is the day of my
          death!"</para>

          <para>Thus, had he come through the hours, to the day
          when the fifty-two heads were to fall. And now, while he
          was composed, and hoped that he could meet the end with
          quiet heroism, a new action began in his waking thoughts,
          which was very difficult to master.</para>

          <para>He had never seen the instrument that was to
          terminate his life. How high it was from the ground, how
          many steps it had, where he would be stood, bow he would
          be touched, whether the touching hands would be dyed red,
          which way his face would be turned, whether he would be
          the first, or might be the last: these and many similar
          questions, in nowise directed by his will, obtruded
          themselves over and over again, countless times. Neither
          were they connected with fear: he was conscious of no
          fear. Rather, they originated in a strange besetting
          desire to know what to do when the time came; a desire
          gigantically disproportionate to the few swift moments to
          which it referred; a wondering that was more like the
          wondering of some other spirit within his, than his
          own.</para>

          <para>The hours went on as he walked to and fro, and the
          clocks struck the numbers he would never hear again. Nine
          gone for ever, ten gone for ever, eleven gone for ever,
          twelve coming on to pass away. After a hard contest with
          that eccentric action of thought which had last perplexed
          him, he had got the better of it. He walked up and down,
          softly repeating their names to himself. The worst of the
          strife was over. He could walk up and down, free from
          distracting fancies, praying for himself and for
          them.</para>

          <para>Twelve gone for ever.</para>

          <para>He had been apprised that the final hour was Three,
          and be knew he would be summoned some time earlier,
          inasmuch as the tumbrils jolted heavily and slowly
          through the streets. Therefore, he resolved to keep Two
          before his mind, as the hour, and so to strengthen
          himself in the interval that he might be able, after that
          time, to strengthen others.</para>

          <para>Walking regularly to and fro with his arms folded
          on his breast, a very different man from the prisoner,
          who had walked to and fro at La Force, he heard One
          struck away from him, without surprise. The hour had
          measured like most other hours. Devoutly thankful to
          Heaven for his recovered self-possession, he thought,
          "There is but another now," and turned to walk
          again.</para>

          <para>Footsteps in the stone passage outside the door. He
          stopped.</para>

          <para>The key was put in the lock, and turned. Before the
          door was opened, or as it opened, a man said in a low
          voice, in English: "He has never seen me here; I have
          kept out of his way. Go you in alone; I wait near. Lose
          no time!"</para>

          <para>The door was quickly opened and closed, and there
          stood before him face to face, quiet, intent upon him,
          with the light of a smile on his features, and a
          cautionary finger on his lip, Sydney Carton.</para>

          <para>There was something so bright and remarkable in his
          look, that, for the first moment, the prisoner misdoubted
          him to be an apparition of his own imagining. But, he
          spoke, and it was his voice; he took the prisoner's hand,
          and it was his real grasp.</para>

          <para>"Of all the people upon earth, you least expected
          to see me?" be said.</para>

          <para>"I could not believe it to be you. I can scarcely
          believe it now. You are not"--the apprehension came
          suddenly into his mind--"a prisoner?"</para>

          <para>"No. I am accidentally possessed of a power over
          one of the keepers here, and in virtue of it I stand
          before you. I come from her-- your wife, dear
          Darnay."</para>

          <para>The prisoner wrung his hand.</para>

          <para>"I bring you a request from her."</para>

          <para>"What is it?"</para>

          <para>"A most earnest, pressing, and emphatic entreaty,
          addressed to you in the most pathetic tones of the voice
          so dear to you, that you well remember."</para>

          <para>The prisoner turned his face partly aside.</para>

          <para>"You have no time to ask me why I bring it, or what
          it means; I have no time to tell you. You must comply
          with it--take off those boots you wear, and draw on these
          of mine."</para>

          <para>There was a chair against the wall of the cell,
          behind the prisoner. Carton, pressing forward, had
          already, with the speed of lightning, got him down into
          it, and stood over him, barefoot.</para>

          <para>"Draw on these boots of mine. Put your hands to
          them; put your will to them. Quick!"</para>

          <para>"Carton, there is no escaping from this place; it
          never can be done. You will only die with me. It is
          madness."</para>

          <para>"It would be madness if I asked you to escape; but
          do I? When I ask you to pass out at that door, tell me it
          is madness and remain here. Change that cravat for this
          of mine, that coat for this of mine. While you do it, let
          me take this ribbon from your hair, and shake out your
          hair like this of mine!"</para>

          <para>With wonderful quickness, and with a strength both
          of will and action, that appeared quite supernatural, he
          forced all these changes upon him. The prisoner was like
          a young child in his hands.</para>

          <para>"Carton! Dear Carton! It is madness. It cannot be
          accomplished, it never can be done, it has been
          attempted, and has always failed. I implore you not to
          add your death to the bitterness of mine."</para>

          <para>"Do I ask you, my dear Darnay, to pass the door?
          When I ask that, refuse. There are pen and ink and paper
          on this table. Is your hand steady enough to
          write?"</para>

          <para>"It was when you came in."</para>

          <para>"Steady it again, and write what I shall dictate.
          Quick, friend, quick!"</para>

          <para>Pressing his hand to his bewildered head, Darnay
          sat down at the table. Carton, with his right hand in his
          breast, stood close beside him.</para>

          <para>"Write exactly as I speak."</para>

          <para>"To whom do I address it?"</para>

          <para>"To no one." Carton still had his hand in his
          breast.</para>

          <para>"Do I date it?"</para>

          <para>"No."</para>

          <para>The prisoner looked up, at each question. Carton,
          standing over him with his hand in his breast, looked
          down.</para>

          <para>"`If you remember,'" said Carton, dictating, "`the
          words that passed between us, long ago, you will readily
          comprehend this when you see it. You do remember them, I
          know. It is not in your nature to forget them.'"</para>

          <para>He was drawing his hand from his breast; the
          prisoner chancing to look up in his hurried wonder as he
          wrote, the hand stopped, closing upon something.</para>

          <para>"Have you written `forget them'?" Carton
          asked.</para>

          <para>"I have. Is that a weapon in your hand?"</para>

          <para>"No; I am not armed."</para>

          <para>"What is it in your hand?"</para>

          <para>"You shall know directly. Write on; there are but a
          few words more." He dictated again. "`I am thankful that
          the time has come, when I can prove them. That I do so is
          no subject for regret or grief.'" As he said these words
          with his eyes fixed on the writer, his hand slowly and
          softly moved down close to the writer's face.</para>

          <para>The pen dropped from Darnay's fingers on the table,
          and he looked about him vacantly.</para>

          <para>"What vapour is that?" he asked.</para>

          <para>"Vapour?"</para>

          <para>"Something that crossed me?"</para>

          <para>"I am conscious of nothing; there can be nothing
          here. Take up the pen and finish. Hurry, hurry!"</para>

          <para>As if his memory were impaired, or his faculties
          disordered, the prisoner made an effort to rally his
          attention. As he looked at Carton with clouded eyes and
          with an altered manner of breathing, Carton--his hand
          again in his breast--looked steadily at him.</para>

          <para>"Hurry, hurry!"</para>

          <para>The prisoner bent over the paper, once more.</para>

          <para>"`If it had been otherwise;'" Carton's hand was
          again watchfully and softly stealing down; "`I never
          should have used the longer opportunity. If it had been
          otherwise;'" the hand was at the prisoner's face; "`I
          should but have had so much the more to answer for. If it
          had been otherwise--'" Carton looked at the pen and saw
          it was trailing off into unintelligible signs.</para>

          <para>Carton's hand moved back to his breast no more. The
          prisoner sprang up with a reproachful look, but Carton's
          hand was close and firm at his nostrils, and Carton's
          left arm caught him round the waist. For a few seconds he
          faintly struggled with the man who had come to lay down
          his life for him; but, within a minute or so, he was
          stretched insensible on the ground.</para>

          <para>Quickly, but with hands as true to the purpose as
          his heart was, Carton dressed himself in the clothes the
          prisoner bad laid aside, combed back his hair, and tied
          it with the ribbon the prisoner had worn. Then, he softly
          called, "Enter there! Come in!" and the Spy presented
          himself.</para>

          <para>"You see?" said Carton, looking up, as he kneeled
          on one knee beside the insensible figure, putting the
          paper in the breast: "is your hazard very great?"</para>

          <para>"Mr. Carton," the Spy answered, with a timid snap
          of his fingers, "my hazard is not THAT, in the thick of
          business here, if you are true to the whole of your
          bargain."</para>

          <para>"Don't fear me. I will be true to the
          death."</para>

          <para>"You must be, Mr. Carton, if the tale of fifty-two
          is to be right. Being made right by you in that dress, I
          shall have no fear."</para>

          <para>"Have no fear! I shall soon be out of the way of
          harming you, and the rest will soon be far from here,
          please God! Now, get assistance and take me to the
          coach."</para>

          <para>"You?" said the Spy nervously.</para>

          <para>"Him, man, with whom I have exchanged. You go out
          at the gate by which you brought me in?"</para>

          <para>"Of course."</para>

          <para>"I was weak and faint when you brought me in, and I
          am fainter now you take me out. The parting interview has
          overpowered me. Such a thing has happened here, often,
          and too often. Your life is in your own hands. Quick!
          Call assistance!"</para>

          <para>"You swear not to betray me?" said the trembling
          Spy, as he paused for a last moment.</para>

          <para>"Man, man!" returned Carton, stamping his foot;
          "have I sworn by no solemn vow already, to go through
          with this, that you waste the precious moments now? Take
          him yourself to the courtyard you know of, place him
          yourself in the carriage, show him yourself to Mr. Lorry,
          tell him yourself to give him no restorative but air, and
          to remember my words of last night, and his promise of
          last night, and drive away!"</para>

          <para>The Spy withdrew, and Carton seated himself at the
          table, resting his forehead on his hands. The Spy
          returned immediately, with two men.</para>

          <para>"How, then?" said one of them, contemplating the
          fallen figure. "So afflicted to find that his friend has
          drawn a prize in the lottery of Sainte
          Guillotine?"</para>

          <para>"A good patriot," said the other, "could hardly
          have been more afflicted if the Aristocrat had drawn a
          blank."</para>

          <para>They raised the unconscious figure, placed it on a
          litter they had brought to the door, and bent to carry it
          away.</para>

          <para>"The time is short, Evremonde," said the Spy, in a
          warning voice.</para>

          <para>"I know it well," answered Carton. "Be careful of
          my friend, I entreat you, and leave me."</para>

          <para>"Come, then, my children," said Barsad. "Lift him,
          and come away!"</para>

          <para>The door closed, and Carton was left alone.
          Straining his powers of listening to the utmost, he
          listened for any sound that might denote suspicion or
          alarm. There was none. Keys turned, doors clashed,
          footsteps passed along distant passages: no cry was
          raised, or hurry made, that seemed unusual. Breathing
          more freely in a little while, he sat down at the table,
          and listened again until the clock struck Two.</para>

          <para>Sounds that he was not afraid of, for he divined
          their meaning, then began to be audible. Several doors
          were opened in succession, and finally his own. A gaoler,
          with a list in his hand, looked in, merely saying,
          "Follow me, Evremonde!" and he followed into a large dark
          room, at a distance. It was a dark winter day, and what
          with the shadows within, and what with the shadows
          without, he could but dimly discern the others who were
          brought there to have their arms bound. Some were
          standing; some seated. Some were lamenting, and in
          restless motion; but, these were few. The great majority
          were silent and still, looking fixedly at the
          ground.</para>

          <para>As he stood by the wall in a dim corner, while some
          of the fifty-two were brought in after him, one man
          stopped in passing, to embrace him, as having a knowledge
          of him. It thrilled him with a great dread of discovery;
          but the man went on. A very few moments after that, a
          young woman, with a slight girlish form, a sweet spare
          face in which there was no vestige of colour, and large
          widely opened patient eyes, rose from the seat where he
          had observed her sitting, and came to speak to
          him.</para>

          <para>"Citizen Evremonde," she said, touching him with
          her cold hand. "I am a poor little seamstress, who was
          with you in La Force."</para>

          <para>He murmured for answer: "True. I forget what you
          were accused of?"</para>

          <para>"Plots. Though the just Heaven knows that I am
          innocent of any. Is it likely? Who would think of
          plotting with a poor little weak creature like
          me?"</para>

          <para>The forlorn smile with which she said it, so
          touched him, that tears started from his eyes.</para>

          <para>"I am not afraid to die, Citizen Evremonde, but I
          have done nothing. I am not unwilling to die, if the
          Republic which is to do so much good to us poor, will
          profit by my death; but I do not know how that can be,
          Citizen Evremonde. Such a poor weak little
          creature!"</para>

          <para>As the last thing on earth that his heart was to
          warm and soften to, it warmed and softened to this
          pitiable girl.</para>

          <para>"I heard you were released, Citizen Evremonde. I
          hoped it was true?"</para>

          <para>"It was. But, I was again taken and
          condemned."</para>

          <para>"If I may ride with you, Citizen Evremonde, will
          you let me hold your hand? I am not afraid, but I am
          little and weak, and it will give me more
          courage."</para>

          <para>As the patient eyes were lifted to his face, he saw
          a sudden doubt in them, and then astonishment. He pressed
          the work-worn, hunger-worn young fingers, and touched his
          lips.</para>

          <para>"Are you dying for him?" she whispered.</para>

          <para>"And his wife and child. Hush! Yes."</para>

          <para>"O you will let me hold your brave hand,
          stranger?"</para>

          <para>"Hush! Yes, my poor sister; to the last."</para>

          <para>The same shadows that are falling on the prison,
          are falling, in that same hour of the early afternoon, on
          the Barrier with the crowd about it, when a coach going
          out of Paris drives up to be examined.</para>

          <para>"Who goes here? Whom have we within?
          Papers!"</para>

          <para>The papers are handed out, and read.</para>

          <para>"Alexandre Manette. Physician. French. Which is
          he?"</para>

          <para>This is he; this helpless, inarticulately
          murmuring, wandering old man pointed out.</para>

          <para>"Apparently the Citizen-Doctor is not in his right
          mind? The Revolution-fever will have been too much for
          him?"</para>

          <para>Greatly too much for him.</para>

          <para>"Hah! Many suffer with it. Lucie. His daughter.
          French. Which is she?"</para>

          <para>This is she.</para>

          <para>"Apparently it must be. Lucie, the wife of
          Evremonde; is it not?"</para>

          <para>It is.</para>

          <para>"Hah! Evremonde has an assignation elsewhere.
          Lucie, her child. English. This is she?"</para>

          <para>She and no other.</para>

          <para>"Kiss me, child of Evremonde. Now, thou hast kissed
          a good Republican; something new in thy family; remember
          it! Sydney Carton. Advocate. English. Which is
          he?"</para>

          <para>He lies here, in this corner of the carriage. He,
          too, is pointed out.</para>

          <para>"Apparently the English advocate is in a
          swoon?"</para>

          <para>It is hoped he will recover in the fresher air. It
          is represented that he is not in strong health, and has
          separated sadly from a friend who is under the
          displeasure of the Republic.</para>

          <para>"Is that all? It is not a great deal, that! Many
          are under the displeasure of the Republic, and must look
          out at the little window. Jarvis Lorry. Banker. English.
          Which is he?"</para>

          <para>"I am he. Necessarily, being the last."</para>

          <para>It is Jarvis Lorry who has replied to all the
          previous questions. It is Jarvis Lorry who has alighted
          and stands with his hand on the coach door, replying to a
          group of officials. They leisurely walk round the
          carriage and leisurely mount the box, to look at what
          little luggage it carries on the roof; the country-people
          hanging about, press nearer to the coach doors and
          greedily stare in; a little child, carried by its mother,
          has its short arm held out for it, that it may touch the
          wife of an aristocrat who has gone to the
          Guillotine.</para>

          <para>"Behold your papers, Jarvis Lorry,
          countersigned."</para>

          <para>"One can depart, citizen?"</para>

          <para>"One can depart. Forward, my postilions! A good
          journey!"</para>

          <para>"I salute you, citizens.--And the first danger
          passed!"</para>

          <para>These are again the words of Jarvis Lorry, as he
          clasps his hands, and looks upward. There is terror in
          the carriage, there is weeping, there is the heavy
          breathing of the insensible traveller.</para>

          <para>"Are we not going too slowly? Can they not be
          induced to go faster?" asks Lucie, clinging to the old
          man.</para>

          <para>"It would seem like flight, my darling. I must not
          urge them too much; it would rouse suspicion."</para>

          <para>"Look back, look back, and see if we are
          pursued!"</para>

          <para>"The road is clear, my dearest. So far, we are not
          pursued."</para>

          <para>Houses in twos and threes pass by us, solitary
          farms, ruinous buildings, dye-works, tanneries, and the
          like, open country, avenues of leafless trees. The hard
          uneven pavement is under us, the soft deep mud is on
          either side. Sometimes, we strike into the skirting mud,
          to avoid the stones that clatter us and shake us;
          sometimes, we stick in ruts and sloughs there. The agony
          of our impatience is then so great, that in our wild
          alarm and hurry we are for getting out and
          running--hiding--doing anything but stopping.</para>

          <para>Out of the open country, in again among ruinous
          buildings, solitary farms, dye-works, tanneries, and the
          like, cottages in twos and threes, avenues of leafless
          trees. Have these men deceived us, and taken us back by
          another road? Is not this the same place twice over?
          Thank Heaven, no. A village. Look back, look back, and
          see if we are pursued! Hush! the posting-house.</para>

          <para>Leisurely, our four horses are taken out;
          leisurely, the coach stands in the little street, bereft
          of horses, and with no likelihood upon it of ever moving
          again; leisurely, the new horses come into visible
          existence, one by one; leisurely, the new postilions
          follow, sucking and plaiting the lashes of their whips;
          leisurely, the old postilions count their money, make
          wrong additions, and arrive at dissatisfied results. All
          the time, our overfraught hearts are beating at a rate
          that would far outstrip the fastest gallop of the fastest
          horses ever foaled.</para>

          <para>At length the new postilions are in their saddles,
          and the old are left behind. We are through the village,
          up the hill, and down the hill, and on the low watery
          grounds. Suddenly, the postilions exchange speech with
          animated gesticulation, and the horses are pulled up,
          almost on their haunches. We are pursued?</para>

          <para>"Ho! Within the carriage there. Speak then!"</para>

          <para>"What is it?" asks Mr. Lorry, looking out at
          window.</para>

          <para>"How many did they say?"</para>

          <para>"I do not understand you."</para>

          <para>"--At the last post. How many to the Guillotine
          to-day?"</para>

          <para>"Fifty-two."</para>

          <para>"I said so! A brave number! My fellow-citizen here
          would have it forty-two; ten more heads are worth having.
          The Guillotine goes handsomely. I love it. Hi forward.
          Whoop!"</para>

          <para>The night comes on dark. He moves more; he is
          beginning to revive, and to speak intelligibly; he thinks
          they are still together; he asks him, by his name, what
          he has in his hand. O pity us, kind Heaven, and help us!
          Look out, look out, and see if we are pursued.</para>

          <para>The wind is rushing after us, and the clouds are
          flying after us, and the moon is plunging after us, and
          the whole wild night is in pursuit of us; but, so far, we
          are pursued by nothing else.</para>
        </chapter>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>XIV</chapnum>

            <title>The Knitting Done</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>In that same juncture of time when the Fifty-Two
          awaited their fate Madame Defarge held darkly ominous
          council with The Vengeance and Jacques Three of the
          Revolutionary Jury. Not in the wine-shop did Madame
          Defarge confer with these ministers, but in the shed of
          the wood-sawyer, erst a mender of roads. The sawyer
          himself did not participate in the conference, but abided
          at a little distance, like an outer satellite who was not
          to speak until required, or to offer an opinion until
          invited.</para>

          <para>"But our Defarge," said Jacques Three, "is
          undoubtedly a good Republican? Eh?"</para>

          <para>"There is no better," the voluble Vengeance
          protested in her shrill notes, "in France."</para>

          <para>"Peace, little Vengeance," said Madame Defarge,
          laying her hand with a slight frown on her lieutenant's
          lips, "hear me speak. My husband, fellow-citizen, is a
          good Republican and a bold man; he has deserved well of
          the Republic, and possesses its confidence. But my
          husband has his weaknesses, and he is so weak as to
          relent towards this Doctor."</para>

          <para>"It is a great pity," croaked Jacques Three,
          dubiously shaking his head, with his cruel fingers at his
          hungry mouth; "it is not quite like a good citizen; it is
          a thing to regret."</para>

          <para>"See you," said madame, "I care nothing for this
          Doctor, I. He may wear his head or lose it, for any
          interest I have in him; it is all one to me. But, the
          Evremonde people are to be exterminated, and the wife and
          child must follow the husband and father."</para>

          <para>"She has a fine head for it," croaked Jacques
          Three. "I have seen blue eyes and golden hair there, and
          they looked charming when Samson held them up." Ogre that
          he was, he spoke like an epicure.</para>

          <para>Madame Defarge cast down her eyes, and reflected a
          little.</para>

          <para>"The child also," observed Jacques Three, with a
          meditative enjoyment of his words, "has golden hair and
          blue eyes. And we seldom have a child there. It is a
          pretty sight!"</para>

          <para>"In a word," said Madame Defarge, coming out of her
          short abstraction, "I cannot trust my husband in this
          matter. Not only do I feel, since last night, that I dare
          not confide to him the details of my projects; but also I
          feel that if I delay, there is danger of his giving
          warning, and then they might escape."</para>

          <para>"That must never be," croaked Jacques Three; "no
          one must escape. We have not half enough as it is. We
          ought to have six score a day."</para>

          <para>"In a word," Madame Defarge went on, "my husband
          has not my reason for pursuing this family to
          annihilation, and I have not his reason for regarding
          this Doctor with any sensibility. I must act for myself,
          therefore. Come hither, little citizen."</para>

          <para>The wood-sawyer, who held her in the respect, and
          himself in the submission, of mortal fear, advanced with
          his hand to his red cap.</para>

          <para>"Touching those signals, little citizen," said
          Madame Defarge, sternly, "that she made to the prisoners;
          you are ready to bear witness to them this very
          day?"</para>

          <para>"Ay, ay, why not!" cried the sawyer. "Every day, in
          all weathers, from two to four, always signalling,
          sometimes with the little one, sometimes without. I know
          what I know. I have seen with my eyes."</para>

          <para>He made all manner of gestures while he spoke, as
          if in incidental imitation of some few of the great
          diversity of signals that he had never seen.</para>

          <para>"Clearly plots," said Jacques Three.
          "Transparently!"</para>

          <para>"There is no doubt of the Jury?" inquired Madame
          Defarge, letting her eyes turn to him with a gloomy
          smile.</para>

          <para>"Rely upon the patriotic Jury, dear citizeness. I
          answer for my fellow-Jurymen."</para>

          <para>"Now, let me see," said Madame Defarge, pondering
          again. "Yet once more! Can I spare this Doctor to my
          husband? I have no feeling either way. Can I spare
          him?"</para>

          <para>"He would count as one head," observed Jacques
          Three, in a low voice. "We really have not heads enough;
          it would be a pity, I think."</para>

          <para>"He was signalling with her when I saw her," argued
          Madame Defarge; "I cannot speak of one without the other;
          and I must not be silent, and trust the case wholly to
          him, this little citizen here. For, I am not a bad
          witness."</para>

          <para>The Vengeance and Jacques Three vied with each
          other in their fervent protestations that she was the
          most admirable and marvellous of witnesses. The little
          citizen, not to be outdone, declared her to be a
          celestial witness.</para>

          <para>"He must take his chance," said Madame Defarge.
          "No, I cannot spare him! You are engaged at three
          o'clock; you are going to see the batch of to-day
          executed.--You?"</para>

          <para>The question was addressed to the wood-sawyer, who
          hurriedly replied in the affirmative: seizing the
          occasion to add that he was the most ardent of
          Republicans, and that he would be in effect the most
          desolate of Republicans, if anything prevented him from
          enjoying the pleasure of smoking his afternoon pipe in
          the contemplation of the droll national barber. He was so
          very demonstrative herein, that he might have been
          suspected (perhaps was, by the dark eyes that looked
          contemptuously at him out of Madame Defarge's head) of
          having his small individual fears for his own personal
          safety, every hour in the day.</para>

          <para>"I," said madame, "am equally engaged at the same
          place. After it is over-say at eight to-night--come you
          to me, in Saint Antoine, and we will give information
          against these people at my Section."</para>

          <para>The wood-sawyer said he would be proud and
          flattered to attend the citizeness. The citizeness
          looking at him, he became embarrassed, evaded her glance
          as a small dog would have done, retreated among his wood,
          and hid his confusion over the handle of his saw.</para>

          <para>Madame Defarge beckoned the Juryman and The
          Vengeance a little nearer to the door, and there
          expounded her further views to them thus:</para>

          <para>"She will now be at home, awaiting the moment of
          his death. She will be mourning and grieving. She will be
          in a state of mind to impeach the justice of the
          Republic. She will be full of sympathy with its enemies.
          I will go to her."</para>

          <para>"What an admirable woman; what an adorable woman!"
          exclaimed Jacques Three, rapturously. "Ah, my cherished!"
          cried The Vengeance; and embraced her.</para>

          <para>"Take you my knitting," said Madame Defarge,
          placing it in her lieutenant's hands, "and have it ready
          for me in my usual seat. Keep me my usual chair. Go you
          there, straight, for there will probably be a greater
          concourse than usual, to-day."</para>

          <para>"I willingly obey the orders of my Chief," said The
          Vengeance with alacrity, and kissing her cheek. "You will
          not be late?"</para>

          <para>"I shall be there before the commencement."</para>

          <para>"And before the tumbrils arrive. Be sure you are
          there, my soul," said The Vengeance, calling after her,
          for she had already turned into the street, "before the
          tumbrils arrive!"</para>

          <para>Madame Defarge slightly waved her hand, to imply
          that she heard, and might be relied upon to arrive in
          good time, and so went through the mud, and round the
          corner of the prison wall. The Vengeance and the Juryman,
          looking after her as she walked away, were highly
          appreciative of her fine figure, and her superb moral
          endowments.</para>

          <para>There were many women at that time, upon whom the
          time laid a dreadfully disfiguring hand; but, there was
          not one among them more to be dreaded than this ruthless
          woman, now taking her way along the streets. Of a strong
          and fearless character, of shrewd sense and readiness, of
          great determination, of that kind of beauty which not
          only seems to impart to its possessor firmness and
          animosity, but to strike into others an instinctive
          recognition of those qualities; the troubled time would
          have heaved her up, under any circumstances. But, imbued
          from her childhood with a brooding sense of wrong, and an
          inveterate hatred of a class, opportunity had developed
          her into a tigress. She was absolutely without pity. If
          she had ever had the virtue in her, it had quite gone out
          of her.</para>

          <para>It was nothing to her, that an innocent man was to
          die for the sins of his forefathers; she saw, not him,
          but them. It was nothing to her, that his wife was to be
          made a widow and his daughter an orphan; that was
          insufficient punishment, because they were her natural
          enemies and her prey, and as such had no right to live.
          To appeal to her, was made hopeless by her having no
          sense of pity, even for herself. If she had been laid low
          in the streets, in any of the many encounters in which
          she had been engaged, she would not have pitied herself;
          nor, if she had been ordered to the axe to-morrow, would
          she have gone to it with any softer feeling than a fierce
          desire to change places with the man who sent here
          there.</para>

          <para>Such a heart Madame Defarge carried under her rough
          robe. Carelessly worn, it was a becoming robe enough, in
          a certain weird way, and her dark hair looked rich under
          her coarse red cap. Lying hidden in her bosom, was a
          loaded pistol. Lying hidden at her waist, was a sharpened
          dagger. Thus accoutred, and walking with the confident
          tread of such a character, and with the supple freedom of
          a woman who had habitually walked in her girlhood,
          bare-foot and bare-legged, on the brown sea-sand, Madame
          Defarge took her way along the streets.</para>

          <para>Now, when the journey of the travelling coach, at
          that very moment waiting for the completion of its load,
          had been planned out last night, the difficulty of taking
          Miss Pross in it had much engaged Mr. Lorry's attention.
          It was not merely desirable to avoid overloading the
          coach, but it was of the highest importance that the time
          occupied in examining it and its passengers, should be
          reduced to the utmost; since their escape might depend on
          the saving of only a few seconds here and there. Finally,
          he had proposed, after anxious</para>

          <para>consideration, that Miss Pross and Jerry, who were
          at liberty to leave the city, should leave it at three
          o'clock in the lightest- wheeled conveyance known to that
          period. Unencumbered with luggage, they would soon
          overtake the coach, and, passing it and preceding it on
          the road, would order its horses in advance, and greatly
          facilitate its progress during the precious hours of the
          night, when delay was the most to be dreaded.</para>

          <para>Seeing in this arrangement the hope of rendering
          real service in that pressing emergency, Miss Pross
          hailed it with joy. She and Jerry had beheld the coach
          start, had known who it was that Solomon brought, had
          passed some ten minutes in tortures of suspense, and were
          now concluding their arrangements to follow the coach,
          even as Madame Defarge, taking her way through the
          streets, now drew nearer and nearer to the else-deserted
          lodging in which they held their consultation.</para>

          <para>"Now what do you think, Mr. Cruncher," said Miss
          Pross, whose agitation was so great that she could hardly
          speak, or stand, or move, or live: "what do you think of
          our not starting from this courtyard? Another carriage
          having already gone from here to-day, it might awaken
          suspicion."</para>

          <para>"My opinion, miss," returned Mr. Cruncher, "is as
          you're right. Likewise wot I'll stand by you, right or
          wrong."</para>

          <para>"I am so distracted with fear and hope for our
          precious creatures," said Miss Pross, wildly crying,
          "that I am incapable of forming any plan. Are YOU capable
          of forming any plan, my dear good Mr. Cruncher?"</para>

          <para>"Respectin' a future spear o' life, miss," returned
          Mr. Cruncher, "I hope so. Respectin' any present use o'
          this here blessed old head o' mind, I think not. Would
          you do me the favour, miss, to take notice o' two
          promises and wows wot it is my wishes fur to record in
          this here crisis?"</para>

          <para>"Oh, for gracious sake!" cried Miss Pross, still
          wildly crying, "record them at once, and get them out of
          the way, like an excellent man."</para>

          <para>"First," said Mr. Cruncher, who was all in a
          tremble, and who spoke with an ashy and solemn visage,
          "them poor things well out o' this, never no more will I
          do it, never no more!"</para>

          <para>"I am quite sure, Mr. Cruncher," returned Miss
          Pross, "that you never will do it again, whatever it is,
          and I beg you not to think it necessary to mention more
          particularly what it is."</para>

          <para>"No, miss," returned Jerry, "it shall not be named
          to you. Second: them poor things well out o' this, and
          never no more will I interfere with Mrs. Cruncher's
          flopping, never no more!"</para>

          <para>"Whatever housekeeping arrangement that may be,"
          said Miss Pross, striving to dry her eyes and compose
          herself, "I have no doubt it is best that Mrs. Cruncher
          should have it entirely under her own superintendence.--O
          my poor darlings!"</para>

          <para>"I go so far as to say, miss, moreover," proceeded
          Mr. Cruncher, with a most alarming tendency to hold forth
          as from a pulpit--"and let my words be took down and took
          to Mrs. Cruncher through yourself--that wot my opinions
          respectin' flopping has undergone a change, and that wot
          I only hope with all my heart as Mrs. Cruncher may be a
          flopping at the present time."</para>

          <para>"There, there, there! I hope she is, my dear man,"
          cried the distracted Miss Pross, "and I hope she finds it
          answering her expectations."</para>

          <para>"Forbid it," proceeded Mr. Cruncher, with
          additional solemnity, additional slowness, and additional
          tendency to hold forth and hold out, "as anything wot I
          have ever said or done should be wisited on my earnest
          wishes for them poor creeturs now! Forbid it as we
          shouldn't all flop (if it was anyways conwenient) to get
          'em out o' this here dismal risk! Forbid it, miss! Wot I
          say, for-BID it!" This was Mr. Cruncher's conclusion
          after a protracted but vain endeavour to find a better
          one.</para>

          <para>And still Madame Defarge, pursuing her way along
          the streets, came nearer and nearer.</para>

          <para>"If we ever get back to our native land," said Miss
          Pross, "you may rely upon my telling Mrs. Cruncher as
          much as I may be able to remember and understand of what
          you have so impressively said; and at all events you may
          be sure that I shall bear witness to your being
          thoroughly in earnest at this dreadful time. Now, pray
          let us think! My esteemed Mr. Cruncher, let us
          think!"</para>

          <para>Still, Madame Defarge, pursuing her way along the
          streets, came nearer and nearer.</para>

          <para>"If you were to go before," said Miss Pross, "and
          stop the vehicle and horses from coming here, and were to
          wait somewhere for me; wouldn't that be best?"</para>

          <para>Mr. Cruncher thought it might be best.</para>

          <para>"Where could you wait for me?" asked Miss
          Pross.</para>

          <para>Mr. Cruncher was so bewildered that he could think
          of no locality but Temple Bar. Alas! Temple Bar was
          hundreds of miles away, and Madame Defarge was drawing
          very near indeed.</para>

          <para>"By the cathedral door," said Miss Pross. "Would it
          be much out of the way, to take me in, near the great
          cathedral door between the two towers?"</para>

          <para>"No, miss," answered Mr. Cruncher.</para>

          <para>"Then, like the best of men," said Miss Pross, "go
          to the posting- house straight, and make that
          change."</para>

          <para>"I am doubtful," said Mr. Cruncher, hesitating and
          shaking his head, "about leaving of you, you see. We
          don't know what may happen."</para>

          <para>"Heaven knows we don't," returned Miss Pross, "but
          have no fear for me. Take me in at the cathedral, at
          Three o'Clock, or as near it as you can, and I am sure it
          will be better than our going from here. I feel certain
          of it. There! Bless you, Mr. Cruncher! Think-not of me,
          but of the lives that may depend on both of us!"</para>

          <para>This exordium, and Miss Pross's two hands in quite
          agonised entreaty clasping his, decided Mr. Cruncher.
          With an encouraging nod or two, he immediately went out
          to alter the arrangements, and left her by herself to
          follow as she had proposed.</para>

          <para>The having originated a precaution which was
          already in course of execution, was a great relief to
          Miss Pross. The necessity of composing her appearance so
          that it should attract no special notice in the streets,
          was another relief. She looked at her watch, and it was
          twenty minutes past two. She had no time to lose, but
          must get ready at once.</para>

          <para>Afraid, in her extreme perturbation, of the
          loneliness of the deserted rooms, and of half-imagined
          faces peeping from behind every open door in them, Miss
          Pross got a basin of cold water and began laving her
          eyes, which were swollen and red. Haunted by her feverish
          apprehensions, she could not bear to have her sight
          obscured for a minute at a time by the dripping water,
          but constantly paused and looked round to see that there
          was no one watching her. In one of those pauses she
          recoiled and cried out, for she saw a figure standing in
          the room.</para>

          <para>The basin fell to the ground broken, and the water
          flowed to the feet of Madame Defarge. By strange stem
          ways, and through much staining blood, those feet had
          come to meet that water.</para>

          <para>Madame Defarge looked coldly at her, and said, "The
          wife of Evremonde; where is she?"</para>

          <para>It flashed upon Miss Pross's mind that the doors
          were all standing open, and would suggest the flight. Her
          first act was to shut them. There were four in the room,
          and she shut them all. She then placed herself before the
          door of the chamber which Lucie had occupied.</para>

          <para>Madame Defarge's dark eyes followed her through
          this rapid movement, and rested on her when it was
          finished. Miss Pross had nothing beautiful about her;
          years had not tamed the wildness, or softened the
          grimness, of her appearance; but, she too was a
          determined woman in her different way, and she measured
          Madame Defarge with her eyes, every inch.</para>

          <para>"You might, from your appearance, be the wife of
          Lucifer," said Miss Pross, in her breathing.
          "Nevertheless, you shall not get the better of me. I am
          an Englishwoman."</para>

          <para>Madame Defarge looked at her scornfully, but still
          with something of Miss Pross's own perception that they
          two were at bay. She saw a tight, hard, wiry woman before
          her, as Mr. Lorry had seen in the same figure a woman
          with a strong hand, in the years gone by. She knew full
          well that Miss Pross was the family's devoted friend;
          Miss Pross knew full well that Madame Defarge was the
          family's malevolent enemy.</para>

          <para>"On my way yonder," said Madame Defarge, with a
          slight movement of her hand towards the fatal spot,
          "where they reserve my chair and my knitting for me, I am
          come to make my compliments to her in passing. I wish to
          see her."</para>

          <para>"I know that your intentions are evil," said Miss
          Pross, "and you may depend upon it, I'll hold my own
          against them."</para>

          <para>Each spoke in her own language; neither understood
          the other's words; both were very watchful, and intent to
          deduce from look and manner, what the unintelligible
          words meant.</para>

          <para>"It will do her no good to keep herself concealed
          from me at this moment," said Madame Defarge. "Good
          patriots will know what that means. Let me see her. Go
          tell her that I wish to see her. Do you hear?"</para>

          <para>"If those eyes of yours were bed-winches," returned
          Miss Pross, "and I was an English four-poster, they
          shouldn't loose a splinter of me. No, you wicked foreign
          woman; I am your match."</para>

          <para>Madame Defarge was not likely to follow these
          idiomatic remarks in detail; but, she so far understood
          them as to perceive that she was set at naught.</para>

          <para>"Woman imbecile and pig-like!" said Madame Defarge,
          frowning. "I take no answer from you. I demand to see
          her. Either tell her that I demand to see her, or stand
          out of the way of the door and let me go to her!" This,
          with an angry explanatory wave of her right arm.</para>

          <para>"I little thought," said Miss Pross, "that I should
          ever want to understand your nonsensical language; but I
          would give all I have, except the clothes I wear, to know
          whether you suspect the truth, or any part of it."</para>

          <para>Neither of them for a single moment released the
          other's eyes. Madame Defarge had not moved from the spot
          where she stood when Miss Pross first became aware of
          her; but, she now advanced one step.</para>

          <para>"I am a Briton," said Miss Pross, "I am desperate.
          I don't care an English Twopence for myself. I know that
          the longer I keep you here, the greater hope there is for
          my Ladybird. I'll not leave a handful of that dark hair
          upon your head, if you lay a finger on me!"</para>

          <para>Thus Miss Pross, with a shake of her head and a
          flash of her eyes between every rapid sentence, and every
          rapid sentence a whole breath. Thus Miss Pross, who had
          never struck a blow in her life.</para>

          <para>But, her courage was of that emotional nature that
          it brought the irrepressible tears into her eyes. This
          was a courage that Madame Defarge so little comprehended
          as to mistake for weakness. "Ha, ha!" she laughed, "you
          poor wretch! What are you worth! I address myself to that
          Doctor." Then she raised her voice and called out,
          "Citizen Doctor! Wife of Evremonde! Child of Evremonde!
          Any person but this miserable fool, answer the Citizeness
          Defarge!"</para>

          <para>Perhaps the following silence, perhaps some latent
          disclosure in the expression of Miss Pross's face,
          perhaps a sudden misgiving apart from either suggestion,
          whispered to Madame Defarge that they were gone. Three of
          the doors she opened swiftly, and looked in.</para>

          <para>"Those rooms are all in disorder, there has been
          hurried packing, there are odds and ends upon the ground.
          There is no one in that room behind you! Let me
          look."</para>

          <para>"Never!" said Miss Pross, who understood the
          request as perfectly as Madame Defarge understood the
          answer.</para>

          <para>"If they are not in that room, they are gone, and
          can be pursued and brought back," said Madame Defarge to
          herself.</para>

          <para>"As long as you don't know whether they are in that
          room or not, you are uncertain what to do," said Miss
          Pross to herself; "and you shall not know that, if I can
          prevent your knowing it; and know that, or not know that,
          you shall not leave here while I can hold you."</para>

          <para>"I have been in the streets from the first, nothing
          has stopped me, I will tear you to pieces, but I will
          have you from that door," said Madame Defarge.</para>

          <para>"We are alone at the top of a high house in a
          solitary courtyard, we are not likely to be heard, and I
          pray for bodily strength to keep you here, while every
          minute you are here is worth a hundred thousand guineas
          to my darling," said Miss Pross.</para>

          <para>Madame Defarge made at the door. Miss Pross, on the
          instinct of the moment, seized her round the waist in
          both her arms, and held her tight. It was in vain for
          Madame Defarge to struggle and to strike; Miss Pross,
          with the vigorous tenacity of love, always so much
          stronger than hate, clasped her tight, and even lifted
          her from the floor in the struggle that they had. The two
          hands of Madame Defarge buffeted and tore her face; but,
          Miss Pross, with her head down, held her round the waist,
          and clung to her with more than the hold of a drowning
          woman.</para>

          <para>Soon, Madame Defarge's hands ceased to strike, and
          felt at her encircled waist. "It is under my arm," said
          Miss Pross, in smothered tones, "you shall not draw it. I
          am stronger than you, I bless Heaven for it. I hold you
          till one or other of us faints or dies!"</para>

          <para>Madame Defarge's hands were at her bosom. Miss
          Pross looked up, saw what it was, struck at it, struck
          out a flash and a crash, and stood alone--blinded with
          smoke.</para>

          <para>All this was in a second. As the smoke cleared,
          leaving an awful stillness, it passed out on the air,
          like the soul of the furious woman whose body lay
          lifeless on the ground.</para>

          <para>In the first fright and horror of her situation,
          Miss Pross passed the body as far from it as she could,
          and ran down the stairs to call for fruitless help.
          Happily, she bethought herself of the consequences of
          what she did, in time to check herself and go back. It
          was dreadful to go in at the door again; but, she did go
          in, and even went near it, to get the bonnet and other
          things that she must wear. These she put on, out on the
          staircase, first shutting and locking the door and taking
          away the key. She then sat down on the stairs a few
          moments to breathe and to cry, and then got up and
          hurried away.</para>

          <para>By good fortune she had a veil on her bonnet, or
          she could hardly have gone along the streets without
          being stopped. By good fortune, too, she was naturally so
          peculiar in appearance as not to show disfigurement like
          any other woman. She needed both advantages, for the
          marks of griping fingers were deep in her face, and her
          hair was torn, and her dress (hastily composed with
          unsteady hands) was clutched and dragged a hundred
          ways.</para>

          <para>In crossing the bridge, she dropped the door key in
          the river. Arriving at the cathedral some few minutes
          before her escort, and waiting there, she thought, what
          if the key were already taken in a net, what if it were
          identified, what if the door were opened and the remains
          discovered, what if she were stopped at the gate, sent to
          prison, and charged with murder! In the midst of these
          fluttering thoughts, the escort appeared, took her in,
          and took her away.</para>

          <para>"Is there any noise in the streets?" she asked
          him.</para>

          <para>"The usual noises," Mr. Cruncher replied; and
          looked surprised by the question and by her
          aspect.</para>

          <para>"I don't hear you," said Miss Pross. "What do you
          say?"</para>

          <para>It was in vain for Mr. Cruncher to repeat what he
          said; Miss Pross could not hear him. "So I'll nod my
          head," thought Mr. Cruncher, amazed, "at all events
          she'll see that." And she did.</para>

          <para>"Is there any noise in the streets now?" asked Miss
          Pross again, presently.</para>

          <para>Again Mr. Cruncher nodded his head.</para>

          <para>"I don't hear it."</para>

          <para>"Gone deaf in an hour?" said Mr. Cruncher,
          ruminating, with his mind much disturbed; "wot's come to
          her?"</para>

          <para>"I feel," said Miss Pross, "as if there had been a
          flash and a crash, and that crash was the last thing I
          should ever hear in this life."</para>

          <para>"Blest if she ain't in a queer condition!" said Mr.
          Cruncher, more and more disturbed. "Wot can she have been
          a takin', to keep her courage up? Hark! There's the roll
          of them dreadful carts! You can hear that, miss?"</para>

          <para>"I can hear," said Miss Pross, seeing that he spoke
          to her, "nothing. O, my good man, there was first a great
          crash, and then a great stillness, and that stillness
          seems to be fixed and unchangeable, never to be broken
          any more as long as my life lasts."</para>

          <para>"If she don't hear the roll of those dreadful
          carts, now very nigh their journey's end," said Mr.
          Cruncher, glancing over his shoulder, "it's my opinion
          that indeed she never will hear anything else in this
          world."</para>

          <para>And indeed she never did.</para>
        </chapter>

        <chapter>
          <chapheader>
            <chapnum>XV</chapnum>

            <title>The Footsteps Die Out For Ever</title>
          </chapheader>

          <para>Along the Paris streets, the death-carts rumble,
          hollow and harsh. Six tumbrils carry the day's wine to La
          Guillotine. All the devouring and insatiate Monsters
          imagined since imagination could record itself, are fused
          in the one realisation, Guillotine. And yet there is not
          in France, with its rich variety of soil and climate, a
          blade, a leaf, a root, a sprig, a peppercorn, which will
          grow to maturity under conditions more certain than those
          that have produced this horror. Crush humanity out of
          shape once more, under similar hammers, and it will twist
          itself into the same tortured forms. Sow the same seed of
          rapacious license and oppression over again, and it will
          surely yield the same fruit according to its kind.</para>

          <para>Six tumbrils roll along the streets. Change these
          back again to what they were, thou powerful enchanter,
          Time, and they shall be seen to be the carriages of
          absolute monarchs, the equipages of feudal nobles, the
          toilettes of flaring Jezebels, the churches that are not
          my father's house but dens of thieves, the huts of
          millions of starving peasants! No; the great magician who
          majestically works out the appointed order of the
          Creator, never reverses his transformations. "If thou be
          changed into this shape by the will of God," say the
          seers to the enchanted, in the wise Arabian stories,
          "then remain so! But, if thou wear this form through mere
          passing conjuration, then resume thy former aspect!"
          Changeless and hopeless, the tumbrils roll along.</para>

          <para>As the sombre wheels of the six carts go round,
          they seem to plough up a long crooked furrow among the
          populace in the streets. Ridges of faces are thrown to
          this side and to that, and the ploughs go steadily
          onward. So used are the regular inhabitants of the houses
          to the spectacle, that in many windows there are no
          people, and in some the occupation of the hands is not so
          much as suspended, while the eyes survey the faces in the
          tumbrils. Here and there, the inmate has visitors to see
          the sight; then he points his finger, with something of
          the complacency of a curator or authorised exponent, to
          this cart and to this, and seems to tell who sat here
          yesterday, and who there the day before.</para>

          <para>Of the riders in the tumbrils, some observe these
          things, and all things on their last roadside, with an
          impassive stare; others, with a lingering interest in the
          ways of life and men. Some, seated with drooping heads,
          are sunk in silent despair; again, there are some so
          heedful of their looks that they cast upon the multitude
          such glances as they have seen in theatres, and in
          pictures. Several close their eyes, and think, or try to
          get their straying thoughts together. Only one, and he a
          miserable creature, of a crazed aspect, is so shattered
          and made drunk by horror, that he sings, and tries to
          dance. Not one of the whole number appeals by look or
          gesture, to the pity of the people.</para>

          <para>There is a guard of sundry horsemen riding abreast
          of the tumbrils, and faces are often turned up to some of
          them, and they are asked some question. It would seem to
          be always the same question, for, it is always followed
          by a press of people towards the third cart. The horsemen
          abreast of that cart, frequently point out one man in it
          with their swords. The leading curiosity is, to know
          which is he; he stands at the back of the tumbril with
          his head bent down, to converse with a mere girl who sits
          on the side of the cart, and holds his hand. He has no
          curiosity or care for the scene about him, and always
          speaks to the girl. Here and there in the long street of
          St. Honore, cries are raised against him. If they move
          him at all, it is only to a quiet smile, as he shakes his
          hair a little more loosely about his face. He cannot
          easily touch his face, his arms being bound.</para>

          <para>On the steps of a church, awaiting the coming-up of
          the tumbrils, stands the Spy and prison-sheep. He looks
          into the first of them: not there. He looks into the
          second: not there. He already asks himself, "Has he
          sacrificed me?" when his face clears, as he looks into
          the third.</para>

          <para>"Which is Evremonde?" says a man behind him.</para>

          <para>"That. At the back there."</para>

          <para>"With his hand in the girl's?"</para>

          <para>"Yes."</para>

          <para>The man cries, "Down, Evremonde! To the Guillotine
          all aristocrats! Down, Evremonde!"</para>

          <para>"Hush, hush!" the Spy entreats him, timidly.</para>

          <para>"And why not, citizen?"</para>

          <para>"He is going to pay the forfeit: it will be paid in
          five minutes more. Let him be at peace."</para>

          <para>But the man continuing to exclaim, "Down,
          Evremonde!" the face of Evremonde is for a moment turned
          towards him. Evremonde then sees the Spy, and looks
          attentively at him, and goes his way.</para>

          <para>The clocks are on the stroke of three, and the
          furrow ploughed among the populace is turning round, to
          come on into the place of execution, and end. The ridges
          thrown to this side and to that, now crumble in and close
          behind the last plough as it passes on, for all are
          following to the Guillotine. In front of it, seated in
          chairs, as in a garden of public diversion, are a number
          of women, busily knitting. On one of the fore-most
          chairs, stands The Vengeance, looking about for her
          friend.</para>

          <para>"Therese!" she cries, in her shrill tones. "Who has
          seen her? Therese Defarge!"</para>

          <para>"She never missed before," says a knitting-woman of
          the sisterhood.</para>

          <para>"No; nor will she miss now," cries The Vengeance,
          petulantly. "Therese."</para>

          <para>"Louder," the woman recommends.</para>

          <para>Ay! Louder, Vengeance, much louder, and still she
          will scarcely hear thee. Louder yet, Vengeance, with a
          little oath or so added, and yet it will hardly bring
          her. Send other women up and down to seek her, lingering
          somewhere; and yet, although the messengers have done
          dread deeds, it is questionable whether of their own
          wills they will go far enough to find her!</para>

          <para>"Bad Fortune!" cries The Vengeance, stamping her
          foot in the chair, "and here are the tumbrils! And
          Evremonde will be despatched in a wink, and she not here!
          See her knitting in my hand, and her empty chair ready
          for her. I cry with vexation and disappointment!"</para>

          <para>As The Vengeance descends from her elevation to do
          it, the tumbrils begin to discharge their loads. The
          ministers of Sainte Guillotine are robed and ready.
          Crash!--A head is held up, and the knitting- women who
          scarcely lifted their eyes to look at it a moment ago
          when it could think and speak, count One.</para>

          <para>The second tumbril empties and moves on; the third
          comes up. Crash! --And the knitting-women, never
          faltering or pausing in their Work, count Two.</para>

          <para>The supposed Evremonde descends, and the seamstress
          is lifted out next after him. He has not relinquished her
          patient hand in getting out, but still holds it as he
          promised. He gently places her with her back to the
          crashing engine that constantly whirrs up and falls, and
          she looks into his face and thanks him.</para>

          <para>"But for you, dear stranger, I should not be so
          composed, for I am naturally a poor little thing, faint
          of heart; nor should I have been able to raise my
          thoughts to Him who was put to death, that we might have
          hope and comfort here to-day. I think you were sent to me
          by Heaven."</para>

          <para>"Or you to me," says Sydney Carton. "Keep your eyes
          upon me, dear child, and mind no other object."</para>

          <para>"I mind nothing while I hold your hand. I shall
          mind nothing when I let it go, if they are rapid."</para>

          <para>"They will be rapid. Fear not!"</para>

          <para>The two stand in the fast-thinning throng of
          victims, but they speak as if they were alone. Eye to
          eye, voice to voice, hand to hand, heart to heart, these
          two children of the Universal Mother, else so wide apart
          and differing, have come together on the dark highway, to
          repair home together, and to rest in her bosom.</para>

          <para>"Brave and generous friend, will you let me ask you
          one last question? I am very ignorant, and it troubles
          me--just a little."</para>

          <para>"Tell me what it is."</para>

          <para>"I have a cousin, an only relative and an orphan,
          like myself, whom I love very dearly. She is five years
          younger than I, and she lives in a farmer's house in the
          south country. Poverty parted us, and she knows nothing
          of my fate--for I cannot write--and if I could, how
          should I tell her! It is better as it is."</para>

          <para>"Yes, yes: better as it is."</para>

          <para>"What I have been thinking as we came along, and
          what I am still thinking now, as I look into your kind
          strong face which gives me so much support, is this:--If
          the Republic really does good to the poor, and they come
          to be less hungry, and in all ways to suffer less, she
          may live a long time: she may even live to be
          old."</para>

          <para>"What then, my gentle sister?"</para>

          <para>"Do you think:" the uncomplaining eyes in which
          there is so much endurance, fill with tears, and the lips
          part a little more and tremble: "that it will seem long
          to me, while I wait for her in the better land where I
          trust both you and I will be mercifully
          sheltered?"</para>

          <para>"It cannot be, my child; there is no Time there,
          and no trouble there."</para>

          <para>"You comfort me so much! I am so ignorant. Am I to
          kiss you now? Is the moment come?"</para>

          <para>"Yes."</para>

          <para>She kisses his lips; he kisses hers; they solemnly
          bless each other. The spare hand does not tremble as he
          releases it; nothing worse than a sweet, bright constancy
          is in the patient face. She goes next before him--is
          gone; the knitting-women count Twenty-Two.</para>

          <para>"I am the Resurrection and the Life, saith the
          Lord: he that believeth in me, though he were dead, yet
          shall he live: and whosoever liveth and believeth in me
          shall never die."</para>

          <para>The murmuring of many voices, the upturning of many
          faces, the pressing on of many footsteps in the outskirts
          of the crowd, so that it swells forward in a mass, like
          one great heave of water, all flashes away.
          Twenty-Three.</para>

          <para>They said of him, about the city that night, that
          it was the peacefullest man's face ever beheld there.
          Many added that he looked sublime and prophetic.</para>

          <para>One of the most remarkable sufferers by the same
          axe--a woman-had asked at the foot of the same scaffold,
          not long before, to be allowed to write down the thoughts
          that were inspiring her. If he had given any utterance to
          his, and they were prophetic, they would have been
          these:</para>

          <para>"I see Barsad, and Cly, Defarge, The Vengeance, the
          Juryman, the Judge, long ranks of the new oppressors who
          have risen on the destruction of the old, perishing by
          this retributive instrument, before it shall cease out of
          its present use. I see a beautiful city and a brilliant
          people rising from this abyss, and, in their struggles to
          be truly free, in their triumphs and defeats, through
          long years to come, I see the evil of this time and of
          the previous time of which this is the natural birth,
          gradually making expiation for itself and wearing
          out.</para>

          <para>"I see the lives for which I lay down my life,
          peaceful, useful, prosperous and happy, in that England
          which I shall see no more. I see Her with a child upon
          her bosom, who bears my name. I see her father, aged and
          bent, but otherwise restored, and faithful to all men in
          his healing office, and at peace. I see the good old man,
          so long their friend, in ten years' time enriching them
          with all he has, and passing tranquilly to his
          reward.</para>

          <para>"I see that I hold a sanctuary in their hearts, and
          in the hearts of their descendants, generations hence. I
          see her, an old woman, weeping for me on the anniversary
          of this day. I see her and her husband, their course
          done, lying side by side in their last earthly bed, and I
          know that each was not more honoured and held sacred in
          the other's soul, than I was in the souls of both.</para>

          <para>"I see that child who lay upon her bosom and who
          bore my name, a man winning his way up in that path of
          life which once was mine. I see him winning it so well,
          that my name is made illustrious there by the light of
          his. I see the blots I threw upon it, faded away. I see
          him, fore-most of just judges and honoured men, bringing
          a boy of my name, with a forehead that I know and golden
          hair, to this place-- then fair to look upon, with not a
          trace of this day's disfigurement --and I hear him tell
          the child my story, with a tender and a faltering
          voice.</para>

          <para>"It is a far, far better thing that I do, than I
          have ever done; it is a far, far better rest that I go to
          than I have ever known."</para>
        </chapter>
      </part>
    </bookbody>
  </book>

  <endgutblurb>End of Project Gutenberg's Etext of A Tale of Two
  Cities</endgutblurb>
</gutbook>

